Quotations.ch
  Directory : Tono Bungay
GUIDE SUPPORT US BLOG
  • The Project Gutenberg EBook of Tono Bungay, by H. G. Wells
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • Title: Tono Bungay
  • Author: H. G. Wells
  • Release Date: March 18, 2006 [EBook #718]
  • Last Updated: September 17, 2016
  • Language: English
  • Character set encoding: UTF-8
  • *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TONO BUNGAY ***
  • Produced by John Bean; Diane Bean and David Widger
  • TONO-BUNGAY
  • by H.G Wells
  • BOOK THE FIRST
  • THE DAYS BEFORE TONO-BUNGAY WAS INVENTED
  • CHAPTER THE FIRST
  • OF BLADESOVER HOUSE, AND MY MOTHER; AND THE CONSTITUTION OF SOCIETY
  • I
  • Most people in this world seem to live “in character”; they have a
  • beginning, a middle and an end, and the three are congruous one with
  • another and true to the rules of their type. You can speak of them as
  • being of this sort of people or that. They are, as theatrical people
  • say, no more (and no less) than “character actors.” They have a class,
  • they have a place, they know what is becoming in them and what is due to
  • them, and their proper size of tombstone tells at last how properly they
  • have played the part. But there is also another kind of life that is not
  • so much living as a miscellaneous tasting of life. One gets hit by some
  • unusual transverse force, one is jerked out of one’s stratum and lives
  • crosswise for the rest of the time, and, as it were, in a succession
  • of samples. That has been my lot, and that is what has set me at last
  • writing something in the nature of a novel. I have got an unusual series
  • of impressions that I want very urgently to tell. I have seen life at
  • very different levels, and at all these levels I have seen it with a
  • sort of intimacy and in good faith. I have been a native in many social
  • countries. I have been the unwelcome guest of a working baker, my
  • cousin, who has since died in the Chatham infirmary; I have eaten
  • illegal snacks--the unjustifiable gifts of footmen--in pantries,
  • and been despised for my want of style (and subsequently married and
  • divorced) by the daughter of a gasworks clerk; and--to go to my other
  • extreme--I was once--oh, glittering days!--an item in the house-party
  • of a countess. She was, I admit, a countess with a financial aspect, but
  • still, you know, a countess. I’ve seen these people at various angles.
  • At the dinner-table I’ve met not simply the titled but the great. On
  • one occasion--it is my brightest memory--I upset my champagne over the
  • trousers of the greatest statesman in the empire--Heaven forbid I should
  • be so invidious as to name him!--in the warmth of our mutual admiration.
  • And once (though it is the most incidental thing in my life) I murdered
  • a man....
  • Yes, I’ve seen a curious variety of people and ways of living
  • altogether. Odd people they all are great and small, very much alike at
  • bottom and curiously different on their surfaces. I wish I had ranged
  • just a little further both up and down, seeing I have ranged so far.
  • Royalty must be worth knowing and very great fun. But my contacts with
  • princes have been limited to quite public occasions, nor at the other
  • end of the scale have I had what I should call an inside acquaintance
  • with that dusty but attractive class of people who go about on the
  • high-roads drunk but enfamille (so redeeming the minor lapse), in the
  • summertime, with a perambulator, lavender to sell, sun-brown children,
  • a smell, and ambiguous bundles that fire the imagination. Navvies,
  • farm-labourers, sailormen and stokers, all such as sit in 1834
  • beer-houses, are beyond me also, and I suppose must remain so now for
  • ever. My intercourse with the ducal rank too has been negligible; I
  • once went shooting with a duke, and in an outburst of what was no doubt
  • snobbishness, did my best to get him in the legs. But that failed.
  • I’m sorry I haven’t done the whole lot though....
  • You will ask by what merit I achieved this remarkable social range,
  • this extensive cross-section of the British social organism. It was the
  • Accident of Birth. It always is in England.
  • Indeed, if I may make the remark so cosmic, everything is. But that is
  • by the way. I was my uncle’s nephew, and my uncle was no less a person
  • than Edward Ponderevo, whose comet-like transit of the financial
  • heavens happened--it is now ten years ago! Do you remember the days
  • of Ponderevo, the great days, I mean, of Ponderevo? Perhaps you had
  • a trifle in some world-shaking enterprise! Then you know him only
  • too well. Astraddle on Tono-Bungay, he flashed athwart the empty
  • heavens--like a comet--rather, like a stupendous rocket!--and overawed
  • investors spoke of his star. At his zenith he burst into a cloud of
  • the most magnificent promotions. What a time that was! The Napoleon of
  • domestic conveniences!
  • I was his nephew, his peculiar and intimate nephew. I was hanging on
  • to his coat-tails all the way through. I made pills with him in the
  • chemist’s shop at Wimblehurst before he began. I was, you might say, the
  • stick of his rocket; and after our tremendous soar, after he had played
  • with millions, a golden rain in the sky, after my bird’s-eye view of the
  • modern world, I fell again, a little scarred and blistered perhaps, two
  • and twenty years older, with my youth gone, my manhood eaten in upon,
  • but greatly edified, into this Thames-side yard, into these white heats
  • and hammerings, amidst the fine realites of steel--to think it all over
  • in my leisure and jot down the notes and inconsecutive observations
  • that make this book. It was more, you know, than a figurative soar. The
  • zenith of that career was surely our flight across the channel in the
  • Lord Roberts B....
  • I warn you this book is going to be something of an agglomeration. I
  • want to trace my social trajectory (and my uncle’s) as the main line of
  • my story, but as this is my first novel and almost certainly my last,
  • I want to get in, too, all sorts of things that struck me, things that
  • amused me and impressions I got--even although they don’t minister
  • directly to my narrative at all. I want to set out my own queer love
  • experiences too, such as they are, for they troubled and distressed
  • and swayed me hugely, and they still seem to me to contain all sorts of
  • irrational and debatable elements that I shall be the clearer-headed
  • for getting on paper. And possibly I may even flow into descriptions of
  • people who are really no more than people seen in transit, just
  • because it amuses me to recall what they said and did to us, and
  • more particularly how they behaved in the brief but splendid glare of
  • Tono-Bungay and its still more glaring offspring. It lit some of them
  • up, I can assure you! Indeed, I want to get in all sorts of things. My
  • ideas of a novel all through are comprehensive rather than austere....
  • Tono-Bungay still figures on the hoardings, it stands in rows in every
  • chemist’s storeroom, it still assuages the coughs of age and brightens
  • the elderly eye and loosens the elderly tongue; but its social glory,
  • its financial illumination, have faded from the world for ever. And I,
  • sole scorched survivor from the blaze, sit writing of it here in an air
  • that is never still for the clang and thunder of machines, on a table
  • littered with working drawings, and amid fragments of models and notes
  • about velocities and air and water pressures and trajectories--of an
  • altogether different sort from that of Tono-Bungay.
  • II
  • I write that much and look at it, and wonder whether, after all, this is
  • any fair statement of what I am attempting in this book. I’ve given, I
  • see, an impression that I want to make simply a hotch-potch of anecdotes
  • and experiences with my uncle swimming in the middle as the largest lump
  • of victual. I’ll own that here, with the pen already started, I realise
  • what a fermenting mass of things learnt and emotions experienced and
  • theories formed I’ve got to deal with, and how, in a sense, hopeless my
  • book must be from the very outset. I suppose what I’m really trying to
  • render is nothing more nor less than Life--as one man has found it. I
  • want to tell--MYSELF, and my impressions of the thing as a whole, to say
  • things I have come to feel intensely of the laws, traditions, usages,
  • and ideas we call society, and how we poor individuals get driven and
  • lured and stranded among these windy, perplexing shoals and channels.
  • I’ve got, I suppose, to a time of life when things begin to take on
  • shapes that have an air of reality, and become no longer material for
  • dreaming, but interesting in themselves. I’ve reached the criticising,
  • novel-writing age, and here I am writing mine--my one novel--without
  • having any of the discipline to refrain and omit that I suppose the
  • regular novel-writer acquires.
  • I’ve read an average share of novels and made some starts before this
  • beginning, and I’ve found the restraints and rules of the art (as I made
  • them out) impossible for me. I like to write, I am keenly interested in
  • writing, but it is not my technique. I’m an engineer with a patent or
  • two and a set of ideas; most of whatever artist there is in me has been
  • given to turbine machines and boat building and the problem of flying,
  • and do what I will I fail to see how I can be other than a lax,
  • undisciplined story-teller. I must sprawl and flounder, comment and
  • theorise, if I am to get the thing out I have in mind. And it isn’t
  • a constructed tale I have to tell, but unmanageable realities. My
  • love-story--and if only I can keep up the spirit of truth-telling all
  • through as strongly as I have now, you shall have it all--falls into
  • no sort of neat scheme of telling. It involves three separate feminine
  • persons. It’s all mixed up with the other things....
  • But I’ve said enough, I hope, to excuse myself for the method or want
  • of method in what follows, and I think I had better tell without further
  • delay of my boyhood and my early impressions in the shadow of Bladesover
  • House.
  • III
  • There came a time when I realised that Bladesover House was not all it
  • seemed, but when I was a little boy I took the place with the entirest
  • faith as a complete authentic microcosm. I believed that the Bladesover
  • system was a little working-model--and not so very little either--of the
  • whole world.
  • Let me try and give you the effect of it.
  • Bladesover lies up on the Kentish Downs, eight miles perhaps from
  • Ashborough; and its old pavilion, a little wooden parody of the temple
  • of Vesta at Tibur, upon the hill crest behind the house, commands in
  • theory at least a view of either sea, of the Channel southward and the
  • Thames to the northeast. The park is the second largest in Kent, finely
  • wooded with well-placed beeches, many elms and some sweet chestnuts,
  • abounding in little valleys and hollows of bracken, with springs and a
  • stream and three fine ponds and multitudes of fallow deer. The house was
  • built in the eighteenth century, it is of pale red brick in the style of
  • a French chateau, and save for one pass among the crests which opens to
  • blue distances, to minute, remote, oast-set farm-houses and copses
  • and wheat fields and the occasional gleam of water, its hundred
  • and seventeen windows look on nothing but its own wide and handsome
  • territories. A semi-circular screen of great beeches masks the church
  • and village, which cluster picturesquely about the high road along the
  • skirts of the great park. Northward, at the remotest corner of that
  • enclosure, is a second dependent village, Ropedean, less fortunate in
  • its greater distance and also on account of a rector. This divine
  • was indeed rich, but he was vindictively economical because of some
  • shrinkage of his tithes; and by reason of his use of the word Eucharist
  • for the Lord’s Supper he had become altogether estranged from the great
  • ladies of Bladesover. So that Ropedean was in the shadows through all
  • that youthful time.
  • Now the unavoidable suggestion of that wide park and that fair large
  • house, dominating church, village and the country side, was that they
  • represented the thing that mattered supremely in the world, and that all
  • other things had significance only in relation to them. They represented
  • the Gentry, the Quality, by and through and for whom the rest of the
  • world, the farming folk and the labouring folk, the trades-people
  • of Ashborough, and the upper servants and the lower servants and the
  • servants of the estate, breathed and lived and were permitted. And the
  • Quality did it so quietly and thoroughly, the great house mingled so
  • solidly and effectually earth and sky, the contrast of its spacious
  • hall and saloon and galleries, its airy housekeeper’s room and warren
  • of offices with the meagre dignities of the vicar, and the pinched and
  • stuffy rooms of even the post-office people and the grocer, so enforced
  • these suggestions, that it was only when I was a boy of thirteen or
  • fourteen and some queer inherited strain of scepticism had set me
  • doubting whether Mr. Bartlett, the vicar, did really know with certainty
  • all about God, that as a further and deeper step in doubting I began to
  • question the final rightness of the gentlefolks, their primary necessity
  • in the scheme of things. But once that scepticism had awakened it took
  • me fast and far. By fourteen I had achieved terrible blasphemies and
  • sacrilege; I had resolved to marry a viscount’s daughter, and I had
  • blacked the left eye--I think it was the left--of her half-brother, in
  • open and declared rebellion.
  • But of that in its place.
  • The great house, the church, the village, and the labourers and the
  • servants in their stations and degrees, seemed to me, I say, to be a
  • closed and complete social system. About us were other villages and
  • great estates, and from house to house, interlacing, correlated, the
  • Gentry, the fine Olympians, came and went. The country towns seemed mere
  • collections of ships, marketing places for the tenantry, centres for
  • such education as they needed, as entirely dependent on the gentry as
  • the village and scarcely less directly so. I thought this was the order
  • of the whole world. I thought London was only a greater country town
  • where the gentle-folk kept town-houses and did their greater shopping
  • under the magnificent shadow of the greatest of all fine gentlewomen,
  • the Queen. It seemed to be in the divine order. That all this fine
  • appearance was already sapped, that there were forces at work that might
  • presently carry all this elaborate social system in which my mother
  • instructed me so carefully that I might understand my “place,” to Limbo,
  • had scarcely dawned upon me even by the time that Tono-Bungay was fairly
  • launched upon the world.
  • There are many people in England to-day upon whom it has not yet dawned.
  • There are times when I doubt whether any but a very inconsiderable
  • minority of English people realise how extensively this ostensible order
  • has even now passed away. The great houses stand in the parks still,
  • the cottages cluster respectfully on their borders, touching their eaves
  • with their creepers, the English countryside--you can range through Kent
  • from Bladesover northward and see persists obstinately in looking what
  • it was. It is like an early day in a fine October. The hand of change
  • rests on it all, unfelt, unseen; resting for awhile, as it were half
  • reluctantly, before it grips and ends the thing for ever. One frost and
  • the whole face of things will be bare, links snap, patience end, our
  • fine foliage of pretences lie glowing in the mire.
  • For that we have still to wait a little while. The new order may have
  • gone far towards shaping itself, but just as in that sort of lantern
  • show that used to be known in the village as the “Dissolving Views,” the
  • scene that is going remains upon the mind, traceable and evident, and
  • the newer picture is yet enigmatical long after the lines that are to
  • replace those former ones have grown bright and strong, so that the new
  • England of our children’s children is still a riddle to me. The ideas
  • of democracy, of equality, and above all of promiscuous fraternity have
  • certainly never really entered into the English mind. But what IS coming
  • into it? All this book, I hope, will bear a little on that. Our people
  • never formulates; it keeps words for jests and ironies. In the meanwhile
  • the old shapes, the old attitudes remain, subtly changed and changing
  • still, sheltering strange tenants. Bladesover House is now let furnished
  • to Sir Reuben Lichtenstein, and has been since old Lady Drew died; it
  • was my odd experience to visit there, in the house of which my mother
  • had been housekeeper, when my uncle was at the climax of Tono-Bungay.
  • It was curious to notice then the little differences that had come to
  • things with this substitution. To borrow an image from my
  • mineralogical days, these Jews were not so much a new British gentry as
  • “pseudomorphous” after the gentry. They are a very clever people, the
  • Jews, but not clever enough to suppress their cleverness. I wished I
  • could have gone downstairs to savour the tone of the pantry. It would
  • have been very different I know. Hawksnest, over beyond, I noted, had
  • its pseudomorph too; a newspaper proprietor of the type that hustles
  • along with stolen ideas from one loud sink-or-swim enterprise to
  • another, had bought the place outright; Redgrave was in the hands of
  • brewers.
  • But the people in the villages, so far as I could detect, saw no
  • difference in their world. Two little girls bobbed and an old labourer
  • touched his hat convulsively as I walked through the village. He still
  • thought he knew his place--and mine. I did not know him, but I would
  • have liked dearly to have asked him if he remembered my mother, if
  • either my uncle or old Lichtenstein had been man enough to stand being
  • given away like that.
  • In that English countryside of my boyhood every human being had a
  • “place.” It belonged to you from your birth like the colour of your
  • eyes, it was inextricably your destiny. Above you were your betters,
  • below you were your inferiors, and there were even an unstable
  • questionable few, cases so disputable that you might for the rough
  • purposes of every day at least, regard them as your equals. Head
  • and centre of our system was Lady Drew, her “leddyship,” shrivelled,
  • garrulous, with a wonderful memory for genealogies and very, very
  • old, and beside her and nearly as old, Miss Somerville, her cousin and
  • companion. These two old souls lived like dried-up kernels in the great
  • shell of Bladesover House, the shell that had once been gaily full of
  • fops, of fine ladies in powder and patches and courtly gentlemen with
  • swords; and when there was no company they spent whole days in the
  • corner parlour just over the housekeeper’s room, between reading and
  • slumber and caressing their two pet dogs. When I was a boy I used always
  • to think of these two poor old creatures as superior beings living, like
  • God, somewhere through the ceiling. Occasionally they bumped about a bit
  • and one even heard them overhead, which gave them a greater effect of
  • reality without mitigating their vertical predominance. Sometimes too I
  • saw them. Of course if I came upon them in the park or in the shrubbery
  • (where I was a trespasser) I hid or fled in pious horror, but I was
  • upon due occasion taken into the Presence by request. I remember
  • her “leddyship” then as a thing of black silks and a golden chain,
  • a quavering injunction to me to be a good boy, a very shrunken
  • loose-skinned face and neck, and a ropy hand that trembled a halfcrown
  • into mine. Miss Somerville hovered behind, a paler thing of broken
  • lavender and white and black, with screwed up, sandy-lashed eyes.
  • Her hair was yellow and her colour bright, and when we sat in the
  • housekeeper’s room of a winter’s night warming our toes and sipping
  • elder wine, her maid would tell us the simple secrets of that belated
  • flush.... After my fight with young Garvell I was of course banished,
  • and I never saw those poor old painted goddesses again.
  • Then there came and went on these floors over our respectful heads, the
  • Company; people I rarely saw, but whose tricks and manners were imitated
  • and discussed by their maids and valets in the housekeeper’s room and
  • the steward’s room--so that I had them through a medium at second hand.
  • I gathered that none of the company were really Lady Drew’s equals, they
  • were greater and lesser after the manner of all things in our world.
  • Once I remember there was a Prince, with a real live gentleman in
  • attendance, and that was a little above our customary levels and excited
  • us all, and perhaps raised our expectations unduly. Afterwards, Rabbits,
  • the butler, came into my mother’s room downstairs, red with indignation
  • and with tears in his eyes. “Look at that!” gasped Rabbits. My mother
  • was speechless with horror. That was a sovereign, a mere sovereign, such
  • as you might get from any commoner!
  • After Company, I remember, came anxious days, for the poor old women
  • upstairs were left tired and cross and vindictive, and in a state of
  • physical and emotional indigestion after their social efforts....
  • On the lowest fringe of these real Olympians hung the vicarage people,
  • and next to them came those ambiguous beings who are neither quality nor
  • subjects. The vicarage people certainly hold a place by themselves in
  • the typical English scheme; nothing is more remarkable than the progress
  • the Church has made--socially--in the last two hundred years. In the
  • early eighteenth century the vicar was rather under than over the
  • house-steward, and was deemed a fitting match for the housekeeper or any
  • not too morally discredited discard. The eighteenth century literature
  • is full of his complaints that he might not remain at table to share the
  • pie. He rose above these indignities because of the abundance of younger
  • sons. When I meet the large assumptions of the contemporary cleric, I
  • am apt to think of these things. It is curious to note that to-day that
  • down-trodden, organ-playing creature, the Church of England village
  • Schoolmaster, holds much the same position as the seventeenth century
  • parson. The doctor in Bladesover ranked below the vicar but above the
  • “vet,” artists and summer visitors squeezed in above or below this point
  • according to their appearance and expenditure, and then in a carefully
  • arranged scale came the tenantry, the butler and housekeeper, the
  • village shopkeeper, the head keeper, the cook, the publican, the second
  • keeper, the blacksmith (whose status was complicated by his daughter
  • keeping the post-office--and a fine hash she used to make of telegrams
  • too!) the village shopkeeper’s eldest son, the first footman, younger
  • sons of the village shopkeeper, his first assistant, and so forth.
  • All these conceptions and applications of a universal precedence and
  • much else I drank in at Bladesover, as I listened to the talk of valets,
  • ladies’-maids, Rabbits the butler and my mother in the much-cupboarded,
  • white-painted, chintz-brightened housekeeper’s room where the upper
  • servants assembled, or of footmen and Rabbits and estate men of all
  • sorts among the green baize and Windsor chairs of the pantry--where
  • Rabbits, being above the law, sold beer without a license or any
  • compunction--or of housemaids and still-room maids in the bleak,
  • matting-carpeted still-room or of the cook and her kitchen maids and
  • casual friends among the bright copper and hot glow of the kitchens.
  • Of course their own ranks and places came by implication to these
  • people, and it was with the ranks and places of the Olympians that the
  • talk mainly concerned itself. There was an old peerage and a Crockford
  • together with the books of recipes, the Whitaker’s Almanack, the Old
  • Moore’s Almanack, and the eighteenth century dictionary, on the little
  • dresser that broke the cupboards on one side of my mother’s room; there
  • was another peerage, with the covers off, in the pantry; there was a
  • new peerage in the billiard-room, and I seem to remember another in the
  • anomalous apartment that held the upper servants’ bagatelle board and in
  • which, after the Hall dinner, they partook of the luxury of sweets. And
  • if you had asked any of those upper servants how such and such a Prince
  • of Battenberg was related to, let us say, Mr. Cunninghame Graham or
  • the Duke of Argyle, you would have been told upon the nail. As a boy, I
  • heard a great deal of that sort of thing, and if to this day I am
  • still a little vague about courtesy titles and the exact application of
  • honorifics, it is, I can assure you, because I hardened my heart, and
  • not from any lack of adequate opportunity of mastering these succulent
  • particulars.
  • Dominating all these memories is the figure of my mother--my mother who
  • did not love me because I grew liker my father every day--and who knew
  • with inflexible decision her place and the place of every one in the
  • world--except the place that concealed my father--and in some details
  • mine. Subtle points were put to her. I can see and hear her saying
  • now, “No, Miss Fison, peers of England go in before peers of the United
  • Kingdom, and he is merely a peer of the United Kingdom.” She had much
  • exercise in placing people’s servants about her tea-table, where the
  • etiquette was very strict. I wonder sometimes if the etiquette of
  • housekeepers’ rooms is as strict to-day, and what my mother would have
  • made of a chauffeur....
  • On the whole I am glad that I saw so much as I did of Bladesover--if
  • for no other reason than because seeing it when I did, quite naively,
  • believing in it thoroughly, and then coming to analyse it, has enabled
  • me to understand much that would be absolutely incomprehensible in the
  • structure of English society. Bladesover is, I am convinced, the clue to
  • almost all that is distinctively British and perplexing to the foreign
  • inquirer in England and the English-speaking peoples. Grasp firmly that
  • England was all Bladesover two hundred years ago; that it has had
  • Reform Acts indeed, and such--like changes of formula, but no essential
  • revolution since then; that all that is modern and different has come in
  • as a thing intruded or as a gloss upon this predominant formula, either
  • impertinently or apologetically; and you will perceive at once the
  • reasonableness, the necessity, of that snobbishness which is the
  • distinctive quality of English thought. Everybody who is not actually in
  • the shadow of a Bladesover is as it were perpetually seeking after
  • lost orientations. We have never broken with our tradition, never even
  • symbolically hewed it to pieces, as the French did in quivering fact
  • in the Terror. But all the organizing ideas have slackened, the old
  • habitual bonds have relaxed or altogether come undone. And America
  • too, is, as it were, a detached, outlying part of that estate which
  • has expanded in queer ways. George Washington, Esquire, was of the
  • gentlefolk, and he came near being a King. It was Plutarch, you know,
  • and nothing intrinsically American that prevented George Washington
  • being a King....
  • IV
  • I hated teatime in the housekeeper’s room more than anything else at
  • Bladesover. And more particularly I hated it when Mrs. Mackridge and
  • Mrs. Booch and Mrs. Latude-Fernay were staying in the house. They were,
  • all three of them, pensioned-off servants.
  • Old friends of Lady Drew’s had rewarded them posthumously for a
  • prolonged devotion to their minor comforts, and Mrs. Booch was also
  • trustee for a favourite Skye terrier. Every year Lady Drew gave them an
  • invitation--a reward and encouragement of virtue with especial reference
  • to my mother and Miss Fison, the maid. They sat about in black and
  • shiny and flouncey clothing adorned with gimp and beads, eating
  • great quantities of cake, drinking much tea in a stately manner and
  • reverberating remarks.
  • I remember these women as immense. No doubt they were of negotiable
  • size, but I was only a very little chap and they have assumed nightmare
  • proportions in my mind. They loomed, they bulged, they impended.
  • Mrs. Mackridge was large and dark; there was a marvel about her head,
  • inasmuch as she was bald. She wore a dignified cap, and in front of that
  • upon her brow, hair was PAINTED. I have never seen the like since. She
  • had been maid to the widow of Sir Roderick Blenderhasset Impey, some
  • sort of governor or such-like portent in the East Indies, and from her
  • remains--in Mrs. Mackridge--I judge Lady Impey was a very stupendous and
  • crushing creature indeed. Lady Impey had been of the Juno type, haughty,
  • unapproachable, given to irony and a caustic wit. Mrs. Mackridge had no
  • wit, but she had acquired the caustic voice and gestures along with the
  • old satins and trimmings of the great lady. When she told you it was a
  • fine morning, she seemed also to be telling you you were a fool and a
  • low fool to boot; when she was spoken to, she had a way of acknowledging
  • your poor tinkle of utterance with a voluminous, scornful “Haw!” that
  • made you want to burn her alive. She also had a way of saying “Indade!”
  • with a droop of the eyelids.
  • Mrs. Booch was a smaller woman, brown haired, with queer little curls on
  • either side of her face, large blue eyes and a small set of stereotyped
  • remarks that constituted her entire mental range. Mrs. Latude-Fernay has
  • left, oddly enough, no memory at all except her name and the effect of
  • a green-grey silk dress, all set with gold and blue buttons. I fancy she
  • was a large blonde. Then there was Miss Fison, the maid who served both
  • Lady Drew and Miss Somerville, and at the end of the table opposite my
  • mother, sat Rabbits the butler. Rabbits, for a butler, was an unassuming
  • man, and at tea he was not as you know butlers, but in a morning
  • coat and a black tie with blue spots. Still, he was large, with side
  • whiskers, even if his clean-shaven mouth was weak and little. I sat
  • among these people on a high, hard, early Gregorian chair, trying to
  • exist, like a feeble seedling amidst great rocks, and my mother sat
  • with an eye upon me, resolute to suppress the slightest manifestation
  • of vitality. It was hard on me, but perhaps it was also hard upon
  • these rather over-fed, ageing, pretending people, that my youthful
  • restlessness and rebellious unbelieving eyes should be thrust in among
  • their dignities.
  • Tea lasted for nearly three-quarters of an hour, and I sat it out
  • perforce; and day after day the talk was exactly the same.
  • “Sugar, Mrs. Mackridge?” my mother used to ask.
  • “Sugar, Mrs. Latude-Fernay?”
  • The word sugar would stir the mind of Mrs. Mackridge. “They say,” she
  • would begin, issuing her proclamation--at least half her sentences began
  • “they say”--“sugar is fatt-an-ing, nowadays. Many of the best people do
  • not take it at all.”
  • “Not with their tea, ma’am,” said Rabbits intelligently.
  • “Not with anything,” said Mrs. Mackridge, with an air of crushing
  • repartee, and drank.
  • “What won’t they say next?” said Miss Fison.
  • “They do say such things!” said Mrs. Booch.
  • “They say,” said Mrs. Mackridge, inflexibly, “the doctors are not
  • recomm-an-ding it now.”
  • My Mother: “No, ma’am?”
  • Mrs. Mackridge: “No, ma’am.”
  • Then, to the table at large: “Poor Sir Roderick, before he died,
  • consumed great quan-ta-ties of sugar. I have sometimes fancied it may
  • have hastened his end.”
  • This ended the first skirmish. A certain gloom of manner and a pause was
  • considered due to the sacred memory of Sir Roderick.
  • “George,” said my mother, “don’t kick the chair!”
  • Then, perhaps, Mrs. Booch would produce a favourite piece from her
  • repertoire. “The evenings are drawing out nicely,” she would say, or
  • if the season was decadent, “How the evenings draw in!” It was an
  • invaluable remark to her; I do not know how she would have got along
  • without it.
  • My mother, who sat with her back to the window, would always consider
  • it due to Mrs. Booch to turn about and regard the evening in the act of
  • elongation or contraction, whichever phase it might be.
  • A brisk discussion of how long we were to the longest or shortest day
  • would ensue, and die away at last exhausted.
  • Mrs. Mackridge, perhaps, would reopen. She had many intelligent habits;
  • among others she read the paper--The Morning Post. The other ladies
  • would at times tackle that sheet, but only to read the births,
  • marriages, and deaths on the front page. It was, of course, the old
  • Morning Post that cost threepence, not the brisk coruscating young thing
  • of to-day. “They say,” she would open, “that Lord Tweedums is to go to
  • Canada.”
  • “Ah!” said Mr. Rabbits; “dew they?”
  • “Isn’t he,” said my mother, “the Earl of Slumgold’s cousin?” She knew
  • he was; it was an entirely irrelevant and unnecessary remark, but still,
  • something to say.
  • “The same, ma’am,” said Mrs. Mackridge. “They say he was extremelay
  • popular in New South Wales. They looked up to him greatlay. I knew him,
  • ma’am, as a young man. A very nice pleasant young fella.”
  • Interlude of respect.
  • “‘Is predecessor,” said Rabbits, who had acquired from some clerical
  • model a precise emphatic articulation without acquiring at the same time
  • the aspirates that would have graced it, “got into trouble at Sydney.”
  • “Haw!” said Mrs. Mackridge, scornfully, “so am tawled.”
  • “‘E came to Templemorton after ‘e came back, and I remember them talking
  • ‘im over after ‘e’d gone again.”
  • “Haw?” said Mrs. Mackridge, interrogatively.
  • “‘Is fuss was quotin’ poetry, ma’am. ‘E said--what was it ‘e said--‘They
  • lef’ their country for their country’s good,’--which in some way was
  • took to remind them of their being originally convic’s, though now
  • reformed. Every one I ‘eard speak, agreed it was takless of ‘im.”
  • “Sir Roderick used to say,” said Mrs. Mackridge, “that the First
  • Thing,”--here Mrs. Mackridge paused and looked dreadfully at me--“and
  • the Second Thing”--here she fixed me again--“and the Third Thing”--now I
  • was released--“needed in a colonial governor is Tact.” She became aware
  • of my doubts again, and added predominantly, “It has always struck me
  • that that was a Singularly True Remark.”
  • I resolved that if ever I found this polypus of Tact growing up in my
  • soul, I would tear it out by the roots, throw it forth and stamp on it.
  • “They’re queer people--colonials,” said Rabbits, “very queer. When I was
  • at Templemorton I see something of ‘em. Queer fellows, some of ‘em. Very
  • respectful of course, free with their money in a spasammy sort of way,
  • but--Some of ‘em, I must confess, make me nervous. They have an eye
  • on you. They watch you--as you wait. They let themselves appear to be
  • lookin’ at you...”
  • My mother said nothing in that discussion. The word colonies always
  • upset her. She was afraid, I think, that if she turned her mind in that
  • direction my errant father might suddenly and shockingly be
  • discovered, no doubt conspicuously bigamic and altogether offensive and
  • revolutionary. She did not want to rediscover my father at all.
  • It is curious that when I was a little listening boy I had such an idea
  • of our colonies that I jeered in my heart at Mrs. Mackridge’s colonial
  • ascendancy. These brave emancipated sunburnt English of the open, I
  • thought, suffer these aristocratic invaders as a quaint anachronism, but
  • as for being gratified--!
  • I don’t jeer now. I’m not so sure.
  • V
  • It is a little difficult to explain why I did not come to do what was
  • the natural thing for any one in my circumstances to do, and take my
  • world for granted. A certain innate scepticism, I think, explains it and
  • a certain inaptitude for sympathetic assimilation. My father, I believe,
  • was a sceptic; my mother was certainly a hard woman.
  • I was an only child, and to this day I do not know whether my father
  • is living or dead. He fled my mother’s virtues before my distincter
  • memories began. He left no traces in his flight, and she, in her
  • indignation, destroyed every vestige that she could of him. Never a
  • photograph nor a scrap of his handwriting have I seen; and it was, I
  • know, only the accepted code of virtue and discretion that prevented her
  • destroying her marriage certificate and me, and so making a clean sweep
  • of her matrimonial humiliation. I suppose I must inherit something of
  • the moral stupidity that would enable her to make a holocaust of every
  • little personal thing she had of him. There must have been presents made
  • by him as a lover, for example--books with kindly inscriptions, letters
  • perhaps, a flattened flower, a ring, or such-like gage. She kept her
  • wedding-ring, of course, but all the others she destroyed. She never
  • told me his christian name or indeed spoke a word to me of him; though
  • at times I came near daring to ask her: add what I have of him--it isn’t
  • much--I got from his brother, my hero, my uncle Ponderevo. She wore her
  • ring; her marriage certificate she kept in a sealed envelope in the very
  • bottom of her largest trunk, and me she sustained at a private
  • school among the Kentish hills. You must not think I was always at
  • Bladesover--even in my holidays. If at the time these came round, Lady
  • Drew was vexed by recent Company, or for any other reason wished to take
  • it out of my mother, then she used to ignore the customary reminder my
  • mother gave her, and I “stayed on” at the school.
  • But such occasions were rare, and I suppose that between ten and
  • fourteen I averaged fifty days a year at Bladesover.
  • Don’t imagine I deny that was a fine thing for me. Bladesover, in
  • absorbing the whole countryside, had not altogether missed greatness.
  • The Bladesover system has at least done one good thing for England, it
  • has abolished the peasant habit of mind. If many of us still live and
  • breathe pantry and housekeeper’s room, we are quit of the dream of
  • living by economising parasitically on hens and pigs.... About that park
  • there were some elements of a liberal education; there was a great space
  • of greensward not given over to manure and food grubbing; there was
  • mystery, there was matter for the imagination. It was still a park of
  • deer. I saw something of the life of these dappled creatures, heard the
  • belling of stags, came upon young fawns among the bracken, found bones,
  • skulls, and antlers in lonely places. There were corners that gave
  • a gleam of meaning to the word forest, glimpses of unstudied natural
  • splendour. There was a slope of bluebells in the broken sunlight under
  • the newly green beeches in the west wood that is now precious sapphire
  • in my memory; it was the first time that I knowingly met Beauty.
  • And in the house there were books. The rubbish old Lady Drew read I
  • never saw; stuff of the Maria Monk type, I have since gathered, had
  • a fascination for her; but back in the past there had been a Drew of
  • intellectual enterprise, Sir Cuthbert, the son of Sir Matthew who built
  • the house; and thrust away, neglected and despised, in an old room
  • upstairs, were books and treasures of his that my mother let me rout
  • among during a spell of wintry wet. Sitting under a dormer window on a
  • shelf above great stores of tea and spices, I became familiar with much
  • of Hogarth in a big portfolio, with Raphael, there was a great book of
  • engravings from the stanzas of Raphael in the Vatican--and with most
  • of the capitals of Europe as they had looked about 1780, by means
  • of several pig iron-moulded books of views. There was also a broad
  • eighteenth century atlas with huge wandering maps that instructed me
  • mightily. It had splendid adornments about each map title; Holland
  • showed a fisherman and his boat; Russia a Cossack; Japan, remarkable
  • people attired in pagodas--I say it deliberately, “pagodas.” There were
  • Terrae Incognitae in every continent then, Poland, Sarmatia, lands since
  • lost; and many a voyage I made with a blunted pin about that large,
  • incorrect and dignified world. The books in that little old closet had
  • been banished, I suppose, from the saloon during the Victorian revival
  • of good taste and emasculated orthodoxy, but my mother had no suspicion
  • of their character. So I read and understood the good sound rhetoric of
  • Tom Paine’s “Rights of Man,” and his “Common Sense,” excellent books,
  • once praised by bishops and since sedulously lied about. Gulliver was
  • there unexpurgated, strong meat for a boy perhaps but not too strong I
  • hold--I have never regretted that I escaped niceness in these affairs.
  • The satire of Traldragdubh made my blood boil as it was meant to do,
  • but I hated Swift for the Houyhnhnms and never quite liked a horse
  • afterwards. Then I remember also a translation of Voltaire’s “Candide,”
  • and “Rasselas;” and, vast book though it was, I really believe I read,
  • in a muzzy sort of way of course, from end to end, and even with some
  • reference now and then to the Atlas, Gibbon--in twelve volumes.
  • These readings whetted my taste for more, and surreptitiously I raided
  • the bookcases in the big saloon. I got through quite a number of
  • books before my sacrilegious temerity was discovered by Ann, the old
  • head-housemaid. I remember that among others I tried a translation of
  • Plato’s “Republic” then, and found extraordinarily little interest in
  • it; I was much too young for that; but “Vathek”--“Vathek” was glorious
  • stuff. That kicking affair! When everybody HAD to kick!
  • The thought of “Vathek” always brings back with it my boyish memory of
  • the big saloon at Bladesover.
  • It was a huge long room with many windows opening upon the park, and
  • each window--there were a dozen or more reaching from the floor up--had
  • its elaborate silk or satin curtains, heavily fringed, a canopy (is it?)
  • above, its completely white shutters folding into the deep thickness of
  • the wall. At either end of that great still place was an immense marble
  • chimney-piece; the end by the bookcase showed the wolf and Romulus and
  • Remus, with Homer and Virgil for supporters; the design of the other end
  • I have forgotten. Frederick, Prince of Wales, swaggered flatly over the
  • one, twice life-size, but mellowed by the surface gleam of oil; and
  • over the other was an equally colossal group of departed Drews as sylvan
  • deities, scantily clad, against a storm-rent sky. Down the centre of the
  • elaborate ceiling were three chandeliers, each bearing some hundreds of
  • dangling glass lustres, and over the interminable carpet--it impressed
  • me as about as big as Sarmatia in the store-room Atlas--were islands and
  • archipelagoes of chintz-covered chairs and couches, tables, great Sevres
  • vases on pedestals, a bronze man and horse. Somewhere in this wilderness
  • one came, I remember, upon--a big harp beside a lyre-shaped music stand,
  • and a grand piano....
  • The book-borrowing raid was one of extraordinary dash and danger.
  • One came down the main service stairs--that was legal, and illegality
  • began in a little landing when, very cautiously, one went through a red
  • baize door. A little passage led to the hall, and here one reconnoitered
  • for Ann, the old head-housemaid--the younger housemaids were friendly
  • and did not count. Ann located, came a dash across the open space at
  • the foot of that great staircase that has never been properly descended
  • since powder went out of fashion, and so to the saloon door. A beast
  • of an oscillating Chinaman in china, as large as life, grimaced and
  • quivered to one’s lightest steps. That door was the perilous place; it
  • was double with the thickness of the wall between, so that one could not
  • listen beforehand for the whisk of the feather-brush on the other side.
  • Oddly rat-like, is it not, this darting into enormous places in pursuit
  • of the abandoned crumbs of thought?
  • And I found Langhorne’s “Plutarch” too, I remember, on those shelves. It
  • seems queer to me now to think that I acquired pride and self-respect,
  • the idea of a state and the germ of public spirit, in such a furtive
  • fashion; queer, too, that it should rest with an old Greek, dead these
  • eighteen hundred years to teach that.
  • VI
  • The school I went to was the sort of school the Bladesover system
  • permitted. The public schools that add comic into existence in the brief
  • glow of the Renascence had been taken possession of by the ruling class;
  • the lower classes were not supposed to stand in need of schools, and our
  • middle stratum got the schools it deserved, private schools, schools any
  • unqualified pretender was free to establish. Mine was kept by a man who
  • had had the energy to get himself a College of Preceptors diploma, and
  • considering how cheap his charges were, I will readily admit the place
  • might have been worse. The building was a dingy yellow-brick residence
  • outside the village, with the schoolroom as an outbuilding of lath and
  • plaster.
  • I do not remember that my school-days were unhappy--indeed I recall a
  • good lot of fine mixed fun in them--but I cannot without grave risk
  • of misinterpretation declare that we were at all nice and refined. We
  • fought much, not sound formal fighting, but “scrapping” of a sincere and
  • murderous kind, into which one might bring one’s boots--it made us tough
  • at any rate--and several of us were the sons of London publicans, who
  • distinguished “scraps” where one meant to hurt from ordered pugilism,
  • practising both arts, and having, moreover, precocious linguistic gifts.
  • Our cricket-field was bald about the wickets, and we played without
  • style and disputed with the umpire; and the teaching was chiefly in
  • the hands of a lout of nineteen, who wore ready-made clothes and
  • taught despicably. The head-master and proprietor taught us arithmetic,
  • algebra, and Euclid, and to the older boys even trigonometry, himself;
  • he had a strong mathematical bias, and I think now that by the standard
  • of a British public school he did rather well by us.
  • We had one inestimable privilege at that school, and that was spiritual
  • neglect. We dealt with one another with the forcible simplicity of
  • natural boys, we “cheeked,” and “punched” and “clouted”; we thought
  • ourselves Red Indians and cowboys and such-like honourable things,
  • and not young English gentlemen; we never felt the strain of “Onward
  • Christian soldiers,” nor were swayed by any premature piety in the cold
  • oak pew of our Sunday devotions. All that was good. We spent our rare
  • pennies in the uncensored reading matter of the village dame’s shop, on
  • the Boys of England, and honest penny dreadfuls--ripping stuff, stuff
  • that anticipated Haggard and Stevenson, badly printed and queerly
  • illustrated, and very very good for us. On our half-holidays we were
  • allowed the unusual freedom of rambling in twos and threes wide and far
  • about the land, talking experimentally, dreaming wildly. There was much
  • in those walks! To this day the landscape of the Kentish world, with its
  • low broad distances, its hop gardens and golden stretches of wheat, its
  • oasts and square church towers, its background of downland and hangers,
  • has for me a faint sense of adventure added to the pleasure of its
  • beauty. We smoked on occasion, but nobody put us up to the proper
  • “boyish” things to do; we never “robbed an orchard” for example, though
  • there were orchards all about us, we thought stealing was sinful, we
  • stole incidental apples and turnips and strawberries from the fields
  • indeed, but in a criminal inglorious fashion, and afterwards we were
  • ashamed. We had our days of adventure, but they were natural accidents,
  • our own adventures. There was one hot day when several of us, walking
  • out towards Maidstone, were incited by the devil to despise ginger beer,
  • and we fuddled ourselves dreadfully with ale; and a time when our young
  • minds were infected to the pitch of buying pistols, by the legend of
  • the Wild West. Young Roots from Highbury came back with a revolver and
  • cartridges, and we went off six strong to live a free wild life one
  • holiday afternoon. We fired our first shot deep in the old flint mine at
  • Chiselstead, and nearly burst our ear drums; then we fired in a primrose
  • studded wood by Pickthorn Green, and I gave a false alarm of “keeper,”
  • and we fled in disorder for a mile. After which Roots suddenly shot at
  • a pheasant in the high road by Chiselstead, and then young Barker told
  • lies about the severity of the game laws and made Roots sore afraid, and
  • we hid the pistol in a dry ditch outside the school field. A day or so
  • after we got in again, and ignoring a certain fouling and rusting of the
  • barrel, tried for a rabbit at three hundred yards. Young Roots blew
  • a molehill at twenty paces into a dust cloud, burnt his fingers, and
  • scorched his face; and the weapon having once displayed this strange
  • disposition to flame back upon the shooter, was not subsequently fired.
  • One main source of excitement for us was “cheeking” people in vans and
  • carts upon the Goudhurst road; and getting myself into a monstrous white
  • mess in the chalk pits beyond the village, and catching yellow jaundice
  • as a sequel to bathing stark naked with three other Adamites, old Ewart
  • leading that function, in the rivulet across Hickson’s meadows, are
  • among my memorabilia. Those free imaginative afternoons! how much they
  • were for us! how much they did for us! All streams came from the then
  • undiscovered “sources of the Nile” in those days, all thickets were
  • Indian jungles, and our best game, I say it with pride, I invented. I
  • got it out of the Bladesover saloon. We found a wood where “Trespassing”
  • was forbidden, and did the “Retreat of the Ten Thousand” through it from
  • end to end, cutting our way bravely through a host of nettle beds that
  • barred our path, and not forgetting to weep and kneel when at last we
  • emerged within sight of the High Road Sea. So we have burst at times,
  • weeping and rejoicing, upon startled wayfarers. Usually I took the part
  • of that distinguished general Xenophen--and please note the quantity of
  • the o. I have all my classical names like that,--Socrates rhymes with
  • Bates for me, and except when the bleak eye of some scholar warns me of
  • his standards of judgment, I use those dear old mispronunciations still.
  • The little splash into Latin made during my days as a chemist washed off
  • nothing of the habit. Well,--if I met those great gentlemen of the past
  • with their accents carelessly adjusted I did at least meet them alive,
  • as an equal, and in a living tongue. Altogether my school might easily
  • have been worse for me, and among other good things it gave me a friend
  • who has lasted my life out.
  • This was Ewart, who is now a monumental artist at Woking, after many
  • vicissitudes. Dear chap, how he did stick out of his clothes to be sure!
  • He was a longlimbed lout, ridiculously tall beside my more youth full
  • compactness, and, except that there was no black moustache under his
  • nose blob, he had the same round knobby face as he has to-day, the same
  • bright and active hazel brown eyes, the stare, the meditative moment,
  • the insinuating reply. Surely no boy ever played the fool as Bob Ewart
  • used to play it, no boy had a readier knack of mantling the world with
  • wonder. Commonness vanished before Ewart, at his expository touch all
  • things became memorable and rare. From him I first heard tell of love,
  • but only after its barbs were already sticking in my heart. He was, I
  • know now the bastard of that great improvident artist, Rickmann Ewart;
  • he brought the light of a lax world that at least had not turned its
  • back upon beauty, into the growing fermentation of my mind.
  • I won his heart by a version of Vathek, and after that we were
  • inseparable yarning friends. We merged our intellectual stock so
  • completely that I wonder sometimes how much I did not become Ewart, how
  • much Ewart is not vicariously and derivatively me.
  • VII
  • And then when I had newly passed my fourteenth birthday, came my tragic
  • disgrace.
  • It was in my midsummer holidays that the thing happened, and it was
  • through the Honourable Beatrice Normandy. She had “come into my life,”
  • as they say, before I was twelve.
  • She descended unexpectedly into a peaceful interlude that followed the
  • annual going of those Three Great Women. She came into the old nursery
  • upstairs, and every day she had tea with us in the housekeeper’s room.
  • She was eight, and she came with a nurse called Nannie; and to begin
  • with, I did not like her at all.
  • Nobody liked this irruption into the downstairs rooms; the two “gave
  • trouble,”--a dire offence; Nannie’s sense of duty to her charge led to
  • requests and demands that took my mother’s breath away. Eggs at unusual
  • times, the reboiling of milk, the rejection of an excellent milk
  • pudding--not negotiated respectfully but dictated as of right. Nannie
  • was a dark, longfeatured, taciturn woman in a grey dress; she had a
  • furtive inflexibility of manner that finally dismayed and crushed and
  • overcame. She conveyed she was “under orders”--like a Greek tragedy. She
  • was that strange product of the old time, a devoted, trusted servant;
  • she had, as it were, banked all her pride and will with the greater,
  • more powerful people who employed her, in return for a life-long
  • security of servitude--the bargain was nonetheless binding for being
  • implicit. Finally they were to pension her, and she would die the hated
  • treasure of a boarding-house. She had built up in herself an enormous
  • habit of reference to these upstairs people, she had curbed down all
  • discordant murmurings of her soul, her very instincts were perverted or
  • surrendered. She was sexless, her personal pride was all transferred,
  • she mothered another woman’s child with a hard, joyless devotion that
  • was at least entirely compatible with a stoical separation. She treated
  • us all as things that counted for nothing save to fetch and carry for
  • her charge. But the Honourable Beatrice could condescend.
  • The queer chances of later years come between me and a distinctly
  • separated memory of that childish face. When I think of Beatrice, I
  • think of her as I came to know her at a later time, when at last I came
  • to know her so well that indeed now I could draw her, and show a hundred
  • little delicate things you would miss in looking at her. But even then I
  • remember how I noted the infinite delicacy of her childish skin and the
  • fine eyebrow, finer than the finest feather that ever one felt on the
  • breast of a bird. She was one of those elfin, rather precocious little
  • girls, quick coloured, with dark hair, naturally curling dusky hair
  • that was sometimes astray over her eyes, and eyes that were sometimes
  • impishly dark, and sometimes a clear brown yellow. And from the very
  • outset, after a most cursory attention to Rabbits, she decided that the
  • only really interesting thing at the tea-table was myself.
  • The elders talked in their formal dull way--telling Nannie the trite
  • old things about the park and the village that they told every one, and
  • Beatrice watched me across the table with a pitiless little curiosity
  • that made me uncomfortable.
  • “Nannie,” she said, pointing, and Nannie left a question of my mother’s
  • disregarded to attend to her; “is he a servant boy?”
  • “S-s-sh,” said Nannie. “He’s Master Ponderevo.”
  • “Is he a servant boy?” repeated Beatrice.
  • “He’s a schoolboy,” said my mother.
  • “Then may I talk to him, Nannie?”
  • Nannie surveyed me with brutal inhumanity. “You mustn’t talk too much,”
  • she said to her charge, and cut cake into fingers for her.
  • “No,” she added decisively, as Beatrice made to speak.
  • Beatrice became malignant. Her eyes explored me with unjustifiable
  • hostility. “He’s got dirty hands,” she said, stabbing at the forbidden
  • fruit. “And there’s a fray to his collar.”
  • Then she gave herself up to cake with an appearance of entire
  • forgetfulness of me that filled me with hate and a passionate desire to
  • compel her to admire me.... And the next day before tea, I did for the
  • first time in my life, freely, without command or any compulsion, wash
  • my hands.
  • So our acquaintance began, and presently was deepened by a whim of hers.
  • She had a cold and was kept indoors, and confronted Nannie suddenly with
  • the alternative of being hopelessly naughty, which in her case involved
  • a generous amount of screaming unsuitable for the ears of an elderly,
  • shaky, rich aunt, or having me up to the nursery to play with her all
  • the afternoon. Nannie came downstairs and borrowed me in a careworn
  • manner; and I was handed over to the little creature as if I was some
  • large variety of kitten. I had never had anything to do with a little
  • girl before, I thought she was more beautiful and wonderful and bright
  • than anything else could possibly be in life, and she found me the
  • gentlest of slaves--though at the same time, as I made evident, fairly
  • strong. And Nannie was amazed to find the afternoon slip cheerfully and
  • rapidly away. She praised my manners to Lady Drew and to my mother,
  • who said she was glad to hear well of me, and after that I played with
  • Beatrice several times. The toys she had remain in my memory still as
  • great splendid things, gigantic to all my previous experience of toys,
  • and we even went to the great doll’s house on the nursery landing to
  • play discreetly with that, the great doll’s house that the Prince Regent
  • had given Sir Harry Drew’s first-born (who died at five), that was a not
  • ineffectual model of Bladesover itself, and contained eighty-five dolls
  • and had cost hundreds of pounds. I played under imperious direction with
  • that toy of glory.
  • I went back to school when that holiday was over, dreaming of beautiful
  • things, and got Ewart to talk to me of love; and I made a great story
  • out of the doll’s house, a story that, taken over into Ewart’s hands,
  • speedily grew to an island doll’s city all our own.
  • One of the dolls, I privately decided, was like Beatrice.
  • One other holiday there was when I saw something of her--oddly enough my
  • memory of that second holiday in which she played a part is vague--and
  • then came a gap of a year, and then my disgrace.
  • VIII
  • Now I sit down to write my story and tell over again things in their
  • order, I find for the first time how inconsecutive and irrational a
  • thing the memory can be. One recalls acts and cannot recall motives;
  • one recalls quite vividly moments that stand out inexplicably--things
  • adrift, joining on to nothing, leading nowhere. I think I must have seen
  • Beatrice and her half-brother quite a number of times in my last holiday
  • at Bladesover, but I really cannot recall more than a little of the
  • quality of the circumstances. That great crisis of my boyhood stands out
  • very vividly as an effect, as a sort of cardinal thing for me, but when
  • I look for details, particularly details that led up to the crisis--I
  • cannot find them in any developing order at all. This halfbrother,
  • Archie Garvell, was a new factor in the affair. I remember him clearly
  • as a fair-haired, supercilious looking, weedily-lank boy, much taller
  • than I, but I should imagine very little heavier, and that we hated
  • each other by a sort of instinct from the beginning; and yet I cannot
  • remember my first meeting with him at all.
  • Looking back into these past things--it is like rummaging in a neglected
  • attic that has experienced the attentions of some whimsical robber--I
  • cannot even account for the presence of these children at Bladesover.
  • They were, I know, among the innumerable cousins of Lady Drew, and
  • according to the theories of downstairs candidates for the ultimate
  • possession of Bladesover. If they were, their candidature was
  • unsuccessful. But that great place, with all its faded splendour, its
  • fine furniture, its large traditions, was entirely at the old lady’s
  • disposition; and I am inclined to think it is true that she used this
  • fact to torment and dominate a number of eligible people. Lord Osprey
  • was among the number of these, and she showed these hospitalities to his
  • motherless child and step-child, partly, no doubt, because he was poor,
  • but quite as much, I nowadays imagine, in the dim hope of finding some
  • affectionate or imaginative outcome of contact with them. Nannie had
  • dropped out of the world this second time, and Beatrice was in the
  • charge of an extremely amiable and ineffectual poor army-class young
  • woman whose name I never knew. They were, I think, two remarkably
  • illmanaged and enterprising children. I seem to remember too, that it
  • was understood that I was not a fit companion for them, and that our
  • meetings had to be as unostentatious as possible. It was Beatrice who
  • insisted upon our meeting.
  • I am certain I knew quite a lot about love at fourteen and that I was
  • quite as much in love with Beatrice then as any impassioned adult could
  • be, and that Beatrice was, in her way, in love with me. It is part of
  • the decent and useful pretences of our world that children of the age at
  • which we were, think nothing, feel nothing, know nothing of love. It
  • is wonderful what people the English are for keeping up pretences. But
  • indeed I cannot avoid telling that Beatrice and I talked of love and
  • kissed and embraced one another.
  • I recall something of one talk under the overhanging bushes of the
  • shrubbery--I on the park side of the stone wall, and the lady of my
  • worship a little inelegantly astride thereon. Inelegantly do I say? you
  • should have seen the sweet imp as I remember her. Just her poise on the
  • wall comes suddenly clear before me, and behind her the light various
  • branches of the bushes of the shrubbery that my feet might not profane,
  • and far away and high behind her, dim and stately, the cornice of the
  • great facade of Bladesover rose against the dappled sky. Our talk must
  • have been serious and business-like, for we were discussing my social
  • position.
  • “I don’t love Archie,” she had said, apropos of nothing; and then in a
  • whisper, leaning forward with the hair about her face, “I love YOU!”
  • But she had been a little pressing to have it clear that I was not and
  • could not be a servant.
  • “You’ll never be a servant--ever!”
  • I swore that very readily, and it is a vow I have kept by nature.
  • “What will you be?” said she.
  • I ran my mind hastily over the professions.
  • “Will you be a soldier?” she asked.
  • “And be bawled at by duffers? No fear!” said I. “Leave that to the
  • plough-boys.”
  • “But an officer?”
  • “I don’t know,” I said, evading a shameful difficulty.
  • “I’d rather go into the navy.”
  • “Wouldn’t you like to fight?”
  • “I’d like to fight,” I said. “But a common soldier it’s no honour to
  • have to be told to fight and to be looked down upon while you do it, and
  • how could I be an officer?”
  • “Couldn’t you be?” she said, and looked at me doubtfully; and the spaces
  • of the social system opened between us.
  • Then, as became a male of spirit, I took upon myself to brag and lie
  • my way through this trouble. I said I was a poor man, and poor men went
  • into the navy; that I “knew” mathematics, which no army officer did; and
  • I claimed Nelson for an exemplar, and spoke very highly of my outlook
  • upon blue water. “He loved Lady Hamilton,” I said, “although she was a
  • lady--and I will love you.”
  • We were somewhere near that when the egregious governess became audible,
  • calling “Beeee-atrice! Beeee-e-atrice!”
  • “Snifty beast!” said my lady, and tried to get on with the conversation;
  • but that governess made things impossible.
  • “Come here!” said my lady suddenly, holding out a grubby hand; and I
  • went very close to her, and she put her little head down upon the wall
  • until her black fog of hair tickled my cheek.
  • “You are my humble, faithful lover,” she demanded in a whisper, her warm
  • flushed face near touching mine, and her eyes very dark and lustrous.
  • “I am your humble, faithful lover,” I whispered back.
  • And she put her arm about my head and put out her lips and we kissed,
  • and boy though I was, I was all atremble. So we two kissed for the first
  • time.
  • “Beeee-e-e-a-trice!” fearfully close.
  • My lady had vanished, with one wild kick of her black-stocking leg. A
  • moment after, I heard her sustaining the reproaches of her governess,
  • and explaining her failure to answer with an admirable lucidity and
  • disingenuousness.
  • I felt it was unnecessary for me to be seen just then, and I vanished
  • guiltily round the corner into the West Wood, and so to love-dreams
  • and single-handed play, wandering along one of those meandering bracken
  • valleys that varied Bladesover park. And that day and for many days that
  • kiss upon my lips was a seal, and by night the seed of dreams.
  • Then I remember an expedition we made--she, I, and her
  • half-brother--into those West Woods--they two were supposed to be
  • playing in the shrubbery--and how we were Indians there, and made a
  • wigwam out of a pile of beech logs, and how we stalked deer, crept near
  • and watched rabbits feeding in a glade, and almost got a squirrel. It
  • was play seasoned with plentiful disputing between me and young Garvell,
  • for each firmly insisted upon the leading roles, and only my wider
  • reading--I had read ten stories to his one--gave me the ascendency
  • over him. Also I scored over him by knowing how to find the eagle in a
  • bracken stem. And somehow--I don’t remember what led to it at all--I and
  • Beatrice, two hot and ruffled creatures, crept in among the tall bracken
  • and hid from him. The great fronds rose above us, five feet or more, and
  • as I had learnt how to wriggle through that undergrowth with the minimum
  • of betrayal by tossing greenery above, I led the way. The ground under
  • bracken is beautifully clear and faintly scented in warm weather; the
  • stems come up black and then green; if you crawl flat, it is a tropical
  • forest in miniature. I led the way and Beatrice crawled behind, and then
  • as the green of the further glade opened before us, stopped. She crawled
  • up to me, her hot little face came close to mine; once more she looked
  • and breathed close to me, and suddenly she flung her arm about my neck
  • and dragged me to earth beside her, and kissed me and kissed me
  • again. We kissed, we embraced and kissed again, all without a word; we
  • desisted, we stared and hesitated--then in a suddenly damped mood and a
  • little perplexed at ourselves, crawled out, to be presently run down and
  • caught in the tamest way by Archie.
  • That comes back very clearly to me, and other vague memories--I know
  • old Hall and his gun, out shooting at jackdaws, came into our common
  • experiences, but I don’t remember how; and then at last, abruptly, our
  • fight in the Warren stands out. The Warren, like most places in England
  • that have that name, was not particularly a warren, it was a long slope
  • of thorns and beeches through which a path ran, and made an alternative
  • route to the downhill carriage road between Bladesover and Ropedean. I
  • don’t know how we three got there, but I have an uncertain fancy it was
  • connected with a visit paid by the governess to the Ropedean vicarage
  • people. But suddenly Archie and I, in discussing a game, fell into a
  • dispute for Beatrice. I had made him the fairest offer: I was to be a
  • Spanish nobleman, she was to be my wife, and he was to be a tribe of
  • Indians trying to carry her off. It seems to me a fairly attractive
  • offer to a boy to be a whole tribe of Indians with a chance of such a
  • booty. But Archie suddenly took offence.
  • “No,” he said; “we can’t have that!”
  • “Can’t have what?”
  • “You can’t be a gentleman, because you aren’t. And you can’t play
  • Beatrice is your wife. It’s--it’s impertinent.”
  • “But” I said, and looked at her.
  • Some earlier grudge in the day’s affairs must have been in Archie’s
  • mind. “We let you play with us,” said Archie; “but we can’t have things
  • like that.”
  • “What rot!” said Beatrice. “He can if he likes.”
  • But he carried his point. I let him carry it, and only began to grow
  • angry three or four minutes later. Then we were still discussing play
  • and disputing about another game. Nothing seemed right for all of us.
  • “We don’t want you to play with us at all,” said Archie.
  • “Yes, we do,” said Beatrice.
  • “He drops his aitches like anything.”
  • “No, ‘e doesn’t,” said I, in the heat of the moment.
  • “There you go!” he cried. “E, he says. E! E! E!”
  • He pointed a finger at me. He had struck to the heart of my shame. I
  • made the only possible reply by a rush at him. “Hello!” he cried, at my
  • blackavised attack. He dropped back into an attitude that had some style
  • in it, parried my blow, got back at my cheek, and laughed with surprise
  • and relief at his own success. Whereupon I became a thing of murderous
  • rage. He could box as well or better than I--he had yet to realise I
  • knew anything of that at all--but I had fought once or twice to a finish
  • with bare fists. I was used to inflicting and enduring savage hurting,
  • and I doubt if he had ever fought. I hadn’t fought ten seconds before
  • I felt this softness in him, realised all that quality of modern
  • upper-class England that never goes to the quick, that hedges about
  • rules and those petty points of honour that are the ultimate comminution
  • of honour, that claims credit for things demonstrably half done. He
  • seemed to think that first hit of his and one or two others were going
  • to matter, that I ought to give in when presently my lip bled and
  • dripped blood upon my clothes. So before we had been at it a minute
  • he had ceased to be aggressive except in momentary spurts, and I was
  • knocking him about almost as I wanted to do; and demanding breathlessly
  • and fiercely, after our school manner, whether he had had enough, not
  • knowing that by his high code and his soft training it was equally
  • impossible for him to either buck-up and beat me, or give in.
  • I have a very distinct impression of Beatrice dancing about us during
  • the affair in a state of unladylike appreciation, but I was too
  • preoccupied to hear much of what she was saying. But she certainly
  • backed us both, and I am inclined to think now--it may be the
  • disillusionment of my ripened years--whichever she thought was winning.
  • Then young Garvell, giving way before my slogging, stumbled and fell
  • over a big flint, and I, still following the tradition of my class and
  • school, promptly flung myself on him to finish him. We were busy
  • with each other on the ground when we became aware of a dreadful
  • interruption.
  • “Shut up, you FOOL!” said Archie.
  • “Oh, Lady Drew!” I heard Beatrice cry. “They’re fighting! They’re
  • fighting something awful!”
  • I looked over my shoulder. Archie’s wish to get up became irresistible,
  • and my resolve to go on with him vanished altogether.
  • I became aware of the two old ladies, presences of black and purple silk
  • and fur and shining dark things; they had walked up through the Warren,
  • while the horses took the hill easily, and so had come upon us. Beatrice
  • had gone to them at once with an air of taking refuge, and stood beside
  • and a little behind them. We both rose dejectedly. The two old ladies
  • were evidently quite dreadfully shocked, and peering at us with their
  • poor old eyes; and never had I seen such a tremblement in Lady Drew’s
  • lorgnettes.
  • “You’ve never been fighting?” said Lady Drew.
  • “You have been fighting.”
  • “It wasn’t proper fighting,” snapped Archie, with accusing eyes on me.
  • “It’s Mrs. Ponderevo’s George!” said Miss Somerville, so adding a
  • conviction for ingratitude to my evident sacrilege.
  • “How could he DARE?” cried Lady Drew, becoming very awful.
  • “He broke the rules” said Archie, sobbing for breath. “I slipped,
  • and--he hit me while I was down. He knelt on me.”
  • “How could you DARE?” said Lady Drew.
  • I produced an experienced handkerchief rolled up into a tight ball, and
  • wiped the blood from my chin, but I offered no explanation of my daring.
  • Among other things that prevented that, I was too short of breath.
  • “He didn’t fight fair,” sobbed Archie.
  • Beatrice, from behind the old ladies, regarded me intently and without
  • hostility. I am inclined to think the modification of my face through
  • the damage to my lip interested her. It became dimly apparent to my
  • confused intelligence that I must not say these two had been playing
  • with me. That would not be after the rules of their game. I resolved
  • in this difficult situation upon a sulky silence, and to take whatever
  • consequences might follow.
  • IX
  • The powers of justice in Bladesover made an extraordinary mess of my
  • case.
  • I have regretfully to admit that the Honourable Beatrice Normandy did,
  • at the age of ten, betray me, abandon me, and lie most abominably about
  • me. She was, as a matter of fact, panic-stricken about me, conscience
  • stricken too; she bolted from the very thought of my being her affianced
  • lover and so forth, from the faintest memory of kissing; she was
  • indeed altogether disgraceful and human in her betrayal. She and her
  • half-brother lied in perfect concord, and I was presented as a wanton
  • assailant of my social betters. They were waiting about in the Warren,
  • when I came up and spoke to them, etc.
  • On the whole, I now perceive Lady Drew’s decisions were, in the light of
  • the evidence, reasonable and merciful.
  • They were conveyed to me by my mother, who was, I really believe, even
  • more shocked by the grossness of my social insubordination than Lady
  • Drew. She dilated on her ladyship’s kindnesses to me, on the effrontery
  • and wickedness of my procedure, and so came at last to the terms of my
  • penance. “You must go up to young Mr. Garvell, and beg his pardon.”
  • “I won’t beg his pardon,” I said, speaking for the first time.
  • My mother paused, incredulous.
  • I folded my arms on her table-cloth, and delivered my wicked little
  • ultimatum. “I won’t beg his pardon nohow,” I said. “See?”
  • “Then you will have to go off to your uncle Frapp at Chatham.”
  • “I don’t care where I have to go or what I have to do, I won’t beg his
  • pardon,” I said.
  • And I didn’t.
  • After that I was one against the world. Perhaps in my mother’s heart
  • there lurked some pity for me, but she did not show it. She took the
  • side of the young gentleman; she tried hard, she tried very hard, to
  • make me say I was sorry I had struck him. Sorry!
  • I couldn’t explain.
  • So I went into exile in the dog-cart to Redwood station, with Jukes the
  • coachman, coldly silent, driving me, and all my personal belongings in a
  • small American cloth portmanteau behind.
  • I felt I had much to embitter me; the game had and the beginnings of
  • fairness by any standards I knew.... But the thing that embittered me
  • most was that the Honourable Beatrice Normandy should have repudiated
  • and fled from me as though I was some sort of leper, and not even have
  • taken a chance or so, to give me a good-bye. She might have done that
  • anyhow! Supposing I had told on her! But the son of a servant counts as
  • a servant. She had forgotten and now remembered.
  • I solaced myself with some extraordinary dream of coming back to
  • Bladesover, stern, powerful, after the fashion of Coriolanus. I do not
  • recall the details, but I have no doubt I displayed great magnanimity...
  • Well, anyhow I never said I was sorry for pounding young Garvell, and I
  • am not sorry to this day.
  • CHAPTER THE SECOND
  • OF MY LAUNCH INTO THE WORLD AND THE LAST I SAW OF BLADESOVER
  • I
  • When I was thus banished from Bladesover House, as it was then thought
  • for good and all, I was sent by my mother in a vindictive spirit,
  • first to her cousin Nicodemus Frapp, and then, as a fully indentured
  • apprentice, to my uncle Ponderevo.
  • I ran away from the care of my cousin Nicodemus back to Bladesover
  • House.
  • My cousin Nicodemus Frapp was a baker in a back street--a slum
  • rather--just off that miserable narrow mean high road that threads those
  • exquisite beads, Rochester and Chatham. He was, I must admit, a shock
  • to me, much dominated by a young, plump, prolific, malingering wife;
  • a bent, slow-moving, unwilling dark man with flour in his hair and
  • eyelashes, in the lines of his face and the seams of his coat. I’ve
  • never had a chance to correct my early impression of him, and he still
  • remains an almost dreadful memory, a sort of caricature of incompetent
  • simplicity. As I remember him, indeed, he presented the servile
  • tradition perfected. He had no pride in his person; fine clothes and
  • dressing up wasn’t “for the likes of” him, so that he got his wife, who
  • was no artist at it, to cut his black hair at irregular intervals, and
  • let his nails become disagreeable to the fastidious eye; he had no pride
  • in his business nor any initiative; his only virtues were not doing
  • certain things and hard work. “Your uncle,” said my mother--all grown-up
  • cousins were uncles by courtesy among the Victorian middle-class--“isn’t
  • much to look at or talk to, but he’s a Good Hard-Working Man.” There
  • was a sort of base honourableness about toil, however needless, in that
  • system of inversion. Another point of honour was to rise at or before
  • dawn, and then laboriously muddle about.
  • It was very distinctly impressed on my mind that the Good Hard-Working
  • Man would have thought it “fal-lallish” to own a pocket handkerchief.
  • Poor old Frapp--dirty and crushed by, product of, Bladesover’s
  • magnificence! He made no fight against the world at all, he was
  • floundering in small debts that were not so small but that finally they
  • overwhelmed him, whenever there was occasion for any exertion his
  • wife fell back upon pains and her “condition,” and God sent them many
  • children, most of whom died, and so, by their coming and going, gave a
  • double exercise in the virtues of submission.
  • Resignation to God’s will was the common device of these people in
  • the face of every duty and every emergency. There were no books in the
  • house; I doubt if either of them had retained the capacity for reading
  • consecutively for more than a minute or so, and it was with amazement
  • that day after day, over and above stale bread, one beheld food and
  • again more food amidst the litter that held permanent session on the
  • living-room table.
  • One might have doubted if either of them felt discomfort in this
  • dusty darkness of existence, if it was not that they did visibly seek
  • consolation. They sought this and found it of a Sunday, not in strong
  • drink and raving, but in imaginary draughts of blood. They met with
  • twenty or thirty other darkened and unclean people, all dressed in dingy
  • colours that would not show the dirt, in a little brick-built chapel
  • equipped with a spavined roarer of a harmonium, and there solaced their
  • minds on the thought that all that was fair and free in life, all that
  • struggled, all that planned and made, all pride and beauty and honour,
  • all fine and enjoyable things, were irrevocably damned to everlasting
  • torments. They were the self-appointed confidants of God’s mockery of
  • his own creation. So at any rate they stick in my mind. Vaguer, and yet
  • hardly less agreeable than this cosmic jest, this coming “Yah, clever!”
  • and general serving out and “showing up” of the lucky, the bold, and the
  • cheerful, was their own predestination to Glory.
  • “There is a Fountain, filled with Blood
  • Drawn from Emmanuel’s Veins,”
  • so they sang. I hear the drone and wheeze of that hymn now. I hated them
  • with the bitter uncharitable condemnation of boyhood, and a twinge of
  • that hate comes back to me. As I write the words, the sounds and then
  • the scene return, these obscure, undignified people, a fat woman with
  • asthma, an old Welsh milk-seller with a tumour on his bald head, who was
  • the intellectual leader of the sect, a huge-voiced haberdasher with
  • a big black beard, a white-faced, extraordinarily pregnant woman, his
  • wife, a spectacled rate collector with a bent back.... I hear the talk
  • about souls, the strange battered old phrases that were coined ages ago
  • in the seaports of the sun-dry Levant, of balm of Gilead and manna in
  • the desert, of gourds that give shade and water in a thirsty land; I
  • recall again the way in which at the conclusion of the service the talk
  • remained pious in form but became medical in substance, and how the
  • women got together for obstetric whisperings. I, as a boy, did not
  • matter, and might overhear.
  • If Bladesover is my key for the explanation of England, I think my
  • invincible persuasion that I understand Russia was engendered by the
  • circle of Uncle Frapp.
  • I slept in a dingy sheeted bed with the two elder survivors of Frapp
  • fecundity, and spent my week days in helping in the laborious disorder
  • of the shop and bakehouse, in incidental deliveries of bread and so
  • forth, and in parrying the probings of my uncle into my relations
  • with the Blood, and his confidential explanations that ten shillings
  • a week--which was what my mother paid him--was not enough to cover my
  • accommodation. He was very anxious to keep that, but also he wanted
  • more. There were neither books nor any seat nor corner in that house
  • where reading was possible, no newspaper ever brought the clash of
  • worldly things into its heavenward seclusion; horror of it all grew in
  • me daily, and whenever I could I escaped into the streets and tramped
  • about Chatham. The news shops appealed to me particularly. One saw
  • there smudgy illustrated sheets, the Police News in particular, in
  • which vilely drawn pictures brought home to the dullest intelligence an
  • interminable succession of squalid crimes, women murdered and put into
  • boxes, buried under floors, old men bludgeoned at midnight by robbers,
  • people thrust suddenly out of trains, happy lovers shot, vitrioled and
  • so forth by rivals. I got my first glimpse of the life of pleasure in
  • foully drawn pictures of “police raids” on this and that. Interspersed
  • with these sheets were others in which Sloper, the urban John Bull, had
  • his fling with gin bottle and obese umbrella, or the kindly empty faces
  • of the Royal Family appeared and reappeared, visiting this, opening
  • that, getting married, getting offspring, lying in state, doing
  • everything but anything, a wonderful, good-meaning, impenetrable race
  • apart.
  • I have never revisited Chatham; the impression it has left on my mind is
  • one of squalid compression, unlit by any gleam of a maturer charity.
  • All its effects arranged themselves as antithetical to the Bladesover
  • effects. They confirmed and intensified all that Bladesover suggested.
  • Bladesover declared itself to be the land, to be essentially England; I
  • have already told how its airy spaciousness, its wide dignity, seemed to
  • thrust village, church, and vicarage into corners, into a secondary and
  • conditional significance. Here one gathered the corollary of that. Since
  • the whole wide country of Kent was made up of contiguous Bladesovers
  • and for the gentlefolk, the surplus of population, all who were not
  • good tenants nor good labourers, Church of England, submissive and
  • respectful, were necessarily thrust together, jostled out of sight, to
  • fester as they might in this place that had the colours and even the
  • smells of a well-packed dustbin. They should be grateful even for that;
  • that, one felt, was the theory of it all.
  • And I loafed about this wilderness of crowded dinginess, with young,
  • receptive, wide-open eyes, and through the blessing (or curse) of some
  • fairy godmother of mine, asking and asking again: “But after all, WHY--”
  • I wandered up through Rochester once, and had a glimpse of the Stour
  • valley above the town, all horrible with cement works and foully smoking
  • chimneys and rows of workmen’s cottages, minute, ugly, uncomfortable,
  • and grimy. So I had my first intimation of how industrialism must live
  • in a landlord’s land. I spent some hours, too, in the streets that give
  • upon the river, drawn by the spell of the sea. But I saw barges and
  • ships stripped of magic and mostly devoted to cement, ice, timber, and
  • coal. The sailors looked to me gross and slovenly men, and the shipping
  • struck me as clumsy, ugly, old, and dirty. I discovered that most sails
  • don’t fit the ships that hoist them, and that there may be as pitiful
  • and squalid a display of poverty with a vessel as with a man. When I
  • saw colliers unloading, watched the workers in the hold filling up silly
  • little sacks and the succession of blackened, half-naked men that ran to
  • and fro with these along a plank over a thirty-foot drop into filth and
  • mud, I was first seized with admiration of their courage and toughness
  • and then, “But after all, WHY--?” and the stupid ugliness of all this
  • waste of muscle and endurance came home to me. Among other things it
  • obviously wasted and deteriorated the coal.... And I had imagined great
  • things of the sea!
  • Well, anyhow, for a time that vocation was stilled.
  • But such impressions came into my leisure, and of that I had no excess.
  • Most of my time was spent doing things for Uncle Frapp, and my evenings
  • and nights perforce in the company of the two eldest of my cousins.
  • He was errand boy at an oil shop and fervently pious, and of him I saw
  • nothing until the evening except at meals; the other was enjoying the
  • midsummer holidays without any great elation; a singularly thin and
  • abject, stunted creature he was, whose chief liveliness was to pretend
  • to be a monkey, and who I am now convinced had some secret disease that
  • drained his vitality away. If I met him now I should think him a pitiful
  • little creature and be extremely sorry for him. Then I felt only a
  • wondering aversion. He sniffed horribly, he was tired out by a couple
  • of miles of loafing, he never started any conversation, and he seemed to
  • prefer his own company to mine. His mother, poor woman, said he was the
  • “thoughtful one.”
  • Serious trouble came suddenly out of a conversation we held in bed one
  • night. Some particularly pious phrase of my elder cousin’s irritated me
  • extremely, and I avowed outright my entire disbelief in the whole scheme
  • of revealed religion. I had never said a word about my doubts to any one
  • before, except to Ewart who had first evolved them. I had never settled
  • my doubts until at this moment when I spoke. But it came to me then that
  • the whole scheme of salvation of the Frappes was not simply doubtful,
  • but impossible. I fired this discovery out into the darkness with the
  • greatest promptitude.
  • My abrupt denials certainly scared my cousin amazingly.
  • At first they could not understand what I was saying, and when they
  • did I fully believe they expected an instant answer in thunderbolts and
  • flames. They gave me more room in the bed forthwith, and then the elder
  • sat up and expressed his sense of my awfulness. I was already a little
  • frightened at my temerity, but when he asked me categorically to unsay
  • what I had said, what could I do but confirm my repudiation?
  • “There’s no hell,” I said, “and no eternal punishment. No God would be
  • such a fool as that.”
  • My elder cousin cried aloud in horror, and the younger lay scared, but
  • listening. “Then you mean,” said my elder cousin, when at last he could
  • bring himself to argue, “you might do just as you liked?”
  • “If you were cad enough,” said I.
  • Our little voices went on interminably, and at one stage my cousin got
  • out of bed and made his brother do likewise, and knelt in the night
  • dimness and prayed at me. That I found trying, but I held out valiantly.
  • “Forgive him,” said my cousin, “he knows not what he sayeth.”
  • “You can pray if you like,” I said, “but if you’re going to cheek me in
  • your prayers I draw the line.”
  • The last I remember of that great discussion was my cousin deploring the
  • fact that he “should ever sleep in the same bed with an Infidel!”
  • The next day he astonished me by telling the whole business to his
  • father. This was quite outside all my codes. Uncle Nicodemus sprang it
  • upon me at the midday meal.
  • “You been sayin’ queer things, George,” he said abruptly. “You better
  • mind what you’re saying.”
  • “What did he say, father?” said Mrs. Frapp.
  • “Things I couldn’t’ repeat,” said he.
  • “What things?” I asked hotly.
  • “Ask ‘IM,” said my uncle, pointing with his knife to his informant,
  • and making me realise the nature of my offence. My aunt looked at the
  • witness. “Not--?” she framed a question.
  • “Wuss,” said my uncle. “Blarsphemy.”
  • My aunt couldn’t touch another mouthful. I was already a little troubled
  • in my conscience by my daring, and now I began to feel the black
  • enormity of the course upon which I had embarked.
  • “I was only talking sense,” I said.
  • I had a still more dreadful moment when presently I met my cousin in the
  • brick alley behind the yard, that led back to his grocer’s shop.
  • “You sneak!” I said, and smacked his face hard forthwith. “Now then,”
  • said I.
  • He started back, astonished and alarmed. His eyes met mine, and I saw a
  • sudden gleam of resolution. He turned his other cheek to me.
  • “‘It ‘it,” he said. ““It ‘it. I’LL forgive you.”
  • I felt I had never encountered a more detestable way of evading a
  • licking. I shoved him against the wall and left him there, forgiving me,
  • and went back into the house.
  • “You better not speak to your cousins, George,” said my aunt, “till
  • you’re in a better state of mind.”
  • I became an outcast forthwith. At supper that night a gloomy silence was
  • broken by my cousin saying,
  • “‘E ‘it me for telling you, and I turned the other cheek, muvver.”
  • “‘E’s got the evil one be’ind ‘im now, a ridin’ on ‘is back,” said my
  • aunt, to the grave discomfort of the eldest girl, who sat beside me.
  • After supper my uncle, in a few ill-chosen words, prayed me to repent
  • before I slept.
  • “Suppose you was took in your sleep, George,” he said; “where’d you
  • be then? You jest think of that me boy.” By this time I was thoroughly
  • miserable and frightened, and this suggestion unnerved me dreadfully but
  • I kept up an impenitent front. “To wake in ‘ell,” said Uncle Nicodemus,
  • in gentle tones. “You don’t want to wake in ‘ell, George, burnin’ and
  • screamin’ for ever, do you? You wouldn’t like that?”
  • He tried very hard to get me to “jest ‘ave a look at the bake’ouse fire”
  • before I retired. “It might move you,” he said.
  • I was awake longest that night. My cousins slept, the sleep of faith
  • on either side of me. I decided I would whisper my prayers, and stopped
  • midway because I was ashamed, and perhaps also because I had an idea one
  • didn’t square God like that.
  • “No,” I said, with a sudden confidence, “damn me if you’re coward
  • enough.... But you’re not. No! You couldn’t be!”
  • I woke my cousins up with emphatic digs, and told them as much,
  • triumphantly, and went very peacefully to sleep with my act of faith
  • accomplished.
  • I slept not only through that night, but for all my nights since then.
  • So far as any fear of Divine injustice goes, I sleep soundly, and
  • shall, I know, to the end of things. That declaration was an epoch in my
  • spiritual life.
  • II
  • But I didn’t expect to have the whole meeting on Sunday turned on to me.
  • It was. It all comes back to me, that convergence of attention, even the
  • faint leathery smell of its atmosphere returns, and the coarse feel of
  • my aunt’s black dress beside me in contact with my hand. I see again
  • the old Welsh milkman “wrestling” with me, they all wrestled with me, by
  • prayer or exhortation. And I was holding out stoutly, though convinced
  • now by the contagion of their universal conviction that by doing so I
  • was certainly and hopelessly damned. I felt that they were right, that
  • God was probably like them, and that on the whole it didn’t matter.
  • And to simplify the business thoroughly I had declared I didn’t believe
  • anything at all. They confuted me by texts from Scripture which I now
  • perceive was an illegitimate method of reply. When I got home, still
  • impenitent and eternally lost and secretly very lonely and miserable and
  • alarmed, Uncle Nicodemus docked my Sunday pudding.
  • One person only spoke to me like a human being on that day of wrath, and
  • that was the younger Frapp. He came up to me in the afternoon while I
  • was confined upstairs with a Bible and my own thoughts.
  • “‘Ello,” he said, and fretted about.
  • “D’you mean to say there isn’t--no one,” he said, funking the word.
  • “No one?”
  • “No one watching yer--always.”
  • “Why should there be?” I asked.
  • “You can’t ‘elp thoughts,” said my cousin, “anyhow. You mean--” He
  • stopped hovering. “I s’pose I oughtn’t to be talking to you.”
  • He hesitated and flitted away with a guilty back glance over his
  • shoulder....
  • The following week made life quite intolerable for me; these people
  • forced me at last into an Atheism that terrified me. When I learnt
  • that next Sunday the wrestling was to be resumed, my courage failed me
  • altogether.
  • I happened upon a map of Kent in a stationer’s window on Saturday, and
  • that set me thinking of one form of release. I studied it intently for
  • half an hour perhaps, on Saturday night, got a route list of villages
  • well fixed in my memory, and got up and started for Bladesover about
  • five on Sunday morning while my two bed mates were still fast asleep.
  • III
  • I remember something, but not so much of it as I should like to recall,
  • of my long tramp to Bladesover House. The distance from Chatham is
  • almost exactly seventeen miles, and it took me until nearly one. It was
  • very interesting and I do not think I was very fatigued, though I got
  • rather pinched by one boot.
  • The morning must have been very clear, because I remember that near
  • Itchinstow Hall I looked back and saw the estuary of the Thames, that
  • river that has since played so large a part in my life. But at the time
  • I did not know it was the Thames, I thought this great expanse of mud
  • flats and water was the sea, which I had never yet seen nearly. And
  • out upon it stood ships, sailing ships and a steamer or so, going up to
  • London or down out into the great seas of the world. I stood for a long
  • time watching these and thinking whether after all I should not have
  • done better to have run away to sea.
  • The nearer I drew to Bladesover, the more doubtful I grew of the duality
  • of my reception, and the more I regretted that alternative. I suppose it
  • was the dirty clumsiness of the shipping I had seen nearly, that put me
  • out of mind of that. I took a short cut through the Warren across the
  • corner of the main park to intercept the people from the church. I
  • wanted to avoid meeting any one before I met my mother, and so I went to
  • a place where the path passed between banks, and without exactly hiding,
  • stood up among the bushes. This place among other advantages eliminated
  • any chance of seeing Lady Drew, who would drive round by the carriage
  • road.
  • Standing up to waylay in this fashion I had a queer feeling of
  • brigandage, as though I was some intrusive sort of bandit among these
  • orderly things. It is the first time I remember having that outlaw
  • feeling distinctly, a feeling that has played a large part in my
  • subsequent life. I felt there existed no place for me that I had to
  • drive myself in.
  • Presently, down the hill, the servants appeared, straggling by twos and
  • threes, first some of the garden people and the butler’s wife with them,
  • then the two laundry maids, odd inseparable old creatures, then the
  • first footman talking to the butler’s little girl, and at last, walking
  • grave and breathless beside old Ann and Miss Fison, the black figure of
  • my mother.
  • My boyish mind suggested the adoption of a playful form of appearance.
  • “Coo-ee, mother” said I, coming out against the sky, “Coo-ee!”
  • My mother looked up, went very white, and put her hand to her bosom.
  • I suppose there was a fearful fuss about me. And of course I was quite
  • unable to explain my reappearance. But I held out stoutly, “I won’t
  • go back to Chatham; I’ll drown myself first.” The next day my mother
  • carried me off to Wimblehurst, took me fiercely and aggressively to an
  • uncle I had never heard of before, near though the place was to us. She
  • gave me no word as to what was to happen, and I was too subdued by
  • her manifest wrath and humiliation at my last misdemeanour to demand
  • information. I don’t for one moment think Lady Drew was “nice” about me.
  • The finality of my banishment was endorsed and underlined and stamped
  • home. I wished very much now that I had run away to sea, in spite of the
  • coal dust and squalour Rochester had revealed to me. Perhaps over seas
  • one came to different lands.
  • IV
  • I do not remember much of my journey to Wimblehurst with my mother
  • except the image of her as sitting bolt upright, as rather disdaining
  • the third-class carriage in which we traveled, and how she looked away
  • from me out of the window when she spoke of my uncle. “I have not seen
  • your uncle,” she said, “since he was a boy....” She added grudgingly,
  • “Then he was supposed to be clever.”
  • She took little interest in such qualities as cleverness.
  • “He married about three years ago, and set up for himself in
  • Wimblehurst.... So I suppose she had some money.”
  • She mused on scenes she had long dismissed from her mind. “Teddy,” she
  • said at last in the tone of one who has been feeling in the dark
  • and finds. “He was called Teddy... about your age.... Now he must be
  • twenty-six or seven.”
  • I thought of my uncle as Teddy directly I saw him; there was something
  • in his personal appearance that in the light of that memory phrased
  • itself at once as Teddiness--a certain Teddidity. To describe it in
  • and other terms is more difficult. It is nimbleness without grace, and
  • alertness without intelligence. He whisked out of his shop upon the
  • pavement, a short figure in grey and wearing grey carpet slippers; one
  • had a sense of a young fattish face behind gilt glasses, wiry hair that
  • stuck up and forward over the forehead, an irregular nose that had its
  • aquiline moments, and that the body betrayed an equatorial laxity, an
  • incipient “bow window” as the image goes. He jerked out of the shop,
  • came to a stand on the pavement outside, regarded something in the
  • window with infinite appreciation, stroked his chin, and, as abruptly,
  • shot sideways into the door again, charging through it as it were behind
  • an extended hand.
  • “That must be him,” said my mother, catching at her breath.
  • We came past the window whose contents I was presently to know by heart,
  • a very ordinary chemist’s window except that there was a frictional
  • electrical machine, an air pump and two or three tripods and retorts
  • replacing the customary blue, yellow, and red bottles above. There was
  • a plaster of Paris horse to indicate veterinary medicines among these
  • breakables, and below were scent packets and diffusers and sponges and
  • soda-water syphons and such-like things. Only in the middle there was a
  • rubricated card, very neatly painted by hand, with these words--
  • Buy Ponderevo’s Cough Linctus NOW.
  • NOW!
  • WHY?
  • Twopence Cheaper than in Winter.
  • You Store apples! why not the Medicine
  • You are Bound to Need?
  • in which appeal I was to recognise presently my uncle’s distinctive
  • note.
  • My uncle’s face appeared above a card of infant’s comforters in the
  • glass pane of the door. I perceived his eyes were brown, and that his
  • glasses creased his nose. It was manifest he did not know us from Adam.
  • A stare of scrutiny allowed an expression of commercial deference to
  • appear in front of it, and my uncle flung open the door.
  • “You don’t know me?” panted my mother.
  • My uncle would not own he did not, but his curiosity was manifest. My
  • mother sat down on one of the little chairs before the soap and patent
  • medicine-piled counter, and her lips opened and closed.
  • “A glass of water, madam,” said my uncle, waved his hand in a sort of
  • curve and shot away.
  • My mother drank the water and spoke. “That boy,” she said, “takes after
  • his father. He grows more like him every day.... And so I have brought
  • him to you.”
  • “His father, madam?”
  • “George.”
  • For a moment the chemist was still at a loss. He stood behind the
  • counter with the glass my mother had returned to him in his hand. Then
  • comprehension grew.
  • “By Gosh!” he said. “Lord!” he cried. His glasses fell off. He
  • disappeared replacing them, behind a pile of boxed-up bottles of blood
  • mixture. “Eleven thousand virgins!” I heard him cry. The glass was
  • banged down. “O-ri-ental Gums!”
  • He shot away out of the shop through some masked door. One heard his
  • voice. “Susan! Susan!”
  • Then he reappeared with an extended hand. “Well, how are you?” he said.
  • “I was never so surprised in my life. Fancy!... You!”
  • He shook my mother’s impassive hand and then mine very warmly holding
  • his glasses on with his left forefinger.
  • “Come right in!” he cried--“come right in! Better late than never!” and
  • led the way into the parlour behind the shop.
  • After Bladesover that apartment struck me as stuffy and petty, but it
  • was very comfortable in comparison with the Frapp living-room. It had
  • a faint, disintegrating smell of meals about it, and my most immediate
  • impression was of the remarkable fact that something was hung about
  • or wrapped round or draped over everything. There was bright-patterned
  • muslin round the gas-bracket in the middle of the room, round the mirror
  • over the mantel, stuff with ball-fringe along the mantel and casing in
  • the fireplace,--I first saw ball-fringe here--and even the lamp on the
  • little bureau wore a shade like a large muslin hat. The table-cloth had
  • ball-fringe and so had the window curtains, and the carpet was a bed of
  • roses. There were little cupboards on either side of the fireplace, and
  • in the recesses, ill-made shelves packed with books, and enriched with
  • pinked American cloth. There was a dictionary lying face downward on
  • the table, and the open bureau was littered with foolscap paper and
  • the evidences of recently abandoned toil. My eye caught “The Ponderevo
  • Patent Flat, a Machine you can Live in,” written in large firm letters.
  • My uncle opened a little door like a cupboard door in the corner of this
  • room, and revealed the narrowest twist of staircase I had ever set
  • eyes upon. “Susan!” he bawled again. “Wantje. Some one to see you.
  • Surprisin’.”
  • There came an inaudible reply, and a sudden loud bump over our heads
  • as of some article of domestic utility pettishly flung aside, then
  • the cautious steps of someone descending the twist, and then my aunt
  • appeared in the doorway with her hand upon the jamb.
  • “It’s Aunt Ponderevo,” cried my uncle. “George’s wife--and she’s brought
  • over her son!” His eye roamed about the room. He darted to the bureau
  • with a sudden impulse, and turned the sheet about the patent flat
  • face down. Then he waved his glasses at us, “You know, Susan, my elder
  • brother George. I told you about ‘im lots of times.”
  • He fretted across to the hearthrug and took up a position there,
  • replaced his glasses and coughed.
  • My aunt Susan seemed to be taking it in. She was then rather a pretty
  • slender woman of twenty-three or four, I suppose, and I remember being
  • struck by the blueness of her eyes and the clear freshness of her
  • complexion. She had little features, a button nose, a pretty chin and a
  • long graceful neck that stuck out of her pale blue cotton morning
  • dress. There was a look of half-assumed perplexity on her face, a little
  • quizzical wrinkle of the brow that suggested a faintly amused attempt
  • to follow my uncle’s mental operations, a vain attempt and a certain
  • hopelessness that had in succession become habitual. She seemed to be
  • saying, “Oh Lord! What’s he giving me THIS time?” And as came to know
  • her better I detected, as a complication of her effort of apprehension,
  • a subsidiary riddle to “What’s he giving me?” and that was--to borrow a
  • phrase from my schoolboy language “Is it keeps?” She looked at my mother
  • and me, and back to her husband again.
  • “You know,” he said. “George.”
  • “Well,” she said to my mother, descending the last three steps of the
  • staircase and holding out her hand! “you’re welcome. Though it’s a
  • surprise.... I can’t ask you to HAVE anything, I’m afraid, for there
  • isn’t anything in the house.” She smiled, and looked at her husband
  • banteringly. “Unless he makes up something with his old chemicals, which
  • he’s quite equal to doing.”
  • My mother shook hands stiffly, and told me to kiss my aunt....
  • “Well, let’s all sit down,” said my uncle, suddenly whistling through
  • his clenched teeth, and briskly rubbing his hands together. He put up a
  • chair for my mother, raised the blind of the little window, lowered it
  • again, and returned to his hearthrug. “I’m sure,” he said, as one who
  • decides, “I’m very glad to see you.”
  • V
  • As they talked I gave my attention pretty exclusively to my uncle.
  • I noted him in great detail. I remember now his partially unbuttoned
  • waistcoat, as though something had occurred to distract him as he did
  • it up, and a little cut upon his chin. I liked a certain humour in
  • his eyes. I watched, too, with the fascination that things have for an
  • observant boy, the play of his lips--they were a little oblique, and
  • there was something “slipshod,” if one may strain a word so far, about
  • his mouth, so that he lisped and sibilated ever and again and the coming
  • and going of a curious expression, triumphant in quality it was, upon
  • his face as he talked. He fingered his glasses, which did not seem to
  • fit his nose, fretted with things in his waistcoat pockets or put his
  • hands behind him, looked over our heads, and ever and again rose to his
  • toes and dropped back on his heels. He had a way of drawing air in at
  • times through his teeth that gave a whispering zest to his speech It’s a
  • sound I can only represent as a soft Zzzz.
  • He did most of the talking. My mother repeated what she had already said
  • in the shop, “I have brought George over to you,” and then desisted
  • for a time from the real business in hand. “You find this a
  • comfortable house?” she asked; and this being affirmed: “It looks--very
  • convenient.... Not too big to be a trouble--no. You like Wimblehurst, I
  • suppose?”
  • My uncle retorted with some inquiries about the great people of
  • Bladesover, and my mother answered in the character of a personal friend
  • of Lady Drew’s. The talk hung for a time, and then my uncle embarked
  • upon a dissertation upon Wimblehurst.
  • “This place,” he began, “isn’t of course quite the place I ought to be
  • in.”
  • My mother nodded as though she had expected that.
  • “It gives me no Scope,” he went on. “It’s dead-and-alive. Nothing
  • happens.”
  • “He’s always wanting something to happen,” said my aunt Susan. “Some day
  • he’ll get a shower of things and they’ll be too much for him.”
  • “Not they,” said my uncle, buoyantly.
  • “Do you find business--slack?” asked my mother.
  • “Oh! one rubs along. But there’s no Development--no growth. They just
  • come along here and buy pills when they want ‘em--and a horseball or
  • such. They’ve got to be ill before there’s a prescription. That sort
  • they are. You can’t get ‘em to launch out, you can’t get ‘em to take up
  • anything new. For instance, I’ve been trying lately--induce them to buy
  • their medicines in advance, and in larger quantities. But they won’t
  • look for it! Then I tried to float a little notion of mine, sort of an
  • insurance scheme for colds; you pay so much a week, and when you’ve got
  • a cold you get a bottle of Cough Linctus so long as you can produce a
  • substantial sniff. See? But Lord! they’ve no capacity for ideas, they
  • don’t catch on; no Jump about the place, no Life. Live!--they trickle,
  • and what one has to do here is to trickle too--Zzzz.”
  • “Ah!” said my mother.
  • “It doesn’t suit me,” said my uncle. “I’m the cascading sort.”
  • “George was that,” said my mother after a pondering moment.
  • My aunt Susan took up the parable with an affectionate glance at her
  • husband.
  • “He’s always trying to make his old business jump,” she said. “Always
  • putting fresh cards in the window, or getting up to something. You’d
  • hardly believe. It makes ME jump sometimes.”
  • “But it does no good,” said my uncle.
  • “It does no good,” said his wife. “It’s not his miloo...”
  • Presently they came upon a wide pause.
  • From the beginning of their conversation there had been the promise of
  • this pause, and I pricked my ears. I knew perfectly what was bound
  • to come; they were going to talk of my father. I was enormously
  • strengthened in my persuasion when I found my mother’s eyes resting
  • thoughtfully upon me in the silence, and than my uncle looked at me and
  • then my aunt. I struggled unavailingly to produce an expression of meek
  • stupidity.
  • “I think,” said my uncle, “that George will find it more amusing to have
  • a turn in the market-place than to sit here talking with us. There’s a
  • pair of stocks there, George--very interesting. Old-fashioned stocks.”
  • “I don’t mind sitting here,” I said.
  • My uncle rose and in the most friendly way led me through the shop. He
  • stood on his doorstep and jerked amiable directions to me.
  • “Ain’t it sleepy, George, eh? There’s the butcher’s dog over there,
  • asleep in the road-half an hour from midday! If the last Trump sounded
  • I don’t believe it would wake. Nobody would wake! The chaps up there in
  • the churchyard--they’d just turn over and say: ‘Naar--you don’t catch
  • us, you don’t! See?’.... Well, you’ll find the stocks just round that
  • corner.”
  • He watched me out of sight.
  • So I never heard what they said about my father after all.
  • VI
  • When I returned, my uncle had in some remarkable way become larger and
  • central. “Tha’chu, George?” he cried, when the shop-door bell sounded.
  • “Come right through”; and I found him, as it were, in the chairman’s
  • place before the draped grate.
  • The three of them regarded me.
  • “We have been talking of making you a chemist, George,” said my uncle.
  • My mother looked at me. “I had hoped,” she said, “that Lady Drew would
  • have done something for him--” She stopped.
  • “In what way?” said my uncle.
  • “She might have spoken to some one, got him into something perhaps....”
  • She had the servant’s invincible persuasion that all good things are
  • done by patronage.
  • “He is not the sort of boy for whom things are done,” she added,
  • dismissing these dreams. “He doesn’t accommodate himself. When he thinks
  • Lady Drew wishes a thing, he seems not to wish it. Towards Mr. Redgrave,
  • too, he has been--disrespectful--he is like his father.”
  • “Who’s Mr. Redgrave?”
  • “The Vicar.”
  • “A bit independent?” said my uncle, briskly.
  • “Disobedient,” said my mother. “He has no idea of his place. He seems to
  • think he can get on by slighting people and flouting them. He’ll learn
  • perhaps before it is too late.”
  • My uncle stroked his cut chin and me. “Have you learnt any Latin?” he
  • asked abruptly.
  • I said I had not.
  • “He’ll have to learn a little Latin,” he explained to my mother,
  • “to qualify. H’m. He could go down to the chap at the grammar school
  • here--it’s just been routed into existence again by the Charity
  • Commissioners and have lessons.”
  • “What, me learn Latin!” I cried, with emotion.
  • “A little,” he said.
  • “I’ve always wanted” I said and; “LATIN!”
  • I had long been obsessed by the idea that having no Latin was a
  • disadvantage in the world, and Archie Garvell had driven the point of
  • this pretty earnestly home. The literature I had read at Bladesover had
  • all tended that way. Latin had had a quality of emancipation for me that
  • I find it difficult to convey. And suddenly, when I had supposed all
  • learning was at an end for me, I heard this!
  • “It’s no good to you, of course,” said my uncle, “except to pass exams
  • with, but there you are!”
  • “You’ll have to learn Latin because you have to learn Latin,” said my
  • mother, “not because you want to. And afterwards you will have to learn
  • all sorts of other things....”
  • The idea that I was to go on learning, that to read and master the
  • contents of books was still to be justifiable as a duty, overwhelmed all
  • other facts. I had had it rather clear in my mind for some weeks that
  • all that kind of opportunity might close to me for ever. I began to take
  • a lively interest in this new project.
  • “Then shall I live here?” I asked, “with you, and study... as well as
  • work in the shop?”
  • “That’s the way of it,” said my uncle.
  • I parted from my mother that day in a dream, so sudden and important
  • was this new aspect of things to me. I was to learn Latin! Now that the
  • humiliation of my failure at Bladesover was past for her, now that she
  • had a little got over her first intense repugnance at this resort to my
  • uncle and contrived something that seemed like a possible provision for
  • my future, the tenderness natural to a parting far more significant than
  • any of our previous partings crept into her manner.
  • She sat in the train to return, I remember, and I stood at the open door
  • of her compartment, and neither of us knew how soon we should cease for
  • ever to be a trouble to one another.
  • “You must be a good boy, George,” she said. “You must learn.... And you
  • mustn’t set yourself up against those who are above you and better than
  • you.... Or envy them.”
  • “No, mother,” I said.
  • I promised carelessly. Her eyes were fixed upon me. I was wondering
  • whether I could by any means begin Latin that night.
  • Something touched her heart then, some thought, some memory; perhaps
  • some premonition.... The solitary porter began slamming carriage doors.
  • “George” she said hastily, almost shamefully, “kiss me!”
  • I stepped up into her compartment as she bent downward.
  • She caught me in her arms quite eagerly, she pressed me to her--a
  • strange thing for her to do. I perceived her eyes were extraordinarily
  • bright, and then this brightness burst along the lower lids and rolled
  • down her cheeks.
  • For the first and last time in my life I saw my mother’s tears. Then she
  • had gone, leaving me discomforted and perplexed, forgetting for a time
  • even that I was to learn Latin, thinking of my mother as of something
  • new and strange.
  • The thing recurred though I sought to dismiss it, it stuck itself
  • into my memory against the day of fuller understanding. Poor, proud,
  • habitual, sternly narrow soul! poor difficult and misunderstanding son!
  • it was the first time that ever it dawned upon me that my mother also
  • might perhaps feel.
  • VII
  • My mother died suddenly and, it was thought by Lady Drew,
  • inconsiderately, the following spring. Her ladyship instantly fled to
  • Folkestone with Miss Somerville and Fison, until the funeral should be
  • over and my mother’s successor installed.
  • My uncle took me over to the funeral. I remember there was a sort of
  • prolonged crisis in the days preceding this because, directly he heard
  • of my loss, he had sent a pair of check trousers to the Judkins people
  • in London to be dyed black, and they did not come back in time. He
  • became very excited on the third day, and sent a number of increasingly
  • fiery telegrams without any result whatever, and succumbed next morning
  • with a very ill grace to my aunt Susan’s insistence upon the resources
  • of his dress-suit. In my memory those black legs of his, in a
  • particularly thin and shiny black cloth--for evidently his dress-suit
  • dated from adolescent and slenderer days--straddle like the Colossus
  • of Rhodes over my approach to my mother’s funeral. Moreover, I was
  • inconvenienced and distracted by a silk hat he had bought me, my first
  • silk hat, much ennobled, as his was also, by a deep mourning band.
  • I remember, but rather indistinctly, my mother’s white paneled
  • housekeeper’s room and the touch of oddness about it that she was not
  • there, and the various familiar faces made strange by black, and I seem
  • to recall the exaggerated self-consciousness that arose out of their
  • focussed attention. No doubt the sense of the new silk hat came and went
  • and came again in my emotional chaos. Then something comes out clear and
  • sorrowful, rises out clear and sheer from among all these rather base
  • and inconsequent things, and once again I walk before all the other
  • mourners close behind her coffin as it is carried along the churchyard
  • path to her grave, with the old vicar’s slow voice saying regretfully
  • and unconvincingly above me, triumphant solemn things.
  • “I am the resurrection and the life, saith the Lord; he that believeth
  • in me, though he were dead, yet shall he live: and whosoever liveth and
  • believeth in me shall never die.”
  • Never die! The day was a high and glorious morning in spring, and all
  • the trees were budding and bursting into green. Everywhere there were
  • blossoms and flowers; the pear trees and cherry trees in the sexton’s
  • garden were sunlit snow, there were nodding daffodils and early tulips
  • in the graveyard beds, great multitudes of daisies, and everywhere
  • the birds seemed singing. And in the middle was the brown coffin end,
  • tilting on men’s shoulders and half occluded by the vicar’s Oxford hood.
  • And so we came to my mother’s waiting grave.
  • For a time I was very observant, watching the coffin lowered, hearing
  • the words of the ritual. It seemed a very curious business altogether.
  • Suddenly as the service drew to its end, I felt something had still
  • to be said which had not been said, realised that she had withdrawn
  • in silence, neither forgiving me nor hearing from me--those now lost
  • assurances. Suddenly I knew I had not understood. Suddenly I saw her
  • tenderly; remembered not so much tender or kindly things of her as her
  • crossed wishes and the ways in which I had thwarted her. Surprisingly
  • I realised that behind all her hardness and severity she had loved me,
  • that I was the only thing she had ever loved and that until this moment
  • I had never loved her. And now she was there and deaf and blind to me,
  • pitifully defeated in her designs for me, covered from me so that she
  • could not know....
  • I dug my nails into the palms of my hands, I set my teeth, but tears
  • blinded me, sobs would have choked me had speech been required of me.
  • The old vicar read on, there came a mumbled response--and so on to the
  • end. I wept as it were internally, and only when we had come out of the
  • churchyard could I think and speak calmly again.
  • Stamped across this memory are the little black figures of my uncle and
  • Rabbits, telling Avebury, the sexton and undertaker, that “it had all
  • passed off very well--very well indeed.”
  • VIII
  • That is the last I shall tell of Bladesover. The dropscene falls on
  • that, and it comes no more as an actual presence into this novel. I
  • did indeed go back there once again, but under circumstances quite
  • immaterial to my story. But in a sense Bladesover has never left me;
  • it is, as I said at the outset, one of those dominant explanatory
  • impressions that make the framework of my mind. Bladesover illuminates
  • England; it has become all that is spacious, dignified pretentious, and
  • truly conservative in English life. It is my social datum. That is why I
  • have drawn it here on so large a scale.
  • When I came back at last to the real Bladesover on an inconsequent
  • visit, everything was far smaller than I could have supposed possible.
  • It was as though everything had shivered and shrivelled a little at the
  • Lichtenstein touch. The harp was still in the saloon, but there was a
  • different grand piano with a painted lid and a metrostyle pianola, and
  • an extraordinary quantity of artistic litter and bric-a-brac scattered
  • about. There was the trail of the Bond Street showroom over it all. The
  • furniture was still under chintz, but it wasn’t the same sort of chintz
  • although it pretended to be, and the lustre-dangling chandeliers had
  • passed away. Lady Lichtenstein’s books replaced the brown volumes I
  • had browsed among--they were mostly presentation copies of contemporary
  • novels and the National Review and the Empire Review, and the Nineteenth
  • Century and after jostled current books on the tables--English new books
  • in gaudy catchpenny “artistic” covers, French and Italian novels in
  • yellow, German art handbooks of almost incredible ugliness. There
  • were abundant evidences that her ladyship was playing with the
  • Keltic renascence, and a great number of ugly cats made of china--she
  • “collected” china and stoneware cats--stood about everywhere--in all
  • colours, in all kinds of deliberately comic, highly glazed distortion.
  • It is nonsense to pretend that finance makes any better aristocrats than
  • rent. Nothing can make an aristocrat but pride, knowledge, training, and
  • the sword. These people were no improvement on the Drews, none whatever.
  • There was no effect of a beneficial replacement of passive unintelligent
  • people by active intelligent ones. One felt that a smaller but more
  • enterprising and intensely undignified variety of stupidity had replaced
  • the large dullness of the old gentry, and that was all. Bladesover, I
  • thought, had undergone just the same change between the seventies and
  • the new century that had overtaken the dear old Times, and heaven knows
  • how much more of the decorous British fabric. These Lichtensteins and
  • their like seem to have no promise in them at all of any fresh vitality
  • for the kingdom. I do not believe in their intelligence or their
  • power--they have nothing new about them at all, nothing creative nor
  • rejuvenescent, no more than a disorderly instinct of acquisition; and
  • the prevalence of them and their kind is but a phase in the broad slow
  • decay of the great social organism of England. They could not have made
  • Bladesover they cannot replace it; they just happen to break out over
  • it--saprophytically.
  • Well--that was my last impression of Bladesover.
  • CHAPTER THE THIRD
  • THE WIMBLEHURST APPRENTICESHIP
  • I
  • So far as I can remember now, except for that one emotional phase by the
  • graveside, I passed through all these experiences rather callously. I
  • had already, with the facility of youth, changed my world, ceased to
  • think at all of the old school routine and put Bladesover aside for
  • digestion at a latter stage. I took up my new world in Wimblehurst with
  • the chemist’s shop as its hub, set to work at Latin and materia medica,
  • and concentrated upon the present with all my heart. Wimblehurst is an
  • exceptionally quiet and grey Sussex town rare among south of England
  • towns in being largely built of stone. I found something very agreeable
  • and picturesque in its clean cobbled streets, its odd turnings and
  • abrupt corners; and in the pleasant park that crowds up one side of the
  • town. The whole place is under the Eastry dominion and it was the
  • Eastry influence and dignity that kept its railway station a mile and
  • three-quarters away. Eastry House is so close that it dominates the
  • whole; one goes across the marketplace (with its old lock-up and
  • stocks), past the great pre-reformation church, a fine grey shell, like
  • some empty skull from which the life has fled, and there at once are the
  • huge wrought-iron gates, and one peeps through them to see the facade of
  • this place, very white and large and fine, down a long avenue of yews.
  • Eastry was far greater than Bladesover and an altogether completer
  • example of the eighteenth century system. It ruled not two villages, but
  • a borough, that had sent its sons and cousins to parliament almost as a
  • matter of right so long as its franchise endured. Every one was in the
  • system, every one--except my uncle. He stood out and complained.
  • My uncle was the first real breach I found in the great front of
  • Bladesover the world had presented me, for Chatham was not so much a
  • breach as a confirmation. But my uncle had no respect for Bladesover and
  • Eastry--none whatever. He did not believe in them. He was blind even to
  • what they were. He propounded strange phrases about them, he exfoliated
  • and wagged about novel and incredible ideas.
  • “This place,” said my uncle, surveying it from his open doorway in the
  • dignified stillness of a summer afternoon, “wants Waking Up!”
  • I was sorting up patent medicines in the corner.
  • “I’d like to let a dozen young Americans loose into it,” said my uncle.
  • “Then we’d see.”
  • I made a tick against Mother Shipton’s Sleeping Syrup. We had cleared
  • our forward stock.
  • “Things must be happening SOMEWHERE, George,” he broke out in a
  • querulously rising note as he came back into the little shop. He fiddled
  • with the piled dummy boxes of fancy soap and scent and so forth that
  • adorned the end of the counter, then turned about petulantly, stuck his
  • hands deeply into his pockets and withdrew one to scratch his head. “I
  • must do SOMETHING,” he said. “I can’t stand it.
  • “I must invent something. And shove it.... I could.
  • “Or a play. There’s a deal of money in a play, George. What would you
  • think of me writing a play eh?... There’s all sorts of things to be
  • done.
  • “Or the stog-igschange.”
  • He fell into that meditative whistling of his.
  • “Sac-ramental wine!” he swore, “this isn’t the world--it’s Cold Mutton
  • Fat! That’s what Wimblehurst is! Cold Mutton Fat!--dead and stiff! And
  • I’m buried in it up to the arm pits. Nothing ever happens, nobody
  • wants things to happen ‘scept me! Up in London, George, things happen.
  • America! I wish to Heaven, George, I’d been born American--where things
  • hum.
  • “What can one do here? How can one grow? While we’re sleepin’ here with
  • our Capital oozing away into Lord Eastry’s pockets for rent-men are
  • up there....” He indicated London as remotely over the top of the
  • dispensing counter, and then as a scene of great activity by a whirl of
  • the hand and a wink and a meaning smile at me.
  • “What sort of things do they do?” I asked.
  • “Rush about,” he said. “Do things! Somethin’ glorious. There’s cover
  • gambling. Ever heard of that, George?” He drew the air in through his
  • teeth. “You put down a hundred say, and buy ten thousand pounds worth.
  • See? That’s a cover of one per cent. Things go up one, you sell, realise
  • cent per cent; down, whiff, it’s gone! Try again! Cent per cent, George,
  • every day. Men are made or done for in an hour. And the shoutin’!
  • Zzzz.... Well, that’s one way, George. Then another way--there’s
  • Corners!”
  • “They’re rather big things, aren’t they?” I ventured.
  • “Oh, if you go in for wheat or steel--yes. But suppose you tackled a
  • little thing, George. Just some little thing that only needed a few
  • thousands. Drugs for example. Shoved all you had into it--staked your
  • liver on it, so to speak. Take a drug--take ipecac, for example. Take
  • a lot of ipecac. Take all there is! See? There you are! There aren’t
  • unlimited supplies of ipecacuanha--can’t be!--and it’s a thing people
  • must have. Then quinine again! You watch your chance, wait for a
  • tropical war breaking out, let’s say, and collar all the quinine. Where
  • ARE they? Must have quinine, you know. Eh? Zzzz.
  • “Lord! there’s no end of things--no end of little things.
  • Dill-water--all the suffering babes yowling for it. Eucalyptus
  • again--cascara--witch hazel--menthol--all the toothache things. Then
  • there’s antiseptics, and curare, cocaine....”
  • “Rather a nuisance to the doctors,” I reflected.
  • “They got to look out for themselves. By Jove, yes. They’ll do you if
  • they can, and you do them. Like brigands. That makes it romantic. That’s
  • the Romance of Commerce, George. You’re in the mountains there! Think
  • of having all the quinine in the world, and some millionaire’s pampered
  • wife gone ill with malaria, eh? That’s a squeeze, George, eh? Eh?
  • Millionaire on his motor car outside, offering you any price you liked.
  • That ‘ud wake up Wimblehurst.... Lord! You haven’t an Idea down here.
  • Not an idea. Zzzz.”
  • He passed into a rapt dream, from which escaped such fragments as:
  • “Fifty per cent. advance sir; security--to-morrow. Zzzz.”
  • The idea of cornering a drug struck upon my mind then as a sort of
  • irresponsible monkey trick that no one would ever be permitted to do in
  • reality. It was the sort of nonsense one would talk to make Ewart laugh
  • and set him going on to still odder possibilities. I thought it was part
  • of my uncle’s way of talking. But I’ve learnt differently since. The
  • whole trend of modern money-making is to foresee something that will
  • presently be needed and put it out of reach, and then to haggle yourself
  • wealthy. You buy up land upon which people will presently want to build
  • houses, you secure rights that will bar vitally important developments,
  • and so on, and so on. Of course the naive intelligence of a boy does not
  • grasp the subtler developments of human inadequacy. He begins life with
  • a disposition to believe in the wisdom of grown-up people, he does not
  • realise how casual and disingenuous has been the development of law and
  • custom, and he thinks that somewhere in the state there is a power
  • as irresistible as a head master’s to check mischievous and foolish
  • enterprises of every sort. I will confess that when my uncle talked of
  • cornering quinine, I had a clear impression that any one who contrived
  • to do that would pretty certainly go to jail. Now I know that any one
  • who could really bring it off would be much more likely to go to the
  • House of Lords!
  • My uncle ranged over the gilt labels of his bottles and drawers for a
  • while, dreaming of corners in this and that. But at last he reverted to
  • Wimblehurst again.
  • “You got to be in London when these things are in hand. Down here--!
  • “Jee-rusalem!” he cried. “Why did I plant myself here? Everything’s
  • done. The game’s over. Here’s Lord Eastry, and he’s got everything,
  • except what his lawyers get, and before you get any more change this way
  • you’ll have to dynamite him--and them. HE doesn’t want anything more
  • to happen. Why should he? Any chance ‘ud be a loss to him. He wants
  • everything to burble along and burble along and go on as it’s going
  • for the next ten thousand years, Eastry after Eastry, one parson down
  • another come, one grocer dead, get another! Any one with any ideas
  • better go away. They HAVE gone away! Look at all these blessed people
  • in this place! Look at ‘em! All fast asleep, doing their business out
  • of habit--in a sort of dream, Stuffed men would do just as well--just.
  • They’ve all shook down into their places. THEY don’t want anything to
  • happen either. They’re all broken in. There you are! Only what are they
  • all alive for?...
  • “Why can’t they get a clockwork chemist?”
  • He concluded as he often concluded these talks. “I must invent
  • something,--that’s about what I must do. Zzzz. Some convenience.
  • Something people want.... Strike out.... You can’t think, George, of
  • anything everybody wants and hasn’t got? I mean something you could turn
  • out retail under a shilling, say? Well, YOU think, whenever you haven’t
  • got anything better to do. See?”
  • II
  • So I remember my uncle in that first phase, young, but already a little
  • fat, restless, fretful, garrulous, putting in my fermenting head all
  • sorts of discrepant ideas. Certainly he was educational....
  • For me the years at Wimblehurst were years of pretty active growth.
  • Most of my leisure and much of my time in the shop I spent in study.
  • I speedily mastered the modicum of Latin necessary for my qualifying
  • examinations, and--a little assisted by the Government Science and Art
  • Department classes that were held in the Grammar School--went on with my
  • mathematics. There were classes in physics, in chemistry, in mathematics
  • and machine drawing, and I took up these subjects with considerable
  • avidity. Exercise I got chiefly in the form of walks. There was some
  • cricket in the summer and football in the winter sustained by young
  • men’s clubs that levied a parasitic blackmail of the big people and the
  • sitting member, but I was never very keen at these games. I didn’t find
  • any very close companions among the youths of Wimblehurst. They struck
  • me, after my cockney schoolmates, as loutish and slow, servile and
  • furtive, spiteful and mean. WE used to swagger, but these countrymen
  • dragged their feet and hated an equal who didn’t; we talked loud, but
  • you only got the real thoughts of Wimblehurst in a knowing undertone
  • behind its hand. And even then they weren’t much in the way of thoughts.
  • No, I didn’t like those young countrymen, and I’m no believer in the
  • English countryside under the Bladesover system as a breeding ground for
  • honourable men. One hears a frightful lot of nonsense about the Rural
  • Exodus and the degeneration wrought by town life upon our population. To
  • my mind, the English townsman, even in the slums, is infinitely better
  • spiritually, more courageous, more imaginative and cleaner, than his
  • agricultural cousin. I’ve seen them both when they didn’t think
  • they were being observed, and I know. There was something about my
  • Wimblehurst companions that disgusted me. It’s hard to define. Heaven
  • knows that at that cockney boarding-school at Goudhurst we were coarse
  • enough; the Wimblehurst youngsters had neither words nor courage for the
  • sort of thing we used to do--for our bad language, for example; but,
  • on the other hand, they displayed a sort of sluggish, real lewdness,
  • lewdness is the word--a baseness of attitude. Whatever we exiled urbans
  • did at Goudhurst was touched with something, however coarse, of romantic
  • imagination. We had read the Boys of England, and told each other
  • stories. In the English countryside there are no books at all, no songs,
  • no drama, no valiant sin even; all these things have never come or they
  • were taken away and hidden generations ago, and the imagination aborts
  • and bestialises. That, I think, is where the real difference against the
  • English rural man lies. It is because I know this that I do not share
  • in the common repinings because our countryside is being depopulated,
  • because our population is passing through the furnace of the towns. They
  • starve, they suffer, no doubt, but they come out of it hardened, they
  • come out of it with souls.
  • Of an evening the Wimblehurst blade, shiny-faced from a wash and with
  • some loud finery, a coloured waistcoat or a vivid tie, would betake
  • himself to the Eastry Arms billiard-room, or to the bar parlour of
  • some minor pub where nap could be played. One soon sickened of his slow
  • knowingness, the cunning observation of his deadened eyes, his idea of
  • a “good story,” always, always told in undertones, poor dirty worm! his
  • shrewd, elaborate maneuvers for some petty advantage, a drink to the
  • good or such-like deal. There rises before my eyes as I write, young
  • Hopley Dodd, the son of the Wimblehurst auctioneer, the pride of
  • Wimblehurst, its finest flower, with his fur waistcoat and his bulldog
  • pipe, his riding breeches--he had no horse--and his gaiters, as he used
  • to sit, leaning forward and watching the billiard-table from under the
  • brim of his artfully tilted hat. A half-dozen phrases constituted his
  • conversation: “hard lines!” he used to say, and “Good baazness,” in a
  • bass bleat. Moreover, he had a long slow whistle that was esteemed the
  • very cream of humorous comment. Night after night he was there.
  • Also you knew he would not understand that _I_ could play billiards, and
  • regarded every stroke I made as a fluke. For a beginner I didn’t play so
  • badly, I thought. I’m not so sure now; that was my opinion at the time.
  • But young Dodd’s scepticism and the “good baazness” finally cured me
  • of my disposition to frequent the Eastry Arms, and so these noises had
  • their value in my world.
  • I made no friends among the young men of the place at all, and though I
  • was entering upon adolescence I have no love-affair to tell of here.
  • Not that I was not waking up to that aspect of life in my middle teens I
  • did, indeed, in various slightly informal ways scrape acquaintance with
  • casual Wimblehurst girls; with a little dressmaker’s apprentice I got
  • upon shyly speaking terms, and a pupil teacher in the National School
  • went further and was “talked about” in connection with me but I was not
  • by any means touched by any reality of passion for either of these young
  • people; love--love as yet came to me only in my dreams. I only kissed
  • these girls once or twice. They rather disconcerted than developed those
  • dreams. They were so clearly not “it.” I shall have much to say of love
  • in this story, but I may break it to the reader now that it is my role
  • to be a rather ineffectual lover. Desire I knew well enough--indeed, too
  • well; but love I have been shy of. In all my early enterprises in the
  • war of the sexes, I was torn between the urgency of the body and a
  • habit of romantic fantasy that wanted every phase of the adventure to
  • be generous and beautiful. And I had a curiously haunting memory of
  • Beatrice, of her kisses in the bracken and her kiss upon the wall, that
  • somehow pitched the standard too high for Wimblehurst’s opportunities. I
  • will not deny I did in a boyish way attempt a shy, rude adventure or so
  • in love-making at Wimblehurst; but through these various influences,
  • I didn’t bring things off to any extent at all. I left behind me no
  • devastating memories, no splendid reputation. I came away at last,
  • still inexperienced and a little thwarted, with only a natural growth of
  • interest and desire in sexual things.
  • If I fell in love with any one in Wimblehurst it was with my aunt. She
  • treated me with a kindliness that was only half maternal--she petted my
  • books, she knew about my certificates, she made fun of me in a way that
  • stirred my heart to her. Quite unconsciously I grew fond of her....
  • My adolescent years at Wimblehurst were on the whole laborious,
  • uneventful years that began in short jackets and left me in many ways
  • nearly a man, years so uneventful that the Calculus of Variations is
  • associated with one winter, and an examination in Physics for Science
  • and Art department Honours marks an epoch. Many divergent impulses
  • stirred within me, but the master impulse was a grave young disposition
  • to work and learn and thereby in some not very clearly defined way get
  • out of the Wimblehurst world into which I had fallen. I wrote with
  • some frequency to Ewart, self-conscious, but, as I remember them, not
  • intelligent letters, dated in Latin and with lapses into Latin quotation
  • that roused Ewart to parody. There was something about me in those days
  • more than a little priggish. But it was, to do myself justice, something
  • more than the petty pride of learning. I had a very grave sense of
  • discipline and preparation that I am not ashamed at all to remember. I
  • was serious. More serious than I am at the present time. More serious,
  • indeed, than any adult seems to be. I was capable then of efforts--of
  • nobilities.... They are beyond me now. I don’t see why, at forty, I
  • shouldn’t confess I respect my own youth. I had dropped being a boy
  • quite abruptly. I thought I was presently to go out into a larger and
  • quite important world and do significant things there. I thought I
  • was destined to do something definite to a world that had a definite
  • purpose. I did not understand then, as I do now, that life was to
  • consist largely in the world’s doing things to me. Young people never
  • do seem to understand that aspect of things. And, as I say, among my
  • educational influences my uncle, all unsuspected, played a leading part,
  • and perhaps among other things gave my discontent with Wimblehurst, my
  • desire to get away from that clean and picturesque emptiness, a form and
  • expression that helped to emphasise it. In a way that definition made me
  • patient. “Presently I shall get to London,” I said, echoing him.
  • I remember him now as talking, always talking, in those days. He talked
  • to me of theology, he talked of politics, of the wonders of science
  • and the marvels of art, of the passions and the affections, of
  • the immortality of the soul and the peculiar actions of drugs; but
  • predominantly and constantly he talked of getting on, of enterprises,
  • of inventions and great fortunes, of Rothschilds, silver kings,
  • Vanderbilts, Goulds, flotations, realisations and the marvelous ways
  • of Chance with men--in all localities, that is to say, that are not
  • absolutely sunken to the level of Cold Mutton Fat.
  • When I think of those early talks, I figure him always in one of three
  • positions. Either we were in the dispensing lair behind a high barrier,
  • he pounding up things in a mortar perhaps, and I rolling pill-stuff into
  • long rolls and cutting it up with a sort of broad, fluted knife, or
  • he stood looking out of the shop door against the case of sponges and
  • spray-diffusers, while I surveyed him from behind the counter, or he
  • leant against the little drawers behind the counter, and I hovered
  • dusting in front. The thought of those early days brings back to my
  • nostrils the faint smell of scent that was always in the air, marbled
  • now with streaks of this drug and now of that, and to my eyes the rows
  • of jejune glass bottles with gold labels, mirror-reflected, that stood
  • behind him. My aunt, I remember, used sometimes to come into the shop
  • in a state of aggressive sprightliness, a sort of connubial ragging
  • expedition, and get much fun over the abbreviated Latinity of those gilt
  • inscriptions. “Ol Amjig, George,” she would read derisively, “and he
  • pretends it’s almond oil! Snap!--and that’s mustard. Did you ever,
  • George?
  • “Look at him, George, looking dignified. I’d like to put an old label
  • on to him round the middle like his bottles are, with Ol Pondo on it.
  • That’s Latin for Impostor, George MUST be. He’d look lovely with a
  • stopper.”
  • “YOU want a stopper,” said my uncle, projecting his face....
  • My aunt, dear soul, was in those days quite thin and slender, with a
  • delicate rosebud completion and a disposition to connubial badinage, to
  • a sort of gentle skylarking. There was a silvery ghost of lisping in her
  • speech. She was a great humourist, and as the constraint of my presence
  • at meals wore off, I became more and more aware of a filmy but extensive
  • net of nonsense she had woven about her domestic relations until it had
  • become the reality of her life. She affected a derisive attitude to the
  • world at large and applied the epithet “old” to more things than I have
  • ever heard linked to it before or since. “Here’s the old news-paper,”
  • she used to say--to my uncle. “Now don’t go and get it in the butter,
  • you silly old Sardine!”
  • “What’s the day of the week, Susan?” my uncle would ask.
  • “Old Monday, Sossidge,” she would say, and add, “I got all my Old
  • Washing to do. Don’t I KNOW it!”...
  • She had evidently been the wit and joy of a large circle of
  • schoolfellows, and this style had become a second nature with her. It
  • made her very delightful to me in that quiet place. Her customary walk
  • even had a sort of hello! in it. Her chief preoccupation in life was, I
  • believe, to make my uncle laugh, and when by some new nickname, some new
  • quaintness or absurdity, she achieved that end, she was, behind a mask
  • of sober amazement, the happiest woman on earth. My uncle’s laugh when
  • it did come, I must admit was, as Baedeker says, “rewarding.” It began
  • with gusty blowings and snortings, and opened into a clear “Ha ha!”
  • but in fullest development it included, in those youthful days, falling
  • about anyhow and doubling up tightly, and whackings of the stomach, and
  • tears and cries of anguish. I never in my life heard my uncle laugh to
  • his maximum except at her; he was commonly too much in earnest for that,
  • and he didn’t laugh much at all, to my knowledge, after those early
  • years. Also she threw things at him to an enormous extent in her resolve
  • to keep things lively in spite of Wimblehurst; sponges out of stock she
  • threw, cushions, balls of paper, clean washing, bread; and once up the
  • yard when they thought that I and the errand boy and the diminutive
  • maid of all work were safely out of the way, she smashed a boxful of
  • eight-ounce bottles I had left to drain, assaulting my uncle with a new
  • soft broom. Sometimes she would shy things at me--but not often. There
  • seemed always laughter round and about her--all three of us would share
  • hysterics at times--and on one occasion the two of them came home from
  • church shockingly ashamed of themselves, because of a storm of mirth
  • during the sermon. The vicar, it seems, had tried to blow his nose
  • with a black glove as well as the customary pocket-handkerchief. And
  • afterwards she had picked up her own glove by the finger, and looking
  • innocently but intently sideways, had suddenly by this simple expedient
  • exploded my uncle altogether. We had it all over again at dinner.
  • “But it shows you,” cried my uncle, suddenly becoming grave, “what
  • Wimblehurst is, to have us all laughing at a little thing like that! We
  • weren’t the only ones that giggled. Not by any means! And, Lord! it was
  • funny!”
  • Socially, my uncle and aunt were almost completely isolated. In places
  • like Wimblehurst the tradesmen’s lives always are isolated socially,
  • all of them, unless they have a sister or a bosom friend among the
  • other wives, but the husbands met in various bar-parlours or in the
  • billiard-room of the Eastry Arms. But my uncle, for the most part, spent
  • his evenings at home. When first he arrived in Wimblehurst I think
  • he had spread his effect of abounding ideas and enterprise rather
  • too aggressively; and Wimblehurst, after a temporary subjugation, had
  • rebelled and done its best to make a butt of him. His appearance in a
  • public-house led to a pause in any conversation that was going on.
  • “Come to tell us about everything, Mr. Pond’revo?” some one would say
  • politely.
  • “You wait,” my uncle used to answer, disconcerted, and sulk for the rest
  • of his visit.
  • Or some one with an immense air of innocence would remark to the world
  • generally, “They’re talkin’ of rebuildin’ Wimblehurst all over again,
  • I’m told. Anybody heard anything of it? Going to make it a reg’lar
  • smartgoin’, enterprisin’ place--kind of Crystal Pallas.”
  • “Earthquake and a pestilence before you get that,” my uncle would
  • mutter, to the infinite delight of every one, and add something
  • inaudible about “Cold Mutton Fat.”...
  • III
  • We were torn apart by a financial accident to my uncle of which I did
  • not at first grasp the full bearings. He had developed what I regarded
  • as an innocent intellectual recreation which he called stock-market
  • meteorology. I think he got the idea from one use of curves in the
  • graphic presentation of associated variations that he saw me plotting.
  • He secured some of my squared paper and, having cast about for a time,
  • decided to trace the rise and fall of certain lines and railways.
  • “There’s something in this, George,” he said, and I little dreamt that
  • among other things that were in it, was the whole of his spare money and
  • most of what my mother had left to him in trust for me.
  • “It’s as plain as can be,” he said. “See, here’s one system of waves and
  • here’s another! These are prices for Union Pacifics--extending over a
  • month. Now next week, mark my words, they’ll be down one whole point.
  • We’re getting near the steep part of the curve again. See? It’s
  • absolutely scientific. It’s verifiable. Well, and apply it! You buy in
  • the hollow and sell on the crest, and there you are!”
  • I was so convinced of the triviality of this amusement that to find at
  • last that he had taken it in the most disastrous earnest overwhelmed me.
  • He took me for a long walk to break it to me, over the hills towards
  • Yare and across the great gorse commons by Hazelbrow.
  • “There are ups and downs in life, George,” he said--halfway across that
  • great open space, and paused against the sky.... “I left out one factor
  • in the Union Pacific analysis.”
  • “DID you?” I said, struck by the sudden chance in his voice. “But you
  • don’t mean?”
  • I stopped and turned on him in the narrow sandy rut of pathway and he
  • stopped likewise.
  • “I do, George. I DO mean. It’s bust me! I’m a bankrupt here and now.”
  • “Then--?”
  • “The shop’s bust too. I shall have to get out of that.”
  • “And me?”
  • “Oh, you!--YOU’RE all right. You can transfer your apprenticeship,
  • and--er--well, I’m not the sort of man to be careless with trust funds,
  • you can be sure. I kept that aspect in mind. There’s some of it left
  • George--trust me!--quite a decent little sum.”
  • “But you and aunt?”
  • “It isn’t QUITE the way we meant to leave Wimblehurst, George; but we
  • shall have to go. Sale; all the things shoved about and ticketed--lot
  • a hundred and one. Ugh!... It’s been a larky little house in some ways.
  • The first we had. Furnishing--a spree in its way.... Very happy...” His
  • face winced at some memory. “Let’s go on, George,” he said shortly, near
  • choking, I could see.
  • I turned my back on him, and did not look round again for a little
  • while.
  • “That’s how it is, you see, George.” I heard him after a time.
  • When we were back in the high road again he came alongside, and for a
  • time we walked in silence.
  • “Don’t say anything home yet,” he said presently. “Fortunes of War. I
  • got to pick the proper time with Susan--else she’ll get depressed. Not
  • that she isn’t a first-rate brick whatever comes along.”
  • “All right,” I said, “I’ll be careful”; and it seemed to me for the time
  • altogether too selfish to bother him with any further inquiries about
  • his responsibility as my trustee. He gave a little sigh of relief at
  • my note of assent, and was presently talking quite cheerfully of his
  • plans.... But he had, I remember, one lapse into moodiness that came and
  • went suddenly. “Those others!” he said, as though the thought had stung
  • him for the first time.
  • “What others?” I asked.
  • “Damn them!” said he.
  • “But what others?”
  • “All those damned stick-in-the-mud-and-die-slowly tradespeople: Ruck,
  • the butcher, Marbel, the grocer. Snape! Gord! George, HOW they’ll grin!”
  • I thought him over in the next few weeks, and I remember now in great
  • detail the last talk we had together before he handed over the shop
  • and me to his successor. For he had the good luck to sell his business,
  • “lock, stock, and barrel”--in which expression I found myself and my
  • indentures included. The horrors of a sale by auction of the furniture
  • even were avoided.
  • I remember that either coming or going on that occasion, Ruck, the
  • butcher, stood in his doorway and regarded us with a grin that showed
  • his long teeth.
  • “You half-witted hog!” said my uncle. “You grinning hyaena”; and then,
  • “Pleasant day, Mr. Ruck.”
  • “Goin’ to make your fortun’ in London, then?” said Mr. Ruck, with slow
  • enjoyment.
  • That last excursion took us along the causeway to Beeching, and so up
  • the downs and round almost as far as Steadhurst, home. My moods, as we
  • went, made a mingled web. By this time I had really grasped the fact
  • that my uncle had, in plain English, robbed me; the little accumulations
  • of my mother, six hundred pounds and more, that would have educated me
  • and started me in business, had been eaten into and was mostly gone
  • into the unexpected hollow that ought to have been a crest of the Union
  • Pacific curve, and of the remainder he still gave no account. I was too
  • young and inexperienced to insist on this or know how to get it, but the
  • thought of it all made streaks of decidedly black anger in that scheme
  • of interwoven feelings. And you know, I was also acutely sorry for
  • him--almost as sorry as I was for my aunt Susan. Even then I had quite
  • found him out. I knew him to be weaker than myself; his incurable,
  • irresponsible childishness was as clear to me then as it was on his
  • deathbed, his redeeming and excusing imaginative silliness. Through some
  • odd mental twist perhaps I was disposed to exonerate him even at
  • the cost of blaming my poor old mother who had left things in his
  • untrustworthy hands.
  • I should have forgiven him altogether, I believe, if he had been in any
  • manner apologetic to me; but he wasn’t that. He kept reassuring me in
  • a way I found irritating. Mostly, however, his solicitude was for Aunt
  • Susan and himself.
  • “It’s these Crises, George,” he said, “try Character. Your aunt’s come
  • out well, my boy.”
  • He made meditative noises for a space.
  • “Had her cry of course,”--the thing had been only too painfully evident
  • to me in her eyes and swollen face--“who wouldn’t? But now--buoyant
  • again!... She’s a Corker.
  • “We’ll be sorry to leave the little house of course. It’s a bit like
  • Adam and Eve, you know. Lord! what a chap old Milton was!
  • “‘The world was all before them, where to choose
  • Their place of rest, and Providence their guide.’
  • “It sounds, George.... Providence their guide!... Well--thank goodness
  • there’s no imeedgit prospect of either Cain or Abel!”
  • “After all, it won’t be so bad up there. Not the scenery, perhaps, or
  • the air we get here, but--LIFE! We’ve got very comfortable little rooms,
  • very comfortable considering, and I shall rise. We’re not done yet,
  • we’re not beaten; don’t think that, George. I shall pay twenty shillings
  • in the pound before I’ve done--you mark my words, George,--twenty--five
  • to you.... I got this situation within twenty-four hours--others
  • offered. It’s an important firm--one of the best in London. I looked to
  • that. I might have got four or five shillings a week more--elsewhere.
  • Quarters I could name. But I said to them plainly, wages to go on with,
  • but opportunity’s my game--development. We understood each other.”
  • He threw out his chest, and the little round eyes behind his glasses
  • rested valiantly on imaginary employers.
  • We would go on in silence for a space while he revised and restated that
  • encounter. Then he would break out abruptly with some banal phrase.
  • “The Battle of Life, George, my boy,” he would cry, or “Ups and Downs!”
  • He ignored or waived the poor little attempts I made to ascertain my own
  • position. “That’s all right,” he would say; or, “Leave all that to me.
  • I’LL look after them.” And he would drift away towards the philosophy
  • and moral of the situation. What was I to do?
  • “Never put all your resources into one chance, George; that’s the lesson
  • I draw from this. Have forces in reserve. It was a hundred to one,
  • George, that I was right--a hundred to one. I worked it out afterwards.
  • And here we are spiked on the off-chance. If I’d have only kept back a
  • little, I’d have had it on U.P. next day, like a shot, and come out on
  • the rise. There you are!”
  • His thoughts took a graver turn.
  • “It’s where you’ll bump up against Chance like this, George, that you
  • feel the need of religion. Your hard-and-fast scientific men--your
  • Spencers and Huxleys--they don’t understand that. I do. I’ve thought
  • of it a lot lately--in bed and about. I was thinking of it this morning
  • while I shaved. It’s not irreverent for me to say it, I hope--but God
  • comes in on the off-chance, George. See? Don’t you be too cocksure of
  • anything, good or bad. That’s what I make out of it. I could have sworn.
  • Well, do you think I--particular as I am--would have touched those Union
  • Pacifics with trust money at all, if I hadn’t thought it a thoroughly
  • good thing--good without spot or blemish?... And it was bad!
  • “It’s a lesson to me. You start in to get a hundred percent. and you
  • come out with that. It means, in a way, a reproof for Pride. I’ve
  • thought of that, George--in the Night Watches. I was thinking this
  • morning when I was shaving, that that’s where the good of it all comes
  • in. At the bottom I’m a mystic in these affairs. You calculate you’re
  • going to do this or that, but at bottom who knows at all WHAT he’s
  • doing? When you most think you’re doing things, they’re being done right
  • over your head. YOU’RE being done--in a sense. Take a hundred-to one
  • chance, or one to a hundred--what does it matter? You’re being Led.”
  • It’s odd that I heard this at the time with unutterable contempt, and
  • now that I recall it--well, I ask myself, what have I got better?
  • “I wish,” said I, becoming for a moment outrageous, “YOU were being Led
  • to give me some account of my money, uncle.”
  • “Not without a bit of paper to figure on, George, I can’t. But you trust
  • me about that never fear. You trust me.”
  • And in the end I had to.
  • I think the bankruptcy hit my aunt pretty hard. There was, so far as I
  • can remember now, a complete cessation of all those cheerful outbreaks
  • of elasticity, no more skylarking in the shop nor scampering about the
  • house. But there was no fuss that I saw, and only little signs in her
  • complexion of the fits of weeping that must have taken her. She didn’t
  • cry at the end, though to me her face with its strain of self-possession
  • was more pathetic than any weeping. “Well” she said to me as she came
  • through the shop to the cab, “Here’s old orf, George! Orf to Mome number
  • two! Good-bye!” And she took me in her arms and kissed me and pressed me
  • to her. Then she dived straight for the cab before I could answer her.
  • My uncle followed, and he seemed to me a trifle too valiant and
  • confident in his bearing for reality. He was unusually white in the
  • face. He spoke to his successor at the counter. “Here we go!” he said.
  • “One down, the other up. You’ll find it a quiet little business so long
  • as you run it on quiet lines--a nice quiet little business. There’s
  • nothing more? No? Well, if you want to know anything write to me. I’ll
  • always explain fully. Anything--business, place or people. You’ll find
  • Pil Antibil. a little overstocked by-the-by, I found it soothed my mind
  • the day before yesterday making ‘em, and I made ‘em all day. Thousands!
  • And where’s George? Ah! there you are! I’ll write to you, George, FULLY,
  • about all that affair. Fully!”
  • It became clear to me as if for the first time, that I was really
  • parting from my aunt Susan. I went out on to the pavement and saw her
  • head craned forward, her wide-open blue eyes and her little face intent
  • on the shop that had combined for her all the charms of a big doll’s
  • house and a little home of her very own. “Good-bye!” she said to it and
  • to me. Our eyes met for a moment--perplexed. My uncle bustled out and
  • gave a few totally unnecessary directions to the cabman and got in
  • beside her. “All right?” asked the driver. “Right,” said I; and he woke
  • up the horse with a flick of his whip. My aunt’s eyes surveyed me again.
  • “Stick to your old science and things, George, and write and tell me
  • when they make you a Professor,” she said cheerfully.
  • She stared at me for a second longer with eyes growing wider and
  • brighter and a smile that had become fixed, glanced again at the bright
  • little shop still saying “Ponderevo” with all the emphasis of its
  • fascia, and then flopped back hastily out of sight of me into the
  • recesses of the cab. Then it had gone from before me and I beheld Mr.
  • Snape, the hairdresser, inside his store regarding its departure with a
  • quiet satisfaction and exchanging smiles and significant headshakes with
  • Mr. Marbel.
  • IV
  • I was left, I say, as part of the lock, stock, and barrel, at
  • Wimblehurst with my new master, a Mr. Mantell; who plays no part in the
  • progress of this story except in so far as he effaced my uncle’s traces.
  • So soon as the freshness of this new personality faded, I began to find
  • Wimblehurst not only a dull but a lonely place, and to miss my aunt
  • Susan immensely. The advertisements of the summer terms for Cough
  • Linctus were removed; the bottles of coloured water--red, green, and
  • yellow--restored to their places; the horse announcing veterinary
  • medicine, which my uncle, sizzling all the while, had coloured in
  • careful portraiture of a Goodwood favourite, rewhitened; and I turned
  • myself even more resolutely than before to Latin (until the passing
  • of my preliminary examination enabled me to drop that), and then to
  • mathematics and science.
  • There were classes in Electricity and Magnetism at the Grammar School. I
  • took a little “elementary” prize in that in my first year and a medal
  • in my third; and in Chemistry and Human Physiology and Sound, Light
  • and Heat, I did well. There was also a lighter, more discursive
  • subject called Physiography, in which one ranged among the sciences
  • and encountered Geology as a process of evolution from Eozoon to Eastry
  • House, and Astronomy as a record of celestial movements of the most
  • austere and invariable integrity. I learnt out of badly-written,
  • condensed little text-books, and with the minimum of experiment, but
  • still I learnt. Only thirty years ago it was, and I remember I learnt of
  • the electric light as an expensive, impracticable toy, the telephone as
  • a curiosity, electric traction as a practical absurdity. There was no
  • argon, no radium, no phagocytes--at least to my knowledge, and aluminium
  • was a dear, infrequent metal. The fastest ships in the world went then
  • at nineteen knots, and no one but a lunatic here and there ever thought
  • it possible that men might fly.
  • Many things have happened since then, but the last glance I had of
  • Wimblehurst two years ago remarked no change whatever in its pleasant
  • tranquillity. They had not even built any fresh houses--at least not
  • actually in the town, though about the station there had been some
  • building. But it was a good place to do work in, for all its quiescence.
  • I was soon beyond the small requirements of the Pharmaceutical Society’s
  • examination, and as they do not permit candidates to sit for that until
  • one and twenty, I was presently filling up my time and preventing my
  • studies becoming too desultory by making an attack upon the London
  • University degree of Bachelor of Science, which impressed me then as
  • a very splendid but almost impossible achievement. The degree
  • in mathematics and chemistry appealed to me as particularly
  • congenial--albeit giddily inaccessible. I set to work. I had presently
  • to arrange a holiday and go to London to matriculate, and so it was I
  • came upon my aunt and uncle again. In many ways that visit marked an
  • epoch. It was my first impression of London at all. I was then nineteen,
  • and by a conspiracy of chances my nearest approach to that human
  • wilderness had been my brief visit to Chatham. Chatham too had been my
  • largest town. So that I got London at last with an exceptional freshness
  • of effect, as the sudden revelation of a whole unsuspected other side to
  • life.
  • I came to it on a dull and smoky day by the South Eastern Railway, and
  • our train was half an hour late, stopping and going on and stopping
  • again. I marked beyond Chiselhurst the growing multitude of villas,
  • and so came stage by stage through multiplying houses and diminishing
  • interspaces of market garden and dingy grass to regions of interlacing
  • railway lines, big factories, gasometers and wide reeking swamps of
  • dingy little homes, more of them and more and more. The number of these
  • and their dinginess and poverty increased, and here rose a great public
  • house and here a Board School and there a gaunt factory; and away to the
  • east there loomed for a time a queer, incongruous forest of masts and
  • spars. The congestion of houses intensified and piled up presently into
  • tenements; I marveled more and more at this boundless world of dingy
  • people; whiffs of industrial smell, of leather, of brewing, drifted into
  • the carriage; the sky darkened, I rumbled thunderously over bridges,
  • van-crowded streets, peered down on and crossed the Thames with an
  • abrupt eclat of sound. I got an effect of tall warehouses, of grey
  • water, barge crowded, of broad banks of indescribable mud, and then
  • I was in Cannon Street Station--a monstrous dirty cavern with trains
  • packed across its vast floor and more porters standing along the
  • platform than I had ever been in my life before. I alighted with my
  • portmanteau and struggled along, realising for the first time just how
  • small and weak I could still upon occasion feel. In this world, I felt,
  • an Honours medal in Electricity and magnetism counted for nothing at
  • all.
  • Afterwards I drove in a cab down a canon of rushing street between high
  • warehouses, and peeped up astonished at the blackened greys of Saint
  • Paul’s. The traffic of Cheapside--it was mostly in horse omnibuses in
  • those days--seemed stupendous, its roar was stupendous; I wondered where
  • the money came from to employ so many cabs, what industry could support
  • the endless jostling stream of silk-hatted, frock-coated, hurrying men.
  • Down a turning I found the Temperance Hotel Mr. Mantell had recommended
  • to me. The porter in a green uniform who took over my portmanteau,
  • seemed, I thought, to despise me a good deal.
  • V
  • Matriculation kept me for four full days and then came an afternoon
  • to spare, and I sought out Tottenham Court Road through a perplexing
  • network of various and crowded streets. But this London was vast! it was
  • endless! it seemed the whole world had changed into packed frontages and
  • hoardings and street spaces. I got there at last and made inquiries,
  • and I found my uncle behind the counter of the pharmacy he managed, an
  • establishment that did not impress me as doing a particularly high-class
  • trade. “Lord!” he said at the sight of me, “I was wanting something to
  • happen!”
  • He greeted me warmly. I had grown taller, and he, I thought, had grown
  • shorter and smaller and rounder but otherwise he was unchanged. He
  • struck me as being rather shabby, and the silk hat he produced and put
  • on, when, after mysterious negotiations in the back premises he achieved
  • his freedom to accompany me, was past its first youth; but he was as
  • buoyant and confident as ever.
  • “Come to ask me about all THAT,” he cried. “I’ve never written yet.”
  • “Oh, among other things,” said I, with a sudden regrettable politeness,
  • and waived the topic of his trusteeship to ask after my aunt Susan.
  • “We’ll have her out of it,” he said suddenly; “we’ll go somewhere. We
  • don’t get you in London every day.”
  • “It’s my first visit,” I said, “I’ve never seen London before”; and
  • that made him ask me what I thought of it, and the rest of the talk was
  • London, London, to the exclusion of all smaller topics. He took me up
  • the Hampstead Road almost to the Cobden statue, plunged into some back
  • streets to the left, and came at last to a blistered front door that
  • responded to his latch-key, one of a long series of blistered front
  • doors with fanlights and apartment cards above. We found ourselves in
  • a drab-coloured passage that was not only narrow and dirty but
  • desolatingly empty, and then he opened a door and revealed my aunt
  • sitting at the window with a little sewing-machine on a bamboo
  • occasional table before her, and “work”--a plum-coloured walking dress
  • I judged at its most analytical stage--scattered over the rest of the
  • apartment.
  • At the first glance I judged my aunt was plumper than she had been, but
  • her complexion was just as fresh and her China blue eye as bright as in
  • the old days.
  • “London,” she said, didn’t “get blacks” on her.
  • She still “cheeked” my uncle, I was pleased to find. “What are you old
  • Poking in for at THIS time--Gubbitt?” she said when he appeared, and
  • she still looked with a practised eye for the facetious side of things.
  • When she saw me behind him, she gave a little cry and stood up radiant.
  • Then she became grave.
  • I was surprised at my own emotion in seeing her. She held me at arm’s
  • length for a moment, a hand on each shoulder, and looked at me with a
  • sort of glad scrutiny. She seemed to hesitate, and then pecked little
  • kiss off my cheek.
  • “You’re a man, George,” she said, as she released me, and continued to
  • look at me for a while.
  • Their menage was one of a very common type in London. They occupied what
  • is called the dining-room floor of a small house, and they had the use
  • of a little inconvenient kitchen in the basement that had once been
  • scullery. The two rooms, bedroom behind and living room in front, were
  • separated by folding-doors that were never now thrown back, and indeed,
  • in the presence of a visitor, not used at all. There was of course no
  • bathroom or anything of that sort available, and there was no water
  • supply except to the kitchen below. My aunt did all the domestic work,
  • though she could have afforded to pay for help if the build of the place
  • had not rendered that inconvenient to the pitch of impossibility. There
  • was no sort of help available except that of indoor servants, for whom
  • she had no accommodation. The furniture was their own; it was partly
  • secondhand, but on the whole it seemed cheerful to my eye, and my aunt’s
  • bias for cheap, gay-figured muslin had found ample score. In many ways
  • I should think it must have been an extremely inconvenient and cramped
  • sort of home, but at the time I took it, as I was taking everything, as
  • being there and in the nature of things. I did not see the oddness of
  • solvent decent people living in a habitation so clearly neither designed
  • nor adapted for their needs, so wasteful of labour and so devoid of
  • beauty as this was, and it is only now as I describe this that I find
  • myself thinking of the essential absurdity of an intelligent community
  • living in such makeshift homes. It strikes me now as the next thing to
  • wearing second-hand clothes.
  • You see it was a natural growth, part of that system to which
  • Bladesover, I hold, is the key. There are wide regions of London, miles
  • of streets of houses, that appear to have been originally designed for
  • prosperous-middle-class homes of the early Victorian type. There must
  • have been a perfect fury of such building in the thirties, forties, and
  • fifties. Street after street must have been rushed into being, Campden
  • Town way, Pentonville way, Brompton way, West Kensington way in the
  • Victoria region and all over the minor suburbs of the south side.
  • I am doubtful if many of these houses had any long use as the residences
  • of single families if from the very first almost their tenants did not
  • makeshift and take lodgers and sublet. They were built with basements,
  • in which their servants worked and lived--servants of a more submissive
  • and troglodytic generation who did not mind stairs. The dining-room
  • (with folding doors) was a little above the ground level, and in that
  • the wholesome boiled and roast with damp boiled potatoes and then pie
  • to follow, was consumed and the numerous family read and worked in the
  • evening, and above was the drawing-room (also with folding doors), where
  • the infrequent callers were received. That was the vision at which those
  • industrious builders aimed. Even while these houses were being run up,
  • the threads upon the loom of fate were shaping to abolish altogether
  • the type of household that would have fitted them. Means of transit were
  • developing to carry the moderately prosperous middle-class families out
  • of London, education and factory employment were whittling away at
  • the supply of rough, hardworking, obedient girls who would stand
  • the subterranean drudgery of these places, new classes of hard-up
  • middle-class people such as my uncle, employees of various types, were
  • coming into existence, for whom no homes were provided. None of these
  • classes have ideas of what they ought to be, or fit in any legitimate
  • way into the Bladesover theory that dominates our minds. It was nobody’s
  • concern to see them housed under civilised conditions, and the beautiful
  • laws of supply and demand had free play. They had to squeeze in. The
  • landlords came out financially intact from their blundering enterprise.
  • More and more these houses fell into the hands of married artisans, or
  • struggling widows or old servants with savings, who became responsible
  • for the quarterly rent and tried to sweat a living by sub-letting
  • furnished or unfurnished apartments.
  • I remember now that a poor grey-haired old woman who had an air of
  • having been roused from a nap in the dust bin, came out into the area
  • and looked up at us as we three went out from the front door to “see
  • London” under my uncle’s direction. She was the sub-letting occupier;
  • she squeezed out a precarious living by taking the house whole and
  • sub-letting it in detail and she made her food and got the shelter of an
  • attic above and a basement below by the transaction. And if she didn’t
  • chance to “let” steadily, out she went to pauperdom and some other poor,
  • sordid old adventurer tried in her place....
  • It is a foolish community that can house whole classes, useful and
  • helpful, honest and loyal classes, in such squalidly unsuitable
  • dwellings. It is by no means the social economy it seems, to use up old
  • women, savings and inexperience in order to meet the landlord’s demands.
  • But any one who doubts this thing is going on right up to to-day need
  • only spend an afternoon in hunting for lodgings in any of the regions of
  • London I have named.
  • But where has my story got to? My uncle, I say, decided I must be shown
  • London, and out we three went as soon as my aunt had got her hat on, to
  • catch all that was left of the day.
  • VI
  • It pleased my uncle extremely to find I had never seen London before. He
  • took possession of the metropolis forthwith. “London, George,” he said,
  • “takes a lot of understanding. It’s a great place. Immense. The richest
  • town in the world, the biggest port, the greatest manufacturing town,
  • the Imperial city--the centre of civilisation, the heart of the world!
  • See those sandwich men down there! That third one’s hat! Fair treat! You
  • don’t see poverty like that in Wimblehurst George! And many of them high
  • Oxford honour men too. Brought down by drink! It’s a wonderful place,
  • George--a whirlpool, a maelstrom! whirls you up and whirls you down.”
  • I have a very confused memory of that afternoon’s inspection of
  • London. My uncle took us to and fro showing us over his London, talking
  • erratically, following a route of his own. Sometimes we were walking,
  • sometimes we were on the tops of great staggering horse omnibuses in
  • a heaving jumble of traffic, and at one point we had tea in an Aerated
  • Bread Shop. But I remember very distinctly how we passed down Park Lane
  • under an overcast sky, and how my uncle pointed out the house of this
  • child of good fortune and that with succulent appreciation.
  • I remember, too, that as he talked I would find my aunt watching my face
  • as if to check the soundness of his talk by my expression.
  • “Been in love yet, George?” she asked suddenly, over a bun in the
  • tea-shop.
  • “Too busy, aunt,” I told her.
  • She bit her bun extensively, and gesticulated with the remnant to
  • indicate that she had more to say.
  • “How are YOU going to make your fortune?” she said so soon as she could
  • speak again. “You haven’t told us that.”
  • “‘Lectricity,” said my uncle, taking breath after a deep draught of tea.
  • “If I make it at all,” I said. “For my part I think shall be satisfied
  • with something less than a fortune.”
  • “We’re going to make ours--suddenly,” she said.
  • “So HE old says.” She jerked her head at my uncle.
  • “He won’t tell me when--so I can’t get anything ready. But it’s
  • coming. Going to ride in our carriage and have a garden. Garden--like a
  • bishop’s.”
  • She finished her bun and twiddled crumbs from her fingers. “I shall be
  • glad of the garden,” she said. “It’s going to be a real big one with
  • rosaries and things. Fountains in it. Pampas grass. Hothouses.”
  • “You’ll get it all right,” said my uncle, who had reddened a little.
  • “Grey horses in the carriage, George,” she said. “It’s nice to think
  • about when one’s dull. And dinners in restaurants often and often. And
  • theatres--in the stalls. And money and money and money.”
  • “You may joke,” said my uncle, and hummed for a moment.
  • “Just as though an old Porpoise like him would ever make money,”
  • she said, turning her eyes upon his profile with a sudden lapse to
  • affection. “He’ll just porpoise about.”
  • “I’ll do something,” said my uncle, “you bet! Zzzz!” and rapped with a
  • shilling on the marble table.
  • “When you do you’ll have to buy me a new pair of gloves,” she said,
  • “anyhow. That finger’s past mending. Look! you Cabbage--you.” And she
  • held the split under his nose, and pulled a face of comical fierceness.
  • My uncle smiled at these sallies at the time, but afterwards, when I
  • went back with him to the Pharmacy--the low-class business grew brisker
  • in the evening and they kept open late--he reverted to it in a low
  • expository tone. “Your aunt’s a bit impatient, George. She gets at me.
  • It’s only natural.... A woman doesn’t understand how long it takes
  • to build up a position. No.... In certain directions now--I
  • am--quietly--building up a position. Now here.... I get this room. I
  • have my three assistants. Zzzz. It’s a position that, judged by the
  • criterion of imeedjit income, isn’t perhaps so good as I deserve,
  • but strategically--yes. It’s what I want. I make my plans. I rally my
  • attack.”
  • “What plans,” I said, “are you making?”
  • “Well, George, there’s one thing you can rely upon, I’m doing nothing in
  • a hurry. I turn over this one and that, and I don’t talk--indiscreetly.
  • There’s--No! I don’t think I can tell you that. And yet, why NOT?”
  • He got up and closed the door into the shop. “I’ve told no one,” he
  • remarked, as he sat down again. “I owe you something.”
  • His face flushed slightly, he leant forward over the little table
  • towards me.
  • “Listen!” he said.
  • I listened.
  • “Tono-Bungay,” said my uncle very slowly and distinctly.
  • I thought he was asking me to hear some remote, strange noise. “I don’t
  • hear anything,” I said reluctantly to his expectant face. He smiled
  • undefeated. “Try again,” he said, and repeated, “Tono-Bungay.”
  • “Oh, THAT!” I said.
  • “Eh?” said he.
  • “But what is it?”
  • “Ah!” said my uncle, rejoicing and expanding. “What IS it? That’s
  • what you got to ask? What won’t it be?” He dug me violently in what he
  • supposed to be my ribs. “George,” he cried--“George, watch this place!
  • There’s more to follow.”
  • And that was all I could get from him.
  • That, I believe, was the very first time that the words Tono-Bungay ever
  • heard on earth--unless my uncle indulged in monologues in his chamber--a
  • highly probable thing. Its utterance certainly did not seem to me at the
  • time to mark any sort of epoch, and had I been told this word was the
  • Open Sesame to whatever pride and pleasure the grimy front of London hid
  • from us that evening, I should have laughed aloud.
  • “Coming now to business,” I said after a pause, and with a chill sense
  • of effort; and I opened the question of his trust.
  • My uncle sighed, and leant back in his chair. “I wish I could make all
  • this business as clear to you as it is to me,” he said. “However--Go on!
  • Say what you have to say.”
  • VII
  • After I left my uncle that evening I gave way to a feeling of profound
  • depression. My uncle and aunt seemed to me to be leading--I have already
  • used the word too often, but I must use it again--DINGY lives. They
  • seemed to be adrift in a limitless crowd of dingy people, wearing shabby
  • clothes, living uncomfortably in shabby second-hand houses, going to and
  • fro on pavements that had always a thin veneer of greasy, slippery mud,
  • under grey skies that showed no gleam of hope of anything for them but
  • dinginess until they died. It seemed absolutely clear to me that my
  • mother’s little savings had been swallowed up and that my own prospect
  • was all too certainly to drop into and be swallowed up myself sooner
  • or later by this dingy London ocean. The London that was to be an
  • adventurous escape from the slumber of Wimblehurst, had vanished from my
  • dreams. I saw my uncle pointing to the houses in Park Lane and showing
  • a frayed shirt-cuff as he did so. I heard my aunt: “I’m to ride in my
  • carriage then. So he old says.”
  • My feelings towards my uncle were extraordinarily mixed. I was intensely
  • sorry not only for my aunt Susan but for him--for it seemed indisputable
  • that as they were living then so they must go on--and at the same time I
  • was angry with the garrulous vanity and illness that had elipped all
  • my chance of independent study, and imprisoned her in those grey
  • apartments. When I got back to Wimblehurst I allowed myself to write
  • him a boyishly sarcastic and sincerely bitter letter. He never replied.
  • Then, believing it to be the only way of escape for me, I set myself far
  • more grimly and resolutely to my studies than I had ever done before.
  • After a time I wrote to him in more moderate terms, and he answered
  • me evasively. And then I tried to dismiss him from my mind and went on
  • working.
  • Yes, that first raid upon London under the moist and chilly depression
  • of January had an immense effect upon me. It was for me an epoch-making
  • disappointment. I had thought of London as a large, free, welcoming,
  • adventurous place, and I saw it slovenly and harsh and irresponsive.
  • I did not realise at all what human things might be found behind
  • those grey frontages, what weakness that whole forbidding facade might
  • presently confess. It is the constant error of youth to over-estimate
  • the Will in things. I did not see that the dirt, the discouragement, the
  • discomfort of London could be due simply to the fact that London was
  • a witless old giantess of a town, too slack and stupid to keep herself
  • clean and maintain a brave face to the word. No! I suffered from the
  • sort of illusion that burnt witches in the seventeenth century. I
  • endued her grubby disorder with a sinister and magnificent quality of
  • intention.
  • And my uncle’s gestures and promises filled me with doubt and a sort of
  • fear for him. He seemed to me a lost little creature, too silly to be
  • silent, in a vast implacable condemnation. I was full of pity and a sort
  • of tenderness for my aunt Susan, who was doomed to follow his erratic
  • fortunes mocked by his grandiloquent promises.
  • I was to learn better. But I worked with the terror of the grim
  • underside of London in my soul during all my last year at Wimblehurst.
  • BOOK THE SECOND
  • THE RISE OF TONO-BUNGAY
  • CHAPTER THE FIRST
  • HOW I BECAME A LONDON STUDENT AND WENT ASTRAY
  • I came to live in London, as I shall tell you, when I was nearly
  • twenty-two. Wimblehurst dwindles in perspective, is now in this book a
  • little place far off, Bladesover no more than a small pinkish speck
  • of frontage among the distant Kentish hills; the scene broadens
  • out, becomes multitudinous and limitless, full of the sense of vast
  • irrelevant movement. I do not remember my second coming to London as I
  • do my first, for my early impressions, save that an October memory of
  • softened amber sunshine stands out, amber sunshine falling on grey house
  • fronts I know not where. That, and a sense of a large tranquillity.
  • I could fill a book, I think, with a more or less imaginary account
  • of how I came to apprehend London, how first in one aspect and then in
  • another it grew in my mind. Each day my accumulating impressions were
  • added to and qualified and brought into relationship with new ones; they
  • fused inseparably with others that were purely personal and accidental.
  • I find myself with a certain comprehensive perception of London,
  • complete indeed, incurably indistinct in places and yet in some way a
  • whole that began with my first visit and is still being mellowed and
  • enriched.
  • London!
  • At first, no doubt, it was a chaos of streets and people and buildings
  • and reasonless going to and fro. I do not remember that I ever struggled
  • very steadily to understand it, or explored it with any but a personal
  • and adventurous intention. Yet in time there has grown up in me a kind
  • of theory of London; I do think I see lines of an ordered structure out
  • of which it has grown, detected a process that is something more than
  • a confusion of casual accidents though indeed it may be no more than a
  • process of disease.
  • I said at the outset of my first book that I find in Bladesover the
  • clue to all England. Well, I certainly imagine it is the clue to the
  • structure of London. There have been no revolutions no deliberate
  • restatements or abandonments of opinion in England since the days of
  • the fine gentry, since 1688 or thereabouts, the days when Bladesover was
  • built; there have been changes, dissolving forest replacing forest, if
  • you will; but then it was that the broad lines of the English system
  • set firmly. And as I have gone to and fro in London in certain regions
  • constantly the thought has recurred this is Bladesover House, this
  • answers to Bladesover House. The fine gentry may have gone; they have
  • indeed largely gone, I think; rich merchants may have replaced them,
  • financial adventurers or what not. That does not matter; the shape is
  • still Bladesover.
  • I am most reminded of Bladesover and Eastry by all those regions round
  • about the West End parks; for example, estate parks, each more or less
  • in relation to a palace or group of great houses. The roads and back
  • ways of Mayfair and all about St. James’s again, albeit perhaps of a
  • later growth in point of time, were of the very spirit and architectural
  • texture of the Bladesover passages and yards; they had the same smells,
  • the space, the large cleanest and always going to and fro where one
  • met unmistakable Olympians and even more unmistakable valets, butlers,
  • footmen in mufti. There were moments when I seemed to glimpse down areas
  • the white panelling, the very chintz of my mother’s room again.
  • I could trace out now on a map what I would call the Great-House region;
  • passing south-westward into Belgravia, becoming diffused and sporadic
  • westward, finding its last systematic outbreak round and about Regent’s
  • Park. The Duke of Devonshire’s place in Piccadilly, in all its insolent
  • ugliness, pleases me particularly; it is the quintessence of the thing;
  • Apsley House is all in the manner of my theory, Park Lane has its quite
  • typical mansions, and they run along the border of the Green Park and
  • St. James’s. And I struck out a truth one day in Cromwell Road quite
  • suddenly, as I looked over the Natural History Museum “By Jove,” said I
  • “but this is the little assemblage of cases of stuffed birds and
  • animals upon the Bladesover staircase grown enormous, and yonder as the
  • corresponding thing to the Bladesover curios and porcelain is the Art
  • Museume and there in the little observatories in Exhibition Road is old
  • Sir Cuthbert’s Gregorian telescope that I hunted out in the storeroom
  • and put together.” And diving into the Art Museum under this
  • inspiration, I came to a little reading-room and found as I had
  • inferred, old brown books!
  • It was really a good piece of social comparative anatomy I did that
  • day; all these museums and libraries that are dotted over London between
  • Piccadilly and West Kensington, and indeed the museum and library
  • movement throughout the world, sprang from the elegant leisure of the
  • gentlemen of taste. Theirs were the first libraries, the first houses
  • of culture; by my rat-like raids into the Bladesover saloon I became,
  • as it were, the last dwindled representative of such a man of letters
  • as Swift. But now these things have escaped out of the Great House
  • altogether, and taken on a strange independent life of their own.
  • It is this idea of escaping parts from the seventeenth century system of
  • Bladesover, of proliferating and overgrowing elements from the Estates,
  • that to this day seems to me the best explanation, not simply of London,
  • but of all England. England is a country of great Renascence landed
  • gentlefolk who have been unconsciously outgrown and overgrown. The
  • proper shops for Bladesover custom were still to be found in Regent
  • Street and Bond Street in my early London days in those days they
  • had been but lightly touched by the American’s profaning hand--and in
  • Piccadilly. I found the doctor’s house of the country village or country
  • town up and down Harley Street, multiplied but not otherwise different,
  • and the family solicitor (by the hundred) further eastward in the
  • abandoned houses of a previous generation of gentlepeople, and down in
  • Westminster, behind Palladian fronts, the public offices sheltered
  • in large Bladesoverish rooms and looked out on St. James’s Park. The
  • Parliament Houses of lords and gentlemen, the parliament house that was
  • horrified when merchants and brewers came thrusting into it a hundred
  • years ago, stood out upon its terrace gathering the whole system
  • together into a head.
  • And the more I have paralleled these things with my Bladesover-Eastry
  • model, the more evident it has become to me that the balance is not the
  • same, and the more evident is the presence of great new forces, blind
  • forces of invasion, of growth. The railway termini on the north side of
  • London have been kept as remote as Eastry had kept the railway-station
  • from Wimblehurst, they stop on the very outskirts of the estates, but
  • from the south, the South Eastern railway had butted its great stupid
  • rusty iron head of Charing Cross station, that great head that came
  • smashing down in 1905--clean across the river, between Somerset House
  • and Whitehall. The south side had no protecting estate. Factory chimneys
  • smoke right over against Westminster with an air of carelessly not
  • having permission, and the whole effect of industrial London and of all
  • London east of Temple Bar and of the huge dingy immensity of London
  • port is to me of something disproportionately large, something morbidly
  • expanded, without plan or intention, dark and sinister toward the
  • clean clear social assurance of the West End. And south of this central
  • London, south-east, south-west, far west, north-west, all round the
  • northern hills, are similar disproportionate growths, endless streets
  • of undistinguished houses, undistinguished industries, shabby families,
  • second-rate shops, inexplicable people who in a once fashionable phrase
  • do not “exist.” All these aspects have suggested to my mind at times,
  • do suggest to this day, the unorganised, abundant substance of some
  • tumorous growth-process, a process which indeed bursts all the outlines
  • of the affected carcass and protrudes such masses as ignoble comfortable
  • Croydon, as tragic impoverished West Ham. To this day I ask myself
  • will those masses ever become structural, will they indeed shape
  • into anything new whatever, or is that cancerous image their true and
  • ultimate diagnosis?...
  • Moreover, together with this hypertrophy there is an immigration of
  • elements that have never understood and never will understand the great
  • tradition, wedges of foreign settlement embedded in the heart of this
  • yeasty English expansion. One day I remember wandering eastward out
  • of pure curiosity--it must have been in my early student days--and
  • discovering a shabbily bright foreign quarter, shops displaying
  • Hebrew placards and weird, unfamiliar commodities and a concourse of
  • bright-eyed, eagle-nosed people talking some incomprehensible gibberish
  • between the shops and the barrows. And soon I became quite familiar with
  • the devious, vicious, dirtily-pleasant eroticism of Soho. I found those
  • crowded streets a vast relief from the dull grey exterior of Brompton
  • where I lodged and lived my daily life. In Soho, indeed, I got my first
  • inkling of the factor of replacement that is so important in both the
  • English and the American process.
  • Even in the West End, in Mayfair and the square, about Pall Mall, Ewart
  • was presently to remind me the face of the old aristocratic dignity was
  • fairer than its substance; here were actors and actresses, here money
  • lenders and Jews, here bold financial adventurers, and I thought of my
  • uncle’s frayed cuff as he pointed out this house in Park Lane and
  • that. That was so and so’s who made a corner in borax, and that palace
  • belonged to that hero among modern adventurers, Barmentrude, who used
  • to be an I.D.B.,--an illicit diamond buyer that is to say. A city of
  • Bladesovers, the capital of a kingdom of Bladesovers, all much shaken
  • and many altogether in decay, parasitically occupied, insidiously
  • replaced by alien, unsympathetic and irresponsible elements; and with
  • a ruling an adventitious and miscellaneous empire of a quarter of this
  • daedal earth complex laws, intricate social necessities, disturbing
  • insatiable suggestions, followed from this. Such was the world into
  • which I had come, into which I had in some way to thrust myself and fit
  • my problem, my temptations, my efforts, my patriotic instinct, all my
  • moral instincts, my physical appetites, my dreams and my sanity.
  • London! I came up to it, young and without advisers, rather
  • priggish, rather dangerously open-minded and very open-eyed, and with
  • something--it is, I think, the common gift of imaginative youth, and I
  • claim it unblushingly--fine in me, finer than the world and seeking fine
  • responses. I did not want simply to live or simply to live happily or
  • well; I wanted to serve and do and make--with some nobility. It was in
  • me. It is in half the youth of the world.
  • II
  • I had come to London as a scholar. I had taken the Vincent Bradley
  • scholarship of the Pharmaceutical Society, but I threw this up when I
  • found that my work of the Science and Art Department in mathematics,
  • physics and chemistry had given me one of the minor Technical Board
  • Scholarships at the Consolidated Technical Schools at South Kensington.
  • This latter was in mechanics and metallurgy; and I hesitated between the
  • two. The Vincent Bradley gave me L70 a year and quite the best start-off
  • a pharmaceutical chemist could have; the South Kensington thing was
  • worth about twenty-two shillings a week, and the prospects it opened
  • were vague. But it meant far more scientific work than the former, and I
  • was still under the impulse of that great intellectual appetite that is
  • part of the adolescence of men of my type. Moreover it seemed to lead
  • towards engineering, in which I imagined--I imagine to this day--my
  • particular use is to be found. I took its greater uncertainty as a fair
  • risk. I came up very keen, not doubting that the really hard and steady
  • industry that had carried me through Wimblehurst would go on still in
  • the new surroundings.
  • Only from the very first it didn’t....
  • When I look back now at my Wimblehurst days, I still find myself
  • surprised at the amount of steady grinding study, of strenuous
  • self-discipline that I maintained throughout my apprenticeship. In many
  • ways I think that time was the most honourable period in my life. I wish
  • I could say with a certain mind that my motives in working so well were
  • large and honourable too. To a certain extent they were so; there was
  • a fine sincere curiosity, a desire for the strength and power of
  • scientific knowledge and a passion for intellectual exercise; but I
  • do not think those forces alone would have kept me at it so grimly
  • and closely if Wimblehurst had not been so dull, so limited and so
  • observant. Directly I came into the London atmosphere, tasting freedom,
  • tasting irresponsibility and the pull of new forces altogether, my
  • discipline fell from me like a garment. Wimblehurst to a youngster in my
  • position offered no temptations worth counting, no interests to conflict
  • with study, no vices--such vices as it offered were coarsely stripped of
  • any imaginative glamourfull drunkenness, clumsy leering shameful lust,
  • no social intercourse even to waste one’s time, and on the other hand it
  • would minister greatly to the self-esteem of a conspicuously industrious
  • student. One was marked as “clever,” one played up to the part, and
  • one’s little accomplishment stood out finely in one’s private reckoning
  • against the sunlit small ignorance of that agreeable place. One went
  • with an intent rush across the market square, one took one’s exercise
  • with as dramatic a sense of an ordered day as an Oxford don, one burnt
  • the midnight oil quite consciously at the rare respectful, benighted
  • passer-by. And one stood out finely in the local paper with one’s
  • unapproachable yearly harvest of certificates. Thus I was not only a
  • genuinely keen student, but also a little of a prig and poseur in those
  • days--and the latter kept the former at it, as London made clear.
  • Moreover Wimblehurst had given me no outlet in any other direction.
  • But I did not realise all this when I came to London, did not perceive
  • how the change of atmosphere began at once to warp and distribute my
  • energies. In the first place I became invisible. If I idled for a day,
  • no one except my fellow-students (who evidently had no awe for me)
  • remarked it. No one saw my midnight taper; no one pointed me out as I
  • crossed the street as an astonishing intellectual phenomenon. In the
  • next place I became inconsiderable. In Wimblehurst I felt I stood for
  • Science; nobody there seemed to have so much as I and to have it so
  • fully and completely. In London I walked ignorant in an immensity, and
  • it was clear that among my fellow-students from the midlands and the
  • north I was ill-equipped and under-trained. With the utmost exertion I
  • should only take a secondary position among them. And finally, in the
  • third place, I was distracted by voluminous new interests; London took
  • hold of me, and Science, which had been the universe, shrank back to the
  • dimensions of tiresome little formulae compacted in a book. I came to
  • London in late September, and it was a very different London from
  • that great greyly-overcast, smoke-stained house-wilderness of my first
  • impressions. I reached it by Victoria and not by Cannon Street, and its
  • centre was now in Exhibition Road. It shone, pale amber, blue-grey
  • and tenderly spacious and fine under clear autumnal skies, a London of
  • hugely handsome buildings and vistas and distances, a London of gardens
  • and labyrinthine tall museums, of old trees and remote palaces and
  • artificial waters. I lodged near by in West Brompton at a house in a
  • little square.
  • So London faced me the second time, making me forget altogether for a
  • while the grey, drizzling city visage that had first looked upon me. I
  • settled down and went to and fro to my lectures and laboratory; in
  • the beginning I worked hard, and only slowly did the curiosity that
  • presently possessed me to know more of this huge urban province arise,
  • the desire to find something beyond mechanism that I could serve, some
  • use other than learning. With this was a growing sense of loneliness,
  • a desire for adventure and intercourse. I found myself in the evenings
  • poring over a map of London I had bought, instead of copying out lecture
  • notes--and on Sundays I made explorations, taking omnibus rides east and
  • west and north and south, and to enlarging and broadening the sense of
  • great swarming hinterlands of humanity with whom I had no dealings, of
  • whom I knew nothing....
  • The whole illimitable place teemed with suggestions of indefinite and
  • sometimes outrageous possibility, of hidden but magnificent meanings.
  • It wasn’t simply that I received a vast impression of space and
  • multitude and opportunity; intimate things also were suddenly dragged
  • from neglected, veiled and darkened corners into an acute vividness of
  • perception. Close at hand in the big art museum I came for the first
  • time upon the beauty of nudity, which I had hitherto held to be a
  • shameful secret, flaunted and gloried in; I was made aware of beauty
  • as not only permissible, but desirable and frequent and of a thousand
  • hitherto unsuspected rich aspects of life. One night in a real rapture,
  • I walked round the upper gallery of the Albert Hall and listened for
  • the first time to great music; I believe now that it was a rendering of
  • Beethoven’s Ninth Symphony....
  • My apprehension of spaces and places was reinforced by a quickened
  • apprehension of persons. A constant stream of people passed by me,
  • eyes met and challenged mine and passed--more and more I wanted then to
  • stay--if I went eastward towards Piccadilly, women who seemed then to my
  • boyish inexperience softly splendid and alluring, murmured to me as
  • they passed. Extraordinarily life unveiled. The very hoardings clamoured
  • strangely at one’s senses and curiosities. One bought pamphlets and
  • papers full of strange and daring ideas transcending one’s boldest; in
  • the parks one heard men discussing the very existence of God, denying
  • the rights of property, debating a hundred things that one dared not
  • think about in Wimblehurst. And after the ordinary overcast day, after
  • dull mornings, came twilight, and London lit up and became a thing of
  • white and yellow and red jewels of light and wonderful floods of golden
  • illumination and stupendous and unfathomable shadows--and there were
  • no longer any mean or shabby people--but a great mysterious movement of
  • unaccountable beings....
  • Always I was coming on the queerest new aspects. Late one Saturday night
  • I found myself one of a great slow-moving crowd between the blazing
  • shops and the flaring barrows in the Harrow Road; I got into
  • conversation with two bold-eyed girls, bought them boxes of chocolate,
  • made the acquaintance of father and mother and various younger brothers
  • and sisters, sat in a public-house hilariously with them all, standing
  • and being stood drinks, and left them in the small hours at the door
  • of “home,” never to see them again. And once I was accosted on
  • the outskirts of a Salvation Army meeting in one of the parks by a
  • silk-hatted young man of eager and serious discourse, who argued against
  • scepticism with me, invited me home to tea into a clean and cheerful
  • family of brothers and sisters and friends, and there I spent
  • the evening singing hymns to the harmonium (which reminded me of
  • half-forgotten Chatham), and wishing all the sisters were not so
  • obviously engaged....
  • Then on the remote hill of this boundless city-world I found Ewart.
  • III
  • How well I remember the first morning, a bright Sunday morning in early
  • October, when I raided in upon Ewart! I found my old schoolfellow in
  • bed in a room over an oil-shop in a back street at the foot of Highgate
  • Hill. His landlady, a pleasant, dirty young woman with soft-brown eyes,
  • brought down his message for me to come up; and up I went. The room
  • presented itself as ample and interesting in detail and shabby with a
  • quite commendable shabbiness. I had an impression of brown walls--they
  • were papered with brown paper--of a long shelf along one side of the
  • room, with dusty plaster casts and a small cheap lay figure of a horse,
  • of a table and something of grey wax partially covered with a cloth,
  • and of scattered drawings. There was a gas stove in one corner, and some
  • enameled ware that had been used for overnight cooking. The oilcloth on
  • the floor was streaked with a peculiar white dust. Ewart himself was not
  • in the first instance visible, but only a fourfold canvas screen at the
  • end of the room from which shouts proceeded of “Come on!” then his wiry
  • black hair, very much rumpled, and a staring red-brown eye and his stump
  • of a nose came round the edge of this at a height of about three feet
  • from the ground “It’s old Ponderevo!” he said, “the Early bird! And he’s
  • caught the worm! By Jove, but it’s cold this morning! Come round here
  • and sit on the bed!”
  • I walked round, wrung his hand, and we surveyed one another.
  • He was lying on a small wooden fold-up bed, the scanty covering of which
  • was supplemented by an overcoat and an elderly but still cheerful pair
  • of check trousers, and he was wearing pajamas of a virulent pink and
  • green. His neck seemed longer and more stringy than it had been even in
  • our schooldays, and his upper lip had a wiry black moustache. The rest
  • of his ruddy, knobby countenance, his erratic hair and his general hairy
  • leanness had not even--to my perceptions grown.
  • “By Jove!” he said, “you’ve got quite decent-looking, Ponderevo! What do
  • you think of me?”
  • “You’re all right. What are you doing here?”
  • “Art, my son--sculpture! And incidentally--” He hesitated. “I ply a
  • trade. Will you hand me that pipe and those smoking things? So!
  • You can’t make coffee, eh? Well, try your hand. Cast down this
  • screen--no--fold it up and so we’ll go into the other room. I’ll keep
  • in bed all the same. The fire’s a gas stove. Yes. Don’t make it bang.
  • too loud as you light it--I can’t stand it this morning. You won’t smoke
  • ... Well, it does me good to see you again, Ponderevo. Tell me what
  • you’re doing, and how you’re getting on.”
  • He directed me in the service of his simple hospitality, and presently
  • I came back to his bed and sat down and smiled at him there, smoking
  • comfortably, with his hands under his head, surveying me.
  • “How’s Life’s Morning, Ponderevo? By Jove, it must be nearly six years
  • since we met! They’ve got moustaches. We’ve fleshed ourselves a bit, eh?
  • And you?”
  • I felt a pipe was becoming after all, and that lit, I gave him a
  • favourable sketch of my career.
  • “Science! And you’ve worked like that! While I’ve been potting round
  • doing odd jobs for stone-masons and people, and trying to get to
  • sculpture. I’ve a sort of feeling that the chisel--I began with
  • painting, Ponderevo, and found I was colour-blind, colour-blind
  • enough to stop it. I’ve drawn about and thought about--thought more
  • particularly. I give myself three days a week as an art student, and the
  • rest of the time I’ve a sort of trade that keeps me. And we’re still
  • in the beginning of things, young men starting. Do you remember the
  • old times at Goudhurst, our doll’s-house island, the Retreat of the Ten
  • Thousand Young Holmes and the rabbits, eh? It’s surprising, if you think
  • of it, to find we are still young. And we used to talk of what we would
  • be, and we used to talk of love! I suppose you know all about that now,
  • Ponderevo?”
  • I finished and hesitated on some vague foolish lie, “No,” I said, a
  • little ashamed of the truth. “Do you? I’ve been too busy.”
  • “I’m just beginning--just as we were then. Things happen.”
  • He sucked at his pipe for a space and stared at the plaster cast of a
  • flayed hand that hung on the wall.
  • “The fact is, Ponderevo, I’m beginning to find life a most extraordinary
  • queer set-out; the things that pull one, the things that don’t. The
  • wants--This business of sex. It’s a net. No end to it, no way out of it,
  • no sense in it. There are times when women take possession of me, when
  • my mind is like a painted ceiling at Hampton Court with the pride of
  • the flesh sprawling all over it. WHY?... And then again sometimes when
  • I have to encounter a woman, I am overwhelmed by a terror of tantalising
  • boredom--I fly, I hide, I do anything. You’ve got your scientific
  • explanations perhaps; what’s Nature and the universe up to in that
  • matter?”
  • “It’s her way, I gather, of securing the continuity of the species.”
  • “But it doesn’t,” said Ewart. “That’s just it! No. I have succumbed
  • to--dissipation--down the hill there. Euston Road way. And it was damned
  • ugly and mean, and I hate having done it. And the continuity of the
  • species--Lord!... And why does Nature make a man so infernally ready for
  • drinks? There’s no sense in that anyhow.” He sat up in bed, to put this
  • question with the greater earnestness. “And why has she given me a most
  • violent desire towards sculpture and an equally violent desire to leave
  • off work directly I begin it, eh?... Let’s have some more coffee. I put
  • it to you, these things puzzle me, Ponderevo. They dishearten me. They
  • keep me in bed.”
  • He had an air of having saved up these difficulties for me for some
  • time. He sat with his chin almost touching his knees, sucking at his
  • pipe.
  • “That’s what I mean,” he went on, “when I say life is getting on to me
  • as extraordinarily queer, I don’t see my game, nor why I was invited.
  • And I don’t make anything of the world outside either. What do you make
  • of it?”
  • “London,” I began. “It’s--so enormous!”
  • “Isn’t it! And it’s all up to nothing. You find chaps keeping grocers’
  • shops--why the DEVIL, Ponderevo, do they keep grocers’ shops? They
  • all do it very carefully, very steadily, very meanly. You find people
  • running about and doing the most remarkable things being policemen, for
  • example, and burglars. They go about these businesses quite gravely and
  • earnestly. I somehow--can’t go about mine. Is there any sense in it at
  • all--anywhere?”
  • “There must be sense in it,” I said. “We’re young.”
  • “We’re young--yes. But one must inquire. The grocer’s a grocer because,
  • I suppose, he sees he comes in there. Feels that on the whole it amounts
  • to a call.... But the bother is I don’t see where I come in at all. Do
  • you?”
  • “Where you come in?”
  • “No, where you come in.”
  • “Not exactly, yet,” I said. “I want to do some good in the
  • world--something--something effectual, before I die. I have a sort of
  • idea my scientific work--I don’t know.”
  • “Yes,” he mused. “And I’ve got a sort of idea my sculpture,--but now it
  • is to come in and WHY,--I’ve no idea at all.” He hugged his knees for a
  • space. “That’s what puzzles me, Ponderevo, no end.”
  • He became animated. “If you will look in that cupboard,” he said,
  • “you will find an old respectable looking roll on a plate and a knife
  • somewhere and a gallipot containing butter. You give them me and I’ll
  • make my breakfast, and then if you don’t mind watching me paddle about
  • at my simple toilet I’ll get up. Then we’ll go for a walk and talk about
  • this affair of life further. And about Art and Literature and anything
  • else that crops up on the way.... Yes, that’s the gallipot. Cockroach
  • got in it? Chuck him out--damned interloper....”
  • So in the first five minutes of our talk, as I seem to remember it
  • now, old Ewart struck the note that ran through all that morning’s
  • intercourse....
  • To me it was a most memorable talk because it opened out quite new
  • horizons of thought. I’d been working rather close and out of touch
  • with Ewart’s free gesticulating way. He was pessimistic that day and
  • sceptical to the very root of things. He made me feel clearly, what
  • I had not felt at all before, the general adventurousness of life,
  • particularly of life at the stage we had reached, and also the absence
  • of definite objects, of any concerted purpose in the lives that were
  • going on all round us. He made me feel, too, how ready I was to take up
  • commonplace assumptions. Just as I had always imagined that somewhere
  • in social arrangements there was certainly a Head-Master who would
  • intervene if one went too far, so I had always had a sort of implicit
  • belief that in our England there were somewhere people who understood
  • what we were all, as a nation, about. That crumpled into his pit of
  • doubt and vanished.
  • He brought out, sharply cut and certain, the immense effect of
  • purposelessness in London that I was already indistinctly feeling. We
  • found ourselves at last returning through Highgate Cemetery and Waterlow
  • Park--and Ewart was talking.
  • “Look at it there,” he said, stopping and pointing to the great vale of
  • London spreading wide and far. “It’s like a sea--and we swim in it. And
  • at last down we go, and then up we come--washed up here.” He swung
  • his arms to the long slopes about us, tombs and headstones in long
  • perspectives, in limitless rows.
  • “We’re young, Ponderevo, but sooner or later our whitened memories will
  • wash up on one of these beaches, on some such beach as this. George
  • Ponderevo, F.R.S., Sidney Ewart, R.I.P. Look at the rows of ‘em!”
  • He paused. “Do you see that hand? The hand, I mean, pointing upward,
  • on the top of a blunted obelisk. Yes. Well, that’s what I do for a
  • living--when I’m not thinking, or drinking, or prowling, or making love,
  • or pretending I’m trying to be a sculptor without either the money
  • or the morals for a model. See? And I do those hearts afire and those
  • pensive angel guardians with the palm of peace. Damned well I do ‘em and
  • damned cheap! I’m a sweated victim, Ponderevo...”
  • That was the way of it, anyhow. I drank deep of talk that day; we went
  • into theology, into philosophy; I had my first glimpse of socialism. I
  • felt as though I had been silent in a silence since I and he had parted.
  • At the thought of socialism Ewart’s moods changed for a time to a sort
  • of energy. “After all, all this confounded vagueness might be altered.
  • If you could get men to work together...”
  • It was a good talk that rambled through all the universe. I thought I
  • was giving my mind refreshment, but indeed it was dissipation. All sorts
  • of ideas, even now, carry me back as it were to a fountain-head, to
  • Waterlow Park and my resuscitated Ewart. There stretches away south
  • of us long garden slopes and white gravestones and the wide expanse of
  • London, and somewhere in the picture is a red old wall, sun-warmed, and
  • a great blaze of Michaelmas daisies set off with late golden sunflowers
  • and a drift of mottled, blood-red, fallen leaves. It was with me that
  • day as though I had lifted my head suddenly out of dull and immediate
  • things and looked at life altogether.... But it played the very devil
  • with the copying up of my arrears of notes to which I had vowed the
  • latter half of that day.
  • After that reunion Ewart and I met much and talked much, and in our
  • subsequent encounters his monologue was interrupted and I took my share.
  • He had exercised me so greatly that I lay awake at nights thinking
  • him over, and discoursed and answered him in my head as I went in the
  • morning to the College. I am by nature a doer and only by the way a
  • critic; his philosophical assertion of the incalculable vagueness of
  • life which fitted his natural indolence roused my more irritable and
  • energetic nature to active protests. “It’s all so pointless,” I said,
  • “because people are slack and because it’s in the ebb of an age. But
  • you’re a socialist. Well, let’s bring that about! And there’s a purpose.
  • There you are!”
  • Ewart gave me all my first conceptions of socialism; in a little while
  • I was an enthusiastic socialist and he was a passive resister to the
  • practical exposition of the theories he had taught me. “We must join
  • some organisation,” I said. “We ought to do things.... We ought to go
  • and speak at street corners. People don’t know.”
  • You must figure me a rather ill-dressed young man in a state of great
  • earnestness, standing up in that shabby studio of his and saying these
  • things, perhaps with some gesticulations, and Ewart with a clay-smudged
  • face, dressed perhaps in a flannel shirt and trousers, with a pipe in
  • his mouth, squatting philosophically at a table, working at some chunk
  • of clay that never got beyond suggestion.
  • “I wonder why one doesn’t want to,” he said.
  • It was only very slowly I came to gauge Ewart’s real position in the
  • scheme of things, to understand how deliberate and complete was this
  • detachment of his from the moral condemnation and responsibilities that
  • played so fine a part in his talk. His was essentially the nature of
  • an artistic appreciator; he could find interest and beauty in endless
  • aspects of things that I marked as evil, or at least as not negotiable;
  • and the impulse I had towards self-deception, to sustained and
  • consistent self-devotion, disturbed and detached and pointless as it was
  • at that time, he had indeed a sort of admiration for but no sympathy.
  • Like many fantastic and ample talkers he was at bottom secretive, and
  • he gave me a series of little shocks of discovery throughout our
  • intercourse.
  • The first of these came in the realisation that he quite seriously meant
  • to do nothing in the world at all towards reforming the evils he laid
  • bare in so easy and dexterous a manner. The next came in the sudden
  • appearance of a person called “Milly”--I’ve forgotten her surname--whom
  • I found in his room one evening, simply attired in a blue wrap--the
  • rest of her costume behind the screen--smoking cigarettes and sharing
  • a flagon of an amazingly cheap and self-assertive grocer’s wine Ewart
  • affected, called “Canary Sack.” “Hullo!” said Ewart, as I came in. “This
  • is Milly, you know. She’s been being a model--she IS a model really....
  • (keep calm, Ponderevo!) Have some sack?”
  • Milly was a woman of thirty, perhaps, with a broad, rather pretty face,
  • a placid disposition, a bad accent and delightful blond hair that waved
  • off her head with an irrepressible variety of charm; and whenever Ewart
  • spoke she beamed at him. Ewart was always sketching this hair of hers
  • and embarking upon clay statuettes of her that were never finished. She
  • was, I know now, a woman of the streets, whom Ewart had picked up in
  • the most casual manner, and who had fallen in love with him, but my
  • inexperience in those days was too great for me to place her then, and
  • Ewart offered no elucidations. She came to him, he went to her, they
  • took holidays together in the country when certainly she sustained her
  • fair share of their expenditure. I suspect him now even of taking money
  • from her. Odd old Ewart! It was a relationship so alien to my orderly
  • conceptions of honour, to what I could imagine any friend of mine doing,
  • that I really hardly saw it with it there under my nose. But I see it
  • and I think I understand it now....
  • Before I fully grasped the discursive manner in which Ewart was
  • committed to his particular way in life, I did, I say, as the broad
  • constructive ideas of socialism took hold of me, try to get him to work
  • with me in some definite fashion as a socialist.
  • “We ought to join on to other socialists,” I said.
  • “They’ve got something.”
  • “Let’s go and look at some first.”
  • After some pains we discovered the office of the Fabian Society, lurking
  • in a cellar in Clement’s Inn; and we went and interviewed a rather
  • discouraging secretary who stood astraddle in front of a fire and
  • questioned us severely and seemed to doubt the integrity of our
  • intentions profoundly. He advised us to attend the next open meeting in
  • Clifford’s Inn and gave us the necessary data. We both contrived to get
  • to the affair, and heard a discursive gritty paper on Trusts and one of
  • the most inconclusive discussions you can imagine. Three-quarters of
  • the speakers seemed under some jocular obsession which took the form
  • of pretending to be conceited. It was a sort of family joke, and as
  • strangers to the family we did not like it.... As we came out through
  • the narrow passage from Clifford’s Inn to the Strand, Ewart suddenly
  • pitched upon a wizened, spectacled little man in a vast felt hat and a
  • large orange tie.
  • “How many members are there in this Fabian Society of yours?” he asked.
  • The little man became at once defensive in his manner.
  • “About seven hundred,” he said; “perhaps eight.”
  • “Like--like the ones here?”
  • The little man gave a nervous self-satisfied laugh. “I suppose they’re
  • up to sample,” he said.
  • The little man dropped out of existence and we emerged upon the Strand.
  • Ewart twisted his arm into a queerly eloquent gesture that gathered up
  • all the tall facades of the banks, the business places, the projecting
  • clock and towers of the Law Courts, the advertisements, the luminous
  • signs, into one social immensity, into a capitalistic system gigantic
  • and invincible.
  • “These socialists have no sense of proportion,” he said. “What can you
  • expect of them?”
  • IV
  • Ewart, as the embodiment of talk, was certainly a leading factor in my
  • conspicuous failure to go on studying. Social theory in its first crude
  • form of Democratic Socialism gripped my intelligence more and more
  • powerfully. I argued in the laboratory with the man who shared my bench
  • until we quarreled and did not speak and also I fell in love.
  • The ferment of sex had been creeping into my being like a slowly
  • advancing tide through all my Wimblehurst days, the stimulus of London
  • was like the rising of a wind out of the sea that brings the waves in
  • fast and high. Ewart had his share in that. More and more acutely and
  • unmistakably did my perception of beauty, form and sound, my desire
  • for adventure, my desire for intercourse, converge on this central and
  • commanding business of the individual life. I had to get me a mate.
  • I began to fall in love faintly with girls I passed in the street,
  • with women who sat before me in trains, with girl fellow-students,
  • with ladies in passing carriages, with loiterers at the corners, with
  • neat-handed waitresses in shops and tea-rooms, with pictures even
  • of girls and women. On my rare visits to the theatre I always became
  • exalted, and found the actresses and even the spectators about me
  • mysterious, attractive, creatures of deep interest and desire. I had
  • a stronger and stronger sense that among these glancing, passing
  • multitudes there was somewhere one who was for me. And in spite of every
  • antagonistic force in the world, there was something in my very marrow
  • that insisted: “Stop! Look at this one! Think of her! Won’t she do?
  • This signifies--this before all things signifies! Stop! Why are you
  • hurrying by? This may be the predestined person--before all others.”
  • It is odd that I can’t remember when first I saw Marion, who became my
  • wife--whom I was to make wretched, who was to make me wretched, who
  • was to pluck that fine generalised possibility of love out of my early
  • manhood and make it a personal conflict. I became aware of her as one of
  • a number of interesting attractive figures that moved about in my world,
  • that glanced back at my eyes, that flitted by with a kind of averted
  • watchfulness. I would meet her coming through the Art Museum, which
  • was my short cut to the Brompton Road, or see her sitting, reading as I
  • thought, in one of the bays of the Education Library. But really, as I
  • found out afterwards, she never read. She used to come there to eat a
  • bun in quiet. She was a very gracefully-moving figure of a girl then,
  • very plainly dressed, with dark brown hair I remember, in a knot low
  • on her neck behind that confessed the pretty roundness of her head
  • and harmonised with the admirable lines of ears and cheek, the grave
  • serenity of mouth and brow.
  • She stood out among the other girls very distinctly because they dressed
  • more than she did, struck emphatic notes of colour, startled one by
  • novelties in hats and bows and things. I’ve always hated the rustle, the
  • disconcerting colour boundaries, the smart unnatural angles of women’s
  • clothes. Her plain black dress gave her a starkness....
  • I do remember, though, how one afternoon I discovered the peculiar
  • appeal of her form for me. I had been restless with my work and had
  • finally slipped out of the Laboratory and come over to the Art Museum
  • to lounge among the pictures. I came upon her in an odd corner of the
  • Sheepshanks gallery, intently copying something from a picture that hung
  • high. I had just been in the gallery of casts from the antique, my mind
  • was all alive with my newly awakened sense of line, and there she stood
  • with face upturned, her body drooping forward from the hips just a
  • little--memorably graceful--feminine.
  • After that I know I sought to see her, felt a distinctive emotion at
  • her presence, began to imagine things about her. I no longer thought
  • of generalised womanhood or of this casual person or that. I thought of
  • her.
  • An accident brought us together. I found myself one Monday morning in an
  • omnibus staggering westward from Victoria--I was returning from a Sunday
  • I’d spent at Wimblehurst in response to a unique freak of hospitality
  • on the part of Mr. Mantell. She was the sole other inside passenger.
  • And when the time came to pay her fare, she became an extremely scared,
  • disconcerted and fumbling young woman; she had left her purse at home.
  • Luckily I had some money.
  • She looked at me with startled, troubled brown eyes; she permitted my
  • proffered payment to the conductor with a certain ungraciousness that
  • seemed a part of her shyness, and then as she rose to go, she thanked me
  • with an obvious affectation of ease.
  • “Thank you so much,” she said in a pleasant soft voice; and then less
  • gracefully, “Awfully kind of you, you know.”
  • I fancy I made polite noises. But just then I wasn’t disposed to be
  • critical. I was full of the sense of her presence; her arm was stretched
  • out over me as she moved past me, the gracious slenderness of her body
  • was near me. The words we used didn’t seem very greatly to matter. I had
  • vague ideas of getting out with her--and I didn’t.
  • That encounter, I have no doubt, exercised me enormously. I lay awake
  • at night rehearsing it, and wondering about the next phase of our
  • relationship. That took the form of the return of my twopence. I was
  • in the Science Library, digging something out of the Encyclopedia
  • Britannica, when she appeared beside me and placed on the open page an
  • evidently premeditated thin envelope, bulgingly confessing the coins
  • within.
  • “It was so very kind of you,” she said, “the other day. I don’t know
  • what I should have done, Mr.--”
  • I supplied my name. “I knew,” I said, “you were a student here.”
  • “Not exactly a student. I--”
  • “Well, anyhow, I knew you were here frequently. And I’m a student myself
  • at the Consolidated Technical Schools.”
  • I plunged into autobiography and questionings, and so entangled her in
  • a conversation that got a quality of intimacy through the fact that,
  • out of deference to our fellow-readers, we were obliged to speak in
  • undertones. And I have no doubt that in substance it was singularly
  • banal. Indeed I have an impression that all our early conversations were
  • incredibly banal. We met several times in a manner half-accidental, half
  • furtive and wholly awkward. Mentally I didn’t take hold of her. I never
  • did take hold of her mentally. Her talk, I now know all too clearly, was
  • shallow, pretentious, evasive. Only--even to this day--I don’t remember
  • it as in any way vulgar. She was, I could see quite clearly, anxious
  • to overstate or conceal her real social status, a little desirous to
  • be taken for a student in the art school and a little ashamed that she
  • wasn’t. She came to the museum to “copy things,” and this, I gathered,
  • had something to do with some way of partially earning her living that I
  • wasn’t to inquire into. I told her things about myself, vain things that
  • I felt might appeal to her, but that I learnt long afterwards made her
  • think me “conceited.” We talked of books, but there she was very much on
  • her guard and secretive, and rather more freely of pictures. She “liked”
  • pictures. I think from the outset I appreciated and did not for a moment
  • resent that hers was a commonplace mind, that she was the unconscious
  • custodian of something that had gripped my most intimate instinct, that
  • she embodied the hope of a possibility, was the careless proprietor of a
  • physical quality that had turned my head like strong wine. I felt I had
  • to stick to our acquaintance, flat as it was. Presently we should get
  • through these irrelevant exterior things, and come to the reality of
  • love beneath.
  • I saw her in dreams released, as it were, from herself, beautiful,
  • worshipful, glowing. And sometimes when we were together, we would come
  • on silences through sheer lack of matter, and then my eyes would feast
  • on her, and the silence seemed like the drawing back of a curtain--her
  • superficial self. Odd, I confess. Odd, particularly, the enormous hold
  • of certain things about her upon me, a certain slight rounded duskiness
  • of skin, a certain perfection of modelling in her lips, her brow, a
  • certain fine flow about the shoulders. She wasn’t indeed beautiful
  • to many people--these things are beyond explaining. She had manifest
  • defects of form and feature, and they didn’t matter at all. Her
  • complexion was bad, but I don’t think it would have mattered if it
  • had been positively unwholesome. I had extraordinarily limited,
  • extraordinarily painful, desires. I longed intolerably to kiss her lips.
  • V
  • The affair was immensely serious and commanding to me. I don’t remember
  • that in these earlier phases I had any thought of turning back at
  • all. It was clear to me that she regarded me with an eye entirely
  • more critical than I had for her, that she didn’t like my scholarly
  • untidiness, my want of even the most commonplace style. “Why do you
  • wear collars like that?” she said, and sent me in pursuit of gentlemanly
  • neckwear. I remember when she invited me a little abruptly one day to
  • come to tea at her home on the following Sunday and meet her father
  • and mother and aunt, that I immediately doubted whether my hitherto
  • unsuspected best clothes would create the impression she desired me to
  • make on her belongings. I put off the encounter until the Sunday after,
  • to get myself in order. I had a morning coat made and I bought a silk
  • hat, and had my reward in the first glance of admiration she ever gave
  • me. I wonder how many of my sex are as preposterous. I was, you see,
  • abandoning all my beliefs, my conventions unasked. I was forgetting
  • myself immensely. And there was a conscious shame in it all. Never a
  • word--did I breathe to Ewart--to any living soul of what was going on.
  • Her father and mother and aunt struck me as the dismalest of people,
  • and her home in Walham Green was chiefly notable for its black and
  • amber tapestry carpets and curtains and table-cloths, and the age and
  • irrelevance of its books, mostly books with faded gilt on the covers.
  • The windows were fortified against the intrusive eye by cheap lace
  • curtains and an “art pot” upon an unstable octagonal table. Several
  • framed Art School drawings of Marion’s, bearing official South
  • Kensington marks of approval, adorned the room, and there was a black
  • and gilt piano with a hymn-book on the top of it. There were draped
  • mirrors over all the mantels, and above the sideboard in the dining-room
  • in which we sat at tea was a portrait of her father, villainously
  • truthful after the manner of such works. I couldn’t see a trace of the
  • beauty I found in her in either parent, yet she somehow contrived to be
  • like them both.
  • These people pretended in a way that reminded me of the Three Great
  • Women in my mother’s room, but they had not nearly so much social
  • knowledge and did not do it nearly so well. Also, I remarked, they did
  • it with an eye on Marion. They had wanted to thank me, they said, for
  • the kindness to their daughter in the matter of the ‘bus fare, and so
  • accounted for anything unusual in their invitation. They posed as simple
  • gentlefolk, a little hostile to the rush and gadding-about of London,
  • preferring a secluded and unpretentious quiet.
  • When Marion got out the white table-cloth from the sideboard-drawer for
  • tea, a card bearing the word “APARTMENTS” fell to the floor. I picked it
  • up and gave it to her before I realised from her quickened colour that I
  • should not have seen it; that probably had been removed from the window
  • in honour of my coming.
  • Her father spoke once in a large remote way of he claims of business
  • engagements, and it was only long afterwards I realised that he was a
  • supernumerary clerk in the Walham Green Gas Works and otherwise a useful
  • man at home. He was a large, loose, fattish man with unintelligent brown
  • eyes magnified by spectacles; he wore an ill-fitting frock-coat and a
  • paper collar, and he showed me, as his great treasure and interest, a
  • large Bible which he had grangerised with photographs of pictures. Also
  • he cultivated the little garden-yard behind the house, and he had a
  • small greenhouse with tomatoes. “I wish I ‘ad ‘eat,” he said. “One can
  • do such a lot with ‘eat. But I suppose you can’t ‘ave everything you
  • want in this world.”
  • Both he and Marion’s mother treated her with a deference that struck me
  • as the most natural thing in the world. Her own manner changed, became
  • more authoritative and watchful, her shyness disappeared. She had taken
  • a line of her own I gathered, draped the mirror, got the second-hand
  • piano, and broken her parents in.
  • Her mother must once have been a pretty woman; she had regular features
  • and Marion’s hair without its lustre, but she was thin and careworn.
  • The aunt, Miss Ramboat, was a large, abnormally shy person very like her
  • brother, and I don’t recall anything she said on this occasion.
  • To begin with there was a good deal of tension, Marion was frightfully
  • nervous and every one was under the necessity of behaving in a
  • mysteriously unreal fashion until I plunged, became talkative and made
  • a certain ease and interest. I told them of the schools, of my lodgings,
  • of Wimblehurst and my apprenticeship days. “There’s a lot of this
  • Science about nowadays,” Mr. Ramboat reflected; “but I sometimes wonder
  • a bit what good it is?”
  • I was young enough to be led into what he called “a bit of a
  • discussion,” which Marion truncated before our voices became unduly
  • raised. “I dare say,” she said, “there’s much to be said on both sides.”
  • I remember Marion’s mother asked me what church I attended, and that
  • I replied evasively. After tea there was music and we sang hymns. I
  • doubted if I had a voice when this was proposed, but that was held to be
  • a trivial objection, and I found sitting close beside the sweep of
  • hair from Marion’s brow had many compensations. I discovered her mother
  • sitting in the horsehair armchair and regarding us sentimentally. I went
  • for a walk with Marion towards Putney Bridge, and then there was more
  • singing and a supper of cold bacon and pie, after which Mr. Ramboat and
  • I smoked. During that walk, I remember, she told me the import of her
  • sketchings and copyings in the museum. A cousin of a friend of hers whom
  • she spoke of as Smithie, had developed an original business in a sort of
  • tea-gown garment which she called a Persian Robe, a plain sort of wrap
  • with a gaily embroidered yoke, and Marion went there and worked in the
  • busy times. In the times that weren’t busy she designed novelties in
  • yokes by an assiduous use of eyes and note-book in the museum, and went
  • home and traced out the captured forms on the foundation material. “I
  • don’t get much,” said Marion, “but it’s interesting, and in the busy
  • times we work all day. Of course the workgirls are dreadfully common,
  • but we don’t say much to them. And Smithie talks enough for ten.”
  • I quite understood the workgirls were dreadfully common.
  • I don’t remember that the Walham Green menage and the quality of these
  • people, nor the light they threw on Marion, detracted in the slightest
  • degree at that time from the intent resolve that held me to make her
  • mine. I didn’t like them. But I took them as part of the affair. Indeed,
  • on the whole, I think they threw her up by an effect of contrast; she
  • was so obviously controlling them, so consciously superior to them.
  • More and more of my time did I give to this passion that possessed me. I
  • began to think chiefly of ways of pleasing Marion, of acts of devotion,
  • of treats, of sumptuous presents for her, of appeals she would
  • understand. If at times she was manifestly unintelligent, in her
  • ignorance became indisputable, I told myself her simple instincts were
  • worth all the education and intelligence in the world. And to this day
  • I think I wasn’t really wrong about her. There was something
  • extraordinarily fine about her, something simple and high, that
  • flickered in and out of her ignorance and commonness and limitations
  • like the tongue from the mouth of a snake....
  • One night I was privileged to meet her and bring her home from an
  • entertainment at the Birkbeck Institute. We came back on the underground
  • railway and we travelled first-class--that being the highest class
  • available. We were alone in the carriage, and for the first time I
  • ventured to put my arm about her.
  • “You mustn’t,” she said feebly.
  • “I love you,” I whispered suddenly with my heart beating wildly, drew
  • her to me, drew all her beauty to me and kissed her cool and unresisting
  • lips.
  • “Love me?” she said, struggling away from me, “Don’t!” and then, as the
  • train ran into a station, “You must tell no one.... I don’t know.... You
  • shouldn’t have done that....”
  • Then two other people got in with us and terminated my wooing for a
  • time.
  • When we found ourselves alone together, walking towards Battersea, she
  • had decided to be offended. I parted from her unforgiven and terribly
  • distressed.
  • When we met again, she told me I must never say “that” again.
  • I had dreamt that to kiss her lips was ultimate satisfaction. But it was
  • indeed only the beginning of desires. I told her my one ambition was to
  • marry her.
  • “But,” she said, “you’re not in a position--What’s the good of talking
  • like that?”
  • I stared at her. “I mean to,” I said.
  • “You can’t,” she answered. “It will be years”
  • “But I love you,” I insisted.
  • I stood not a yard from the sweet lips I had kissed; I stood within
  • arm’s length of the inanimate beauty I desired to quicken, and I saw
  • opening between us a gulf of years, toil, waiting, disappointments and
  • an immense uncertainty.
  • “I love you,” I said. “Don’t you love me?”
  • She looked me in the face with grave irresponsive eyes.
  • “I don’t know,” she said. “I LIKE you, of course.... One has to be
  • sensibl...”
  • I can remember now my sense of frustration by her unresilient reply.
  • I should have perceived then that for her my ardour had no quickening
  • fire. But how was I to know? I had let myself come to want her, my
  • imagination endowed her with infinite possibilities. I wanted her and
  • wanted her, stupidly and instinctively....
  • “But,” I said “Love--!”
  • “One has to be sensible,” she replied. “I like going about with you.
  • Can’t we keep as we are?’”
  • VI
  • Well, you begin to understand my breakdown now, I have been copious
  • enough with these apologia. My work got more and more spiritless, my
  • behaviour degenerated, my punctuality declined; I was more and more
  • outclassed in the steady grind by my fellow-students. Such supplies of
  • moral energy as I still had at command shaped now in the direction of
  • serving Marion rather than science.
  • I fell away dreadfully, more and more I shirked and skulked; the humped
  • men from the north, the pale men with thin, clenched minds, the intent,
  • hard-breathing students I found against me, fell at last from keen
  • rivalry to moral contempt. Even a girl got above me upon one of the
  • lists. Then indeed I made it a point of honour to show by my public
  • disregard of every rule that I really did not even pretend to try.
  • So one day I found myself sitting in a mood of considerable astonishment
  • in Kensington Gardens, reacting on a recent heated interview with the
  • school Registrar in which I had displayed more spirit than sense. I was
  • astonished chiefly at my stupendous falling away from all the militant
  • ideals of unflinching study I had brought up from Wimblehurst. I had
  • displayed myself, as the Registrar put it, “an unmitigated rotter.” My
  • failure to get marks in the written examination had only been equalled
  • by the insufficiency of my practical work.
  • “I ask you,” the Registrar had said, “what will become of you when your
  • scholarship runs out?”
  • It certainly was an interesting question. What was going to become of
  • me?
  • It was clear there would be nothing for me in the schools as I had once
  • dared to hope; there seemed, indeed, scarcely anything in the world
  • except an illpaid assistantship in some provincial organized Science
  • School or grammar school. I knew that for that sort of work, without
  • a degree or any qualification, one earned hardly a bare living and had
  • little leisure to struggle up to anything better. If only I had even
  • as little as fifty pounds I might hold out in London and take my
  • B.Sc. degree, and quadruple my chances! My bitterness against my uncle
  • returned at the thought. After all, he had some of my money still, or
  • ought to have. Why shouldn’t I act within my rights, threaten to ‘take
  • proceedings’? I meditated for a space on the idea, and then returned to
  • the Science Library and wrote him a very considerable and occasionally
  • pungent letter.
  • That letter to my uncle was the nadir of my failure. Its remarkable
  • consequences, which ended my student days altogether, I will tell in the
  • next chapter.
  • I say “my failure.” Yet there are times when I can even doubt whether
  • that period was a failure at all, when I become defensively critical of
  • those exacting courses I did not follow, the encyclopaedic process
  • of scientific exhaustion from which I was distracted. My mind was not
  • inactive, even if it fed on forbidden food. I did not learn what my
  • professors and demonstrators had resolved I should learn, but I learnt
  • many things. My mind learnt to swing wide and to swing by itself.
  • After all, those other fellows who took high places in the College
  • examinations and were the professor’s model boys haven’t done so
  • amazingly. Some are professors themselves, some technical experts; not
  • one can show things done such as I, following my own interest, have
  • achieved. For I have built boats that smack across the water like
  • whiplashes; no one ever dreamt of such boats until I built them; and I
  • have surprised three secrets that are more than technical discoveries,
  • in the unexpected hiding-places of Nature. I have come nearer flying
  • than any man has done. Could I have done as much if I had had a turn for
  • obeying those rather mediocre professors at the college who proposed
  • to train my mind? If I had been trained in research--that ridiculous
  • contradiction in terms--should I have done more than produce additions
  • to the existing store of little papers with blunted conclusions, of
  • which there are already too many? I see no sense in mock modesty upon
  • this matter. Even by the standards of worldly success I am, by the side
  • of my fellow-students, no failure. I had my F.R.S. by the time I was
  • thirty-seven, and if I am not very wealthy poverty is as far from me as
  • the Spanish Inquisition. Suppose I had stamped down on the head of my
  • wandering curiosity, locked my imagination in a box just when it wanted
  • to grow out to things, worked by so-and-so’s excellent method and
  • so-and-so’s indications, where should I be now?
  • I may be all wrong in this. It may be I should be a far more efficient
  • man than I am if I had cut off all those divergent expenditures of
  • energy, plugged up my curiosity about society with more currently
  • acceptable rubbish or other, abandoned Ewart, evaded Marion instead of
  • pursuing her, concentrated. But I don’t believe it!
  • However, I certainly believed it completely and was filled with remorse
  • on that afternoon when I sat dejectedly in Kensington Gardens and
  • reviewed, in the light of the Registrar’s pertinent questions my first
  • two years in London.
  • CHAPTER THE SECOND
  • THE DAWN COMES, AND MY UNCLE APPEARS IN A NEW SILK HAT
  • I
  • Throughout my student days I had not seen my uncle. I refrained from
  • going to him in spite of an occasional regret that in this way I
  • estranged myself from my aunt Susan, and I maintained a sulky attitude
  • of mind towards him. And I don’t think that once in all that time I gave
  • a thought to that mystic word of his that was to alter all the world
  • for us. Yet I had not altogether forgotten it. It was with a touch of
  • memory, dim transient perplexity if no more--why did this thing seem in
  • some way personal?--that I read a new inscription upon the hoardings:
  • THE SECRET OF VIGOUR,
  • TONO-BUNGAY.
  • That was all. It was simple and yet in some way arresting. I found
  • myself repeating the word after I had passed; it roused one’s attention
  • like the sound of distant guns. “Tono”--what’s that? and deep, rich,
  • unhurrying;--“BUN--gay!”
  • Then came my uncle’s amazing telegram, his answer to my hostile
  • note: “Come to me at once you are wanted three hundred a year certain
  • tono-bungay.”
  • “By Jove!” I cried, “of course!
  • “It’s something--. A patent-medicine! I wonder what he wants with me.”
  • In his Napoleonic way my uncle had omitted to give an address. His
  • telegram had been handed in at Farringdon Road, and after complex
  • meditations I replied to Ponderevo, Farringdon Road, trusting to the
  • rarity of our surname to reach him.
  • “Where are you?” I asked.
  • His reply came promptly:
  • “192A, Raggett Street, E.C.”
  • The next day I took an unsanctioned holiday after the morning’s lecture.
  • I discovered my uncle in a wonderfully new silk hat--oh, a splendid
  • hat! with a rolling brim that went beyond the common fashion. It was
  • decidedly too big for him--that was its only fault. It was stuck on the
  • back of his head, and he was in a white waistcoat and shirt sleeves.
  • He welcomed me with a forgetfulness of my bitter satire and my hostile
  • abstinence that was almost divine. His glasses fell off at the sight of
  • me. His round inexpressive eyes shone brightly. He held out his plump
  • short hand.
  • “Here we are, George! What did I tell you? Needn’t whisper it now, my
  • boy. Shout it--LOUD! spread it about! Tell every one! Tono--TONO--,
  • TONO-BUNGAY!”
  • Raggett Street, you must understand, was a thoroughfare over which some
  • one had distributed large quantities of cabbage stumps and leaves. It
  • opened out of the upper end of Farringdon Street, and 192A was a shop
  • with the plate-glass front coloured chocolate, on which several of the
  • same bills I had read upon the hoardings had been stuck. The floor was
  • covered by street mud that had been brought in on dirty boots, and three
  • energetic young men of the hooligan type, in neck-wraps and caps, were
  • packing wooden cases with papered-up bottles, amidst much straw and
  • confusion. The counter was littered with these same swathed bottles, of
  • a pattern then novel but now amazingly familiar in the world, the blue
  • paper with the coruscating figure of a genially nude giant, and the
  • printed directions of how under practically all circumstances to take
  • Tono-Bungay. Beyond the counter on one side opened a staircase down
  • which I seem to remember a girl descending with a further consignment
  • of bottles, and the rest of the background was a high partition, also
  • chocolate, with “Temporary Laboratory” inscribed upon it in white
  • letters, and over a door that pierced it, “Office.” Here I rapped,
  • inaudible amid much hammering, and then entered unanswered to find
  • my uncle, dressed as I have described, one hand gripping a sheath of
  • letters, and the other scratching his head as he dictated to one of
  • three toiling typewriter girls. Behind him was a further partition and
  • a door inscribed “ABSOLUTELY PRIVATE--NO ADMISSION,” thereon. This
  • partition was of wood painted the universal chocolate, up to about eight
  • feet from the ground, and then of glass. Through the glass I saw dimly
  • a crowded suggestion of crucibles and glass retorts, and--by
  • Jove!--yes!--the dear old Wimblehurst air-pump still! It gave me quite
  • a little thrill--that air-pump! And beside it was the electrical
  • machine--but something--some serious trouble--had happened to that. All
  • these were evidently placed on a shelf just at the level to show.
  • “Come right into the sanctum,” said my uncle, after he had finished
  • something about “esteemed consideration,” and whisked me through the
  • door into a room that quite amazingly failed to verify the promise of
  • that apparatus. It was papered with dingy wall-paper that had peeled in
  • places; it contained a fireplace, an easy-chair with a cushion, a table
  • on which stood two or three big bottles, a number of cigar-boxes on
  • the mantel, whisky Tantalus and a row of soda syphons. He shut the door
  • after me carefully.
  • “Well, here we are!” he said. “Going strong! Have a whisky, George?
  • No!--Wise man! Neither will I! You see me at it! At it--hard!”
  • “Hard at what?”
  • “Read it,” and he thrust into my hand a label--that label that has
  • now become one of the most familiar objects of the chemist’s shop, the
  • greenish-blue rather old-fashioned bordering, the legend, the name
  • in good black type, very clear, and the strong man all set about with
  • lightning flashes above the double column of skilful lies in red--the
  • label of Tono-Bungay. “It’s afloat,” he said, as I stood puzzling at
  • this. “It’s afloat. I’m afloat!” And suddenly he burst out singing in
  • that throaty tenor of his--
  • “I’m afloat, I’m afloat on the fierce flowing tide, The ocean’s my home
  • and my bark is my bride!
  • “Ripping song that is, George. Not so much a bark as a solution, but
  • still--it does! Here we are at it! By-the-by! Half a mo’! I’ve thought
  • of a thing.” He whisked out, leaving me to examine this nuclear spot at
  • leisure while his voice became dictatorial without. The den struck me as
  • in its large grey dirty way quite unprecedented and extraordinary. The
  • bottles were all labelled simply A, B, C, and so forth, and that dear
  • old apparatus above, seen from this side, was even more patiently “on
  • the shelf” than when it had been used to impress Wimblehurst. I saw
  • nothing for it but to sit down in the chair and await my uncle’s
  • explanations. I remarked a frock-coat with satin lapels behind the door;
  • there was a dignified umbrella in the corner and a clothes-brush and
  • a hat-brush stood on a side-table. My uncle returned in five minutes
  • looking at his watch--a gold watch--“Gettin’ lunch-time, George,” he
  • said. “You’d better come and have lunch with me!”
  • “How’s Aunt Susan?” I asked.
  • “Exuberant. Never saw her so larky. This has bucked her up something
  • wonderful--all this.”
  • “All what?”
  • “Tono-Bungay.”
  • “What is Tono-Bungay?” I asked.
  • My uncle hesitated. “Tell you after lunch, George,” he said. “Come
  • along!” and having locked up the sanctum after himself, led the way
  • along a narrow dirty pavement, lined with barrows and swept at times by
  • avalanche-like porters bearing burthens to vans, to Farringdon Street.
  • He hailed a passing cab superbly, and the cabman was infinitely
  • respectful. “Schafer’s,” he said, and off we went side by side--and with
  • me more and more amazed at all these things--to Schafer’s Hotel, the
  • second of the two big places with huge lace curtain-covered windows,
  • near the corner of Blackfriars Bridge.
  • I will confess I felt a magic charm in our relative proportions as the
  • two colossal, pale-blue-and-red liveried porters of Schafers’ held open
  • the inner doors for us with a respectful salutation that in some manner
  • they seemed to confine wholly to my uncle. Instead of being about
  • four inches taller, I felt at least the same size as he, and very much
  • slenderer. Still more respectful--waiters relieved him of the new hat
  • and the dignified umbrella, and took his orders for our lunch. He gave
  • them with a fine assurance.
  • He nodded to several of the waiters.
  • “They know me, George, already,” he said. “Point me out. Live place! Eye
  • for coming men!”
  • The detailed business of the lunch engaged our attention for a while,
  • and then I leant across my plate. “And NOW?” said I.
  • “It’s the secret of vigour. Didn’t you read that label?”
  • “Yes, but--”
  • “It’s selling like hot cakes.”
  • “And what is it?” I pressed.
  • “Well,” said my uncle, and then leant forward and spoke softly under
  • cover of his hand, “It’s nothing more or less than...”
  • (But here an unfortunate scruple intervenes. After all, Tono-Bungay is
  • still a marketable commodity and in the hands of purchasers, who bought
  • it from--among other vendors--me. No! I am afraid I cannot give it
  • away--)
  • “You see,” said my uncle in a slow confidential whisper, with eyes
  • very wide and a creased forehead, “it’s nice because of the” (here he
  • mentioned a flavouring matter and an aromatic spirit), “it’s stimulating
  • because of” (here he mentioned two very vivid tonics, one with a
  • marked action on the kidney.) “And the” (here he mentioned two other
  • ingredients) “makes it pretty intoxicating. Cocks their tails. Then
  • there’s” (but I touch on the essential secret.) “And there you are. I
  • got it out of an old book of recipes--all except the” (here he mentioned
  • the more virulent substance, the one that assails the kidneys), “which
  • is my idea! Modern touch! There you are!”
  • He reverted to the direction of our lunch.
  • Presently he was leading the way to the lounge--sumptuous piece in red
  • morocco and yellow glazed crockery, with incredible vistas of settees
  • and sofas and things, and there I found myself grouped with him in two
  • excessively upholstered chairs with an earthenware Moorish table between
  • us bearing coffee and Benedictine, and I was tasting the delights of a
  • tenpenny cigar. My uncle smoked a similar cigar in an habituated manner,
  • and he looked energetic and knowing and luxurious and most unexpectedly
  • a little bounder, round the end of it. It was just a trivial flaw
  • upon our swagger, perhaps that we both were clear our cigars had to be
  • “mild.” He got obliquely across the spaces of his great armchair so as
  • to incline confidentially to my ear, he curled up his little legs, and
  • I, in my longer way, adopted a corresponding receptive obliquity. I felt
  • that we should strike an unbiased observer as a couple of very deep and
  • wily and developing and repulsive persons.
  • “I want to let you into this”--puff--“George,” said my uncle round the
  • end of his cigar. “For many reasons.”
  • His voice grew lower and more cunning. He made explanations that to my
  • inexperience did not completely explain. I retain an impression of a
  • long credit and a share with a firm of wholesale chemists, of a credit
  • and a prospective share with some pirate printers, of a third share for
  • a leading magazine and newspaper proprietor.
  • “I played ‘em off one against the other,” said my uncle. I took his
  • point in an instant. He had gone to each of them in turn and said the
  • others had come in.
  • “I put up four hundred pounds,” said my uncle, “myself and my all. And
  • you know--”
  • He assumed a brisk confidence. “I hadn’t five hundred pence. At least--”
  • For a moment he really was just a little embarrassed. “I DID” he said,
  • “produce capital. You see, there was that trust affair of yours--I
  • ought, I suppose--in strict legality--to have put that straight first.
  • Zzzz....
  • “It was a bold thing to do,” said my uncle, shifting the venue from
  • the region of honour to the region of courage. And then with a
  • characteristic outburst of piety, “Thank God it’s all come right!
  • “And now, I suppose, you ask where do YOU come in? Well, fact is I’ve
  • always believed in you, George. You’ve got--it’s a sort of dismal grit.
  • Bark your shins, rouse you, and you’ll go! You’d rush any position you
  • had a mind to rush. I know a bit about character, George--trust me.
  • You’ve got--” He clenched his hands and thrust them out suddenly, and at
  • the same time said, with explosive violence, “Wooosh! Yes. You have! The
  • way you put away that Latin at Wimblehurst; I’ve never forgotten it.
  • “Wo-oo-oo-osh! Your science and all that! Wo-oo-oo-osh! I know my
  • limitations. There’s things I can do, and” (he spoke in a whisper, as
  • though this was the first hint of his life’s secret) “there’s things I
  • can’t. Well, I can create this business, but I can’t make it go. I’m too
  • voluminous--I’m a boiler-over, not a simmering stick-at-it. You keep on
  • HOTTING UP AND HOTTING UP. Papin’s digester. That’s you, steady and
  • long and piling up,--then, wo-oo-oo-oo-osh. Come in and stiffen these
  • niggers. Teach them that wo-oo-oo-oo-osh. There you are! That’s what I’m
  • after. You! Nobody else believes you’re more than a boy. Come right in
  • with me and be a man. Eh, George? Think of the fun of it--a thing on
  • the go--a Real Live Thing! Wooshing it up! Making it buzz and spin!
  • Whoo-oo-oo.”--He made alluring expanding circles in the air with his
  • hand. “Eh?”
  • His proposal, sinking to confidential undertones again, took more
  • definite shape. I was to give all my time and energy to developing and
  • organising. “You shan’t write a single advertisement, or give a single
  • assurance” he declared. “I can do all that.” And the telegram was no
  • flourish; I was to have three hundred a year. Three hundred a year.
  • (“That’s nothing,” said my uncle, “the thing to freeze on to, when the
  • time comes, is your tenth of the vendor’s share.”)
  • Three hundred a year certain, anyhow! It was an enormous income to me.
  • For a moment I was altogether staggered. Could there be that much money
  • in the whole concern? I looked about me at the sumptuous furniture of
  • Schafer’s Hotel. No doubt there were many such incomes.
  • My head was spinning with unwonted Benedictine and Burgundy.
  • “Let me go back and look at the game again,” I said. “Let me see
  • upstairs and round about.”
  • I did.
  • “What do you think of it all?” my uncle asked at last.
  • “Well, for one thing,” I said, “why don’t you have those girls working
  • in a decently ventilated room? Apart from any other consideration,
  • they’d work twice as briskly. And they ought to cover the corks before
  • labelling round the bottle.”
  • “Why?” said my uncle.
  • “Because--they sometimes make a mucker of the cork job, and then the
  • label’s wasted.”
  • “Come and change it, George,” said my uncle, with sudden fervour “Come
  • here and make a machine of it. You can. Make it all slick, and then make
  • it woosh. I know you can. Oh! I know you can.”
  • II
  • I seem to remember very quick changes of mind after that lunch. The
  • muzzy exaltation of the unaccustomed stimulants gave way very rapidly
  • to a model of pellucid and impartial clairvoyance which is one of my
  • habitual mental states. It is intermittent; it leaves me for weeks
  • together, I know, but back it comes at last like justice on circuit,
  • and calls up all my impression, all my illusions, all my willful and
  • passionate proceedings. We came downstairs again into that inner room
  • which pretended to be a scientific laboratory through its high glass
  • lights, and indeed was a lurking place. My uncle pressed a cigarette on
  • me, and I took it and stood before the empty fireplace while he propped
  • his umbrella in the corner, deposited the new silk hat that was a little
  • too big for him on the table, blew copiously and produced a second
  • cigar.
  • It came into my head that he had shrunken very much in size since the
  • Wimblehurst days, that the cannon ball he had swallowed was rather more
  • evident and shameless than it had been, his skin less fresh and the nose
  • between his glasses, which still didn’t quite fit, much redder. And just
  • then he seemed much laxer in his muscles and not quite as alertly quick
  • in his movements. But he evidently wasn’t aware of the degenerative
  • nature of his changes as he sat there, looking suddenly quite little
  • under my eyes.
  • “Well, George!” he said, quite happily unconscious of my silent
  • criticism, “what do you think of it all?”
  • “Well,” I said, “in the first place--it’s a damned swindle!”
  • “Tut! tut!” said my uncle. “It’s as straight as--It’s fair trading!”
  • “So much the worse for trading,” I said.
  • “It’s the sort of thing everybody does. After all, there’s no harm in
  • the stuff--and it may do good. It might do a lot of good--giving people
  • confidence, f’rinstance, against an epidemic. See? Why not? don’t see
  • where your swindle comes in.”
  • “H’m,” I said. “It’s a thing you either see or don’t see.”
  • “I’d like to know what sort of trading isn’t a swindle in its way.
  • Everybody who does a large advertised trade is selling something common
  • on the strength of saying it’s uncommon. Look at Chickson--they made him
  • a baronet. Look at Lord Radmore, who did it on lying about the alkali in
  • soap! Rippin’ ads those were of his too!”
  • “You don’t mean to say you think doing this stuff up in bottles and
  • swearing it’s the quintessence of strength and making poor devils buy it
  • at that, is straight?”
  • “Why not, George? How do we know it mayn’t be the quintessence to them
  • so far as they’re concerned?”
  • “Oh!” I said, and shrugged my shoulders.
  • “There’s Faith. You put Faith in ‘em.... I grant our labels are a bit
  • emphatic. Christian Science, really. No good setting people against the
  • medicine. Tell me a solitary trade nowadays that hasn’t to be--emphatic.
  • It’s the modern way! Everybody understands it--everybody allows for it.”
  • “But the world would be no worse and rather better, if all this stuff of
  • yours was run down a conduit into the Thames.”
  • “Don’t see that, George, at all. ‘Mong other things, all our people
  • would be out of work. Unemployed! I grant you Tono-Bungay MAY be--not
  • QUITE so good a find for the world as Peruvian bark, but the point
  • is, George--it MAKES TRADE! And the world lives on trade. Commerce! A
  • romantic exchange of commodities and property. Romance. ‘Magination.
  • See? You must look at these things in a broad light. Look at the
  • wood--and forget the trees! And hang it, George! we got to do these
  • things! There’s no way unless you do. What do YOU mean to do--anyhow?”
  • “There’s ways of living,” I said, “Without either fraud or lying.”
  • “You’re a bit stiff, George. There’s no fraud in this affair, I’ll bet
  • my hat. But what do you propose to do? Go as chemist to some one who IS
  • running a business, and draw a salary without a share like I offer you.
  • Much sense in that! It comes out of the swindle as you call it--just the
  • same.”
  • “Some businesses are straight and quiet, anyhow; supply a sound article
  • that is really needed, don’t shout advertisements.”
  • “No, George. There you’re behind the times. The last of that sort was
  • sold up ‘bout five years ago.”
  • “Well, there’s scientific research.”
  • “And who pays for that? Who put up that big City and Guilds place at
  • South Kensington? Enterprising business men! They fancy they’ll have a
  • bit of science going on, they want a handy Expert ever and again, and
  • there you are! And what do you get for research when you’ve done
  • it? Just a bare living and no outlook. They just keep you to make
  • discoveries, and if they fancy they’ll use ‘em they do.”
  • “One can teach.”
  • “How much a year, George? How much a year? I suppose you must respect
  • Carlyle! Well, you take Carlyle’s test--solvency. (Lord! what a book
  • that French Revolution of his is!) See what the world pays teachers and
  • discoverers and what it pays business men! That shows the ones it really
  • wants. There’s a justice in these big things, George, over and above the
  • apparent injustice. I tell you it wants trade. It’s Trade that makes the
  • world go round! Argosies! Venice! Empire!”
  • My uncle suddenly rose to his feet.
  • “You think it over, George. You think it over! And come up on Sunday
  • to the new place--we got rooms in Gower Street now--and see your aunt.
  • She’s often asked for you, George often and often, and thrown it up at
  • me about that bit of property--though I’ve always said and always
  • will, that twenty-five shillings in the pound is what I’ll pay you and
  • interest up to the nail. And think it over. It isn’t me I ask you to
  • help. It’s yourself. It’s your aunt Susan. It’s the whole concern.
  • It’s the commerce of your country. And we want you badly. I tell you
  • straight, I know my limitations. You could take this place, you could
  • make it go! I can see you at it--looking rather sour. Woosh is the word,
  • George.”
  • And he smiled endearingly.
  • “I got to dictate a letter,” he said, ending the smile, and vanished
  • into the outer room.
  • III
  • I didn’t succumb without a struggle to my uncle’s allurements. Indeed, I
  • held out for a week while I contemplated life and my prospects. It was a
  • crowded and muddled contemplation. It invaded even my sleep.
  • My interview with the Registrar, my talk with my uncle, my abrupt
  • discovery of the hopeless futility of my passion for Marion, had
  • combined to bring me to sense of crisis. What was I going to do with
  • life?
  • I remember certain phases of my indecisions very well.
  • I remember going home from our talk. I went down Farringdon Street to
  • the Embankment because I thought to go home by Holborn and Oxford Street
  • would be too crowded for thinking.... That piece of Embankment
  • from Blackfriars to Westminster still reminds me of that momentous
  • hesitation.
  • You know, from first to last, I saw the business with my eyes open, I
  • saw its ethical and moral values quite clearly. Never for a moment do
  • I remember myself faltering from my persuasion that the sale of
  • Tono-Bungay was a thoroughly dishonest proceeding. The stuff was, I
  • perceived, a mischievous trash, slightly stimulating, aromatic and
  • attractive, likely to become a bad habit and train people in the
  • habitual use of stronger tonics and insidiously dangerous to people with
  • defective kidneys. It would cost about sevenpence the large bottle to
  • make, including bottling, and we were to sell it at half a crown plus
  • the cost of the patent medicine stamp. A thing that I will confess
  • deterred me from the outset far more than the sense of dishonesty in
  • this affair, was the supreme silliness of the whole concern. I still
  • clung to the idea that the world of men was or should be a sane and just
  • organisation, and the idea that I should set myself gravely, just at
  • the fine springtime of my life, to developing a monstrous bottling and
  • packing warehouse, bottling rubbish for the consumption of foolish,
  • credulous and depressed people, had in it a touch of insanity. My early
  • beliefs still clung to me. I felt assured that somewhere there must be
  • a hitch in the fine prospect of ease and wealth under such conditions;
  • that somewhere, a little overgrown, perhaps, but still traceable, lay a
  • neglected, wasted path of use and honour for me.
  • My inclination to refuse the whole thing increased rather than
  • diminished at first as I went along the Embankment. In my uncle’s
  • presence there had been a sort of glamour that had prevented an outright
  • refusal. It was a revival of affection for him I felt in his presence, I
  • think, in part, and in part an instinctive feeling that I must consider
  • him as my host. But much more was it a curious persuasion he had the
  • knack of inspiring--a persuasion not so much of his integrity and
  • capacity as of the reciprocal and yielding foolishness of the world. One
  • felt that he was silly and wild, but in some way silly and wild after
  • the fashion of the universe. After all, one must live somehow. I
  • astonished him and myself by temporising.
  • “No,” said I, “I’ll think it over!”
  • And as I went along the embankment the first effect was all against
  • my uncle. He shrank--for a little while he continued to shrink--in
  • perspective until he was only a very small shabby little man in a dirty
  • back street, sending off a few hundred bottles of rubbish to foolish
  • buyers. The great buildings on the right of us, the Inns and the School
  • Board place--as it was then--Somerset House, the big hotels, the great
  • bridges, Westminster’s outlines ahead, had an effect of grey largeness
  • that reduced him to the proportions of a busy black beetle in a crack in
  • the floor.
  • And then my eye caught the advertisements on the south side of “Sorber’s
  • Food,” of “Cracknell’s Ferric Wine,” very bright and prosperous signs,
  • illuminated at night, and I realised how astonishingly they looked at
  • home there, how evidently part they were in the whole thing.
  • I saw a man come charging out of Palace Yard--the policeman touched his
  • helmet to him--with a hat and a bearing astonishingly like my uncle’s.
  • After all,--didn’t Cracknell himself sit in the House?
  • Tono-Bungay shouted at me from a hoarding near Adelphi Terrace; I saw
  • it afar off near Carfax Street; it cried out again upon me in Kensington
  • High Street, and burst into a perfect clamour; six or seven times I
  • saw it as I drew near my diggings. It certainly had an air of being
  • something more than a dream.
  • Yes, I thought it over--thoroughly enough.... Trade rules the world.
  • Wealth rather than trade! The thing was true, and true too was my
  • uncle’s proposition that the quickest way to get wealth is to sell the
  • cheapest thing possible in the dearest bottle. He was frightfully right
  • after all. Pecunnia non olet,--a Roman emperor said that. Perhaps my
  • great heroes in Plutarch were no more than such men, fine now only
  • because they are distant; perhaps after all this Socialism to which I
  • had been drawn was only a foolish dream, only the more foolish because
  • all its promises were conditionally true. Morris and these others
  • played with it wittingly; it gave a zest, a touch of substance, to their
  • aesthetic pleasures. Never would there be good faith enough to bring
  • such things about. They knew it; every one, except a few young fools,
  • knew it. As I crossed the corner of St. James’s Park wrapped in thought,
  • I dodged back just in time to escape a prancing pair of greys. A stout,
  • common-looking woman, very magnificently dressed, regarded me from the
  • carriage with a scornful eye. “No doubt,” thought I, “a pill-vendor’s
  • wife....”
  • Running through all my thoughts, surging out like a refrain, was my
  • uncle’s master-stroke, his admirable touch of praise: “Make it all
  • slick--and then make it go Woosh. I know you can! Oh! I KNOW you can!”
  • IV
  • Ewart as a moral influence was unsatisfactory. I had made up my mind to
  • put the whole thing before him, partly to see how he took it, and partly
  • to hear how it sounded when it was said. I asked him to come and eat
  • with me in an Italian place near Panton Street where one could get a
  • curious, interesting, glutting sort of dinner for eighteen-pence. He
  • came with a disconcerting black-eye that he wouldn’t explain. “Not so
  • much a black-eye,” he said, “as the aftermath of a purple patch....
  • What’s your difficulty?”
  • “I’ll tell you with the salad,” I said.
  • But as a matter of fact I didn’t tell him. I threw out that I was
  • doubtful whether I ought to go into trade, or stick to teaching in
  • view of my deepening socialist proclivities; and he, warming with the
  • unaccustomed generosity of a sixteen-penny Chianti, ran on from that
  • without any further inquiry as to my trouble.
  • His utterances roved wide and loose.
  • “The reality of life, my dear Ponderevo,” I remember him saying very
  • impressively and punctuating with the nut-crackers as he spoke, “is
  • Chromatic Conflict ... and Form. Get hold of that and let all these
  • other questions go. The Socialist will tell you one sort of colour and
  • shape is right, the Individualist another. What does it all amount
  • to? What DOES it all amount to? NOTHING! I have no advice to give
  • anyone,--except to avoid regrets. Be yourself, seek after such beautiful
  • things as your own sense determines to be beautiful. And don’t mind
  • the headache in the morning.... For what, after all, is a morning,
  • Ponderevo? It isn’t like the upper part of a day!”
  • He paused impressively.
  • “What Rot!” I cried, after a confused attempt to apprehend him.
  • “Isn’t it! And it’s my bedrock wisdom in the matter! Take it or
  • leave it, my dear George; take it or leave it.”... He put down the
  • nut-crackers out of my reach and lugged a greasy-looking note-book from
  • his pocket. “I’m going to steal this mustard pot,” he said.
  • I made noises of remonstrance.
  • “Only as a matter of design. I’ve got to do an old beast’s tomb.
  • “Wholesale grocer. I’ll put it on his corners,--four mustard pots. I dare
  • say he’d be glad of a mustard plaster now to cool him, poor devil, where
  • he is. But anyhow,--here goes!”
  • V
  • It came to me in the small hours that the real moral touchstone for
  • this great doubting of mind was Marion. I lay composing statements of
  • my problem and imagined myself delivering them to her--and she,
  • goddess-like and beautiful; giving her fine, simply-worded judgment.
  • “You see, it’s just to give one’s self over to the Capitalistic System,”
  • I imagined myself saying in good Socialist jargon; “it’s surrendering
  • all one’s beliefs. We MAY succeed, we MAY grow rich, but where would the
  • satisfaction be?”
  • Then she would say, “No! That wouldn’t be right.”
  • “But the alternative is to wait!”
  • Then suddenly she would become a goddess. She would turn upon me frankly
  • and nobly, with shining eyes, with arms held out. “No,” she would say,
  • “we love one another. Nothing ignoble shall ever touch us. We love one
  • another. Why wait to tell each other that, dear? What does it matter
  • that we are poor and may keep poor?”
  • But indeed the conversation didn’t go at all in that direction. At the
  • sight of her my nocturnal eloquence became preposterous and all the
  • moral values altered altogether. I had waited for her outside the door
  • of the Parsian-robe establishment in Kensington High Street and walked
  • home with her thence. I remember how she emerged into the warm evening
  • light and that she wore a brown straw hat that made her, for once not
  • only beautiful but pretty.
  • “I like that hat,” I said by way of opening; and she smiled her rare
  • delightful smile at me.
  • “I love you,” I said in an undertone, as we jostled closer on the
  • pavement.
  • She shook her head forbiddingly, but she still smiled. Then--“Be
  • sensible!”
  • The High Street pavement is too narrow and crowded for conversation and
  • we were some way westward before we spoke again.
  • “Look here,” I said; “I want you, Marion. Don’t you understand? I want
  • you.”
  • “Now!” she cried warningly.
  • I do not know if the reader will understand how a passionate lover,
  • an immense admiration and desire, can be shot with a gleam of positive
  • hatred. Such a gleam there was in me at the serene self-complacency of
  • that “NOW!” It vanished almost before I felt it. I found no warning in
  • it of the antagonisms latent between us.
  • “Marion,” I said, “this isn’t a trifling matter to me. I love you; I
  • would die to get you.... Don’t you care?”
  • “But what is the good?”
  • “You don’t care,” I cried. “You don’t care a rap!”
  • “You know I care,” she answered. “If I didn’t--If I didn’t like you very
  • much, should I let you come and meet me--go about with you?”
  • “Well then,” I said, “promise to marry me!”
  • “If I do, what difference will it make?”
  • We were separated by two men carrying a ladder who drove between us
  • unawares.
  • “Marion,” I asked when we got together again, “I tell you I want you to
  • marry me.”
  • “We can’t.”
  • “Why not?”
  • “We can’t marry--in the street.”
  • “We could take our chance!”
  • “I wish you wouldn’t go on talking like this. What is the good?”
  • She suddenly gave way to gloom. “It’s no good marrying” she said. “One’s
  • only miserable. I’ve seen other girls. When one’s alone one has a little
  • pocket-money anyhow, one can go about a little. But think of being
  • married and no money, and perhaps children--you can’t be sure....”
  • She poured out this concentrated philosophy of her class and type in
  • jerky uncompleted sentences, with knitted brows, with discontented eyes
  • towards the westward glow--forgetful, it seemed, for a moment even of
  • me.
  • “Look here, Marion,” I said abruptly, “what would you marry on?”
  • “What IS the good?” she began.
  • “Would you marry on three hundred a year?”
  • She looked at me for a moment. “That’s six pounds a week,” she said.
  • “One could manage on that, easily. Smithie’s brother--No, he only gets
  • two hundred and fifty. He married a typewriting girl.”
  • “Will you marry me if I get three hundred a year?”
  • She looked at me again, with a curious gleam of hope.
  • “IF!” she said.
  • I held out my hand and looked her in the eyes. “It’s a bargain,” I said.
  • She hesitated and touched my hand for an instant. “It’s silly,” she
  • remarked as she did so. “It means really we’re--” She paused.
  • “Yes?” said I.
  • “Engaged. You’ll have to wait years. What good can it do you?”
  • “Not so many years.” I answered.
  • For a moment she brooded.
  • Then she glanced at me with a smile, half-sweet, half-wistful, that has
  • stuck in my memory for ever.
  • “I like you!” she said. “I shall like to be engaged to you.”
  • And, faint on the threshold of hearing, I caught her ventured “dear!”
  • It’s odd that in writing this down my memory passed over all that
  • intervened and I feel it all again, and once again I’m Marion’s boyish
  • lover taking great joy in such rare and little things.
  • VI
  • At last I went to the address my uncle had given me in Gower Street, and
  • found my aunt Susan waiting tea for him.
  • Directly I came into the room I appreciated the change in outlook that
  • the achievement of Tono-Bungay had made almost as vividly as when I
  • saw my uncle’s new hat. The furniture of the room struck upon my eye as
  • almost stately. The chairs and sofa were covered with chintz which gave
  • it a dim, remote flavour of Bladesover; the mantel, the cornice, the
  • gas pendant were larger and finer than the sort of thing I had grown
  • accustomed to in London. And I was shown in by a real housemaid with
  • real tails to her cap, and great quantities of reddish hair. There was
  • my aunt too looking bright and pretty, in a blue-patterned tea-wrap with
  • bows that seemed to me the quintessence of fashion. She was sitting in
  • a chair by the open window with quite a pile of yellow-labelled books
  • on the occasional table beside her. Before the large, paper-decorated
  • fireplace stood a three-tiered cake-stand displaying assorted cakes,
  • and a tray with all the tea equipage except the teapot, was on the large
  • centre-table. The carpet was thick, and a spice of adventure was given
  • it by a number of dyed sheep-skin mats.
  • “Hello!” said my aunt as I appeared. “It’s George!”
  • “Shall I serve the tea now, Mem?” said the real housemaid, surveying our
  • greeting coldly.
  • “Not till Mr. Ponderevo comes, Meggie,” said my aunt, and grimaced with
  • extraordinary swiftness and virulence as the housemaid turned her back.
  • “Meggie she calls herself,” said my aunt as the door closed, and left me
  • to infer a certain want of sympathy.
  • “You’re looking very jolly, aunt,” said I.
  • “What do you think of all this old Business he’s got?” asked my aunt.
  • “Seems a promising thing,” I said.
  • “I suppose there is a business somewhere?”
  • “Haven’t you seen it?”
  • “‘Fraid I’d say something AT it George, if I did. So he won’t let me. It
  • came on quite suddenly. Brooding he was and writing letters and sizzling
  • something awful--like a chestnut going to pop. Then he came home one
  • day saying Tono-Bungay till I thought he was clean off his onion, and
  • singing--what was it?”
  • “‘I’m afloat, I’m afloat,’” I guessed.
  • “The very thing. You’ve heard him. And saying our fortunes were made.
  • Took me out to the Ho’burm Restaurant, George,--dinner, and we had
  • champagne, stuff that blows up the back of your nose and makes you go
  • SO, and he said at last he’d got things worthy of me--and we moved here
  • next day. It’s a swell house, George. Three pounds a week for the rooms.
  • And he says the Business’ll stand it.”
  • She looked at me doubtfully.
  • “Either do that or smash,” I said profoundly.
  • We discussed the question for a moment mutely with our eyes. My aunt
  • slapped the pile of books from Mudie’s.
  • “I’ve been having such a Go of reading, George. You never did!”
  • “What do you think of the business?” I asked.
  • “Well, they’ve let him have money,” she said, and thought and raised her
  • eyebrows.
  • “It’s been a time,” she went on. “The flapping about! Me sitting doing
  • nothing and him on the go like a rocket. He’s done wonders. But he wants
  • you, George--he wants you. Sometimes he’s full of hope--talks of when
  • we’re going to have a carriage and be in society--makes it seem so
  • natural and topsy-turvy, I hardly know whether my old heels aren’t up
  • here listening to him, and my old head on the floor.... Then he gets
  • depressed. Says he wants restraint. Says he can make a splash but can’t
  • keep on. Says if you don’t come in everything will smash--But you are
  • coming in?”
  • She paused and looked at me.
  • “Well--”
  • “You don’t say you won’t come in!”
  • “But look here, aunt,” I said, “do you understand quite?... It’s a quack
  • medicine. It’s trash.”
  • “There’s no law against selling quack medicine that I know of,” said
  • my aunt. She thought for a minute and became unusually grave. “It’s our
  • only chance, George,” she said. “If it doesn’t go...”
  • There came the slamming of a door, and a loud bellowing from the next
  • apartment through the folding doors. “Here-er Shee Rulk lies Poo Tom
  • Bo--oling.”
  • “Silly old Concertina! Hark at him, George!” She raised her voice.
  • “Don’t sing that, you old Walrus, you! Sing ‘I’m afloat!’”
  • One leaf of the folding doors opened and my uncle appeared.
  • “Hullo, George! Come along at last? Gossome tea-cake, Susan?”
  • “Thought it over George?” he said abruptly.
  • “Yes,” said I.
  • “Coming in?”
  • I paused for a last moment and nodded yes.
  • “Ah!” he cried. “Why couldn’t you say that a week ago?”
  • “I’ve had false ideas about the world,” I said. “Oh! they don’t matter
  • now! Yes, I’ll come, I’ll take my chance with you, I won’t hesitate
  • again.”
  • And I didn’t. I stuck to that resolution for seven long years.
  • CHAPTER THE THIRD
  • HOW WE MADE TONO-BUNGAY HUM
  • I
  • So I made my peace with my uncle, and we set out upon this
  • bright enterprise of selling slightly injurious rubbish at
  • one-and-three-halfpence and two-and-nine a bottle, including the
  • Government stamp. We made Tono-Bungay hum! It brought us wealth,
  • influence, respect, the confidence of endless people. All that my uncle
  • promised me proved truth and understatement; Tono-Bungay carried me to
  • freedoms and powers that no life of scientific research, no passionate
  • service of humanity could ever have given me....
  • It was my uncle’s genius that did it. No doubt he needed me,--I was,
  • I will admit, his indispensable right hand; but his was the brain to
  • conceive. He wrote every advertisement; some of them even he sketched.
  • You must remember that his were the days before the Time took to
  • enterprise and the vociferous hawking of that antiquated
  • Encyclopedia. That alluring, button-holing, let-me
  • -just-tell-you-quite-soberly-something-you-ought-to-know style of
  • newspaper advertisement, with every now and then a convulsive jump of
  • some attractive phrase into capitals, was then almost a novelty. “Many
  • people who are MODERATELY well think they are QUITE well,” was one of
  • his early efforts. The jerks in capitals were, “DO NOT NEED DRUGS OR
  • MEDICINE,” and “SIMPLY A PROPER REGIMEN TO GET YOU IN TONE.” One was
  • warned against the chemist or druggist who pushed “much-advertised
  • nostrums” on one’s attention. That trash did more harm than good. The
  • thing needed was regimen--and Tono-Bungay!
  • Very early, too, was that bright little quarter column, at least it was
  • usually a quarter column in the evening papers: “HILARITY--Tono-Bungay.
  • Like Mountain Air in the Veins.” The penetrating trio of questions: “Are
  • you bored with your Business? Are you bored with your Dinner. Are you
  • bored with your Wife?”--that, too, was in our Gower Street days. Both
  • these we had in our first campaign when we worked London south central,
  • and west; and then, too, we had our first poster--the HEALTH, BEAUTY,
  • AND STRENGTH one. That was his design; I happen still to have got by me
  • the first sketch he made for it. I have reproduced it here with one or
  • two others to enable the reader to understand the mental quality that
  • initiated these familiar ornaments of London.
  • (The second one is about eighteen months later, the germ of the
  • well-known “Fog” poster; the third was designed for an influenza
  • epidemic, but never issued.)
  • These things were only incidental in my department.
  • I had to polish them up for the artist and arrange the business of
  • printing and distribution, and after my uncle had had a violent and
  • needless quarrel with the advertising manager of the Daily Regulator
  • about the amount of display given to one of his happy thoughts, I also
  • took up the negotiations of advertisements for the press.
  • We discussed and worked out distribution together first in the
  • drawing-room floor in Gower Street with my aunt sometimes helping very
  • shrewdly, and then, with a steadily improving type of cigar and older
  • and older whisky, in his smuggery at their first house, the one in
  • Beckenham. Often we worked far into the night sometimes until dawn.
  • We really worked infernally hard, and, I recall, we worked with a very
  • decided enthusiasm, not simply on my uncle’s part but mine, It was
  • a game, an absurd but absurdly interesting game, and the points were
  • scored in cases of bottles. People think a happy notion is enough to
  • make a man rich, that fortunes can be made without toil. It’s a dream,
  • as every millionaire (except one or two lucky gamblers) can testify;
  • I doubt if J.D. Rockefeller in the early days of Standard Oil, worked
  • harder than we did. We worked far into the night--and we also worked all
  • day. We made a rule to be always dropping in at the factory unannounced
  • to keep things right--for at first we could afford no properly
  • responsible underlings--and we traveled London, pretending to be our own
  • representatives and making all sorts of special arrangements.
  • But none of this was my special work, and as soon as we could get other
  • men in, I dropped the traveling, though my uncle found it particularly
  • interesting and kept it up for years. “Does me good, George, to see the
  • chaps behind their counters like I was once,” he explained. My special
  • and distinctive duty was to give Tono-Bungay substance and an outward
  • and visible bottle, to translate my uncle’s great imaginings into the
  • creation of case after case of labelled bottles of nonsense, and the
  • punctual discharge of them by railway, road and steamer towards
  • their ultimate goal in the Great Stomach of the People. By all modern
  • standards the business was, as my uncle would say, “absolutely bona
  • fide.” We sold our stuff and got the money, and spent the money honestly
  • in lies and clamour to sell more stuff. Section by section we spread
  • it over the whole of the British Isles; first working the middle-class
  • London suburbs, then the outer suburbs, then the home counties, then
  • going (with new bills and a more pious style of “ad”) into Wales, a
  • great field always for a new patent-medicine, and then into Lancashire.
  • My uncle had in his inner office a big map of England, and as we took
  • up fresh sections of the local press and our consignments invaded new
  • areas, flags for advertisements and pink underlines for orders showed
  • our progress.
  • “The romance of modern commerce, George!” my uncle would say, rubbing
  • his hands together and drawing in air through his teeth. “The romance of
  • modern commerce, eh? Conquest. Province by province. Like sogers.”
  • We subjugated England and Wales; we rolled over the Cheviots with a
  • special adaptation containing eleven per cent. of absolute alcohol;
  • “Tono-Bungay: Thistle Brand.” We also had the Fog poster adapted to a
  • kilted Briton in a misty Highland scene.
  • Under the shadow of our great leading line we were presently taking
  • subsidiary specialties into action; “Tono-Bungay Hair Stimulant” was
  • our first supplement. Then came “Concentrated Tono-Bungay” for the
  • eyes. That didn’t go, but we had a considerable success with the Hair
  • Stimulant. We broached the subject, I remember, in a little catechism
  • beginning: “Why does the hair fall out? Because the follicles are
  • fagged. What are the follicles?...” So it went on to the climax that
  • the Hair Stimulant contained all “The essential principles of that most
  • reviving tonic, Tono-Bungay, together with an emollient and nutritious
  • oil derived from crude Neat’s Foot Oil by a process of refinement,
  • separation and deodorization.... It will be manifest to any one of
  • scientific attainments that in Neat’s Foot Oil derived from the hoofs
  • and horns of beasts, we must necessarily have a natural skin and hair
  • lubricant.”
  • And we also did admirable things with our next subsidiaries,
  • “Tono-Bungay Lozenges,” and “Tono-Bungay Chocolate.” These we urged upon
  • the public for their extraordinary nutritive and recuperative value
  • in cases of fatigue and strain. We gave them posters and illustrated
  • advertisements showing climbers hanging from marvelously vertical
  • cliffs, cyclist champions upon the track, mounted messengers engaged in
  • Aix-to-Ghent rides, soldiers lying out in action under a hot sun. “You
  • can GO for twenty-four hours,” we declared, “on Tono-Bungay Chocolate.”
  • We didn’t say whether you could return on the same commodity. We also
  • showed a dreadfully barristerish barrister, wig, side-whiskers, teeth,
  • a horribly life-like portrait of all existing barristers, talking at a
  • table, and beneath, this legend: “A Four Hours’ Speech on Tono-Bungay
  • Lozenges, and as fresh as when he began.” Then brought in regiments
  • of school-teachers, revivalist ministers, politicians and the like. I
  • really do believe there was an element of “kick” in the strychnine
  • in these lozenges, especially in those made according to our earlier
  • formula. For we altered all our formulae--invariably weakening them
  • enormously as sales got ahead.
  • In a little while--so it seems to me now--we were employing travelers
  • and opening up Great Britain at the rate of a hundred square miles a
  • day. All the organisation throughout was sketched in a crude, entangled,
  • half-inspired fashion by my uncle, and all of it had to be worked out
  • into a practicable scheme of quantities and expenditure by me. We had a
  • lot of trouble finding our travelers; in the end at least half of them
  • were Irish-Americans, a wonderful breed for selling medicine. We had
  • still more trouble over our factory manager, because of the secrets of
  • the inner room, and in the end we got a very capable woman, Mrs. Hampton
  • Diggs, who had formerly managed a large millinery workroom, whom we
  • could trust to keep everything in good working order without finding out
  • anything that wasn’t put exactly under her loyal and energetic nose.
  • She conceived a high opinion of Tono-Bungay and took it in all forms
  • and large quantities so long as I knew her. It didn’t seem to do her any
  • harm. And she kept the girls going quite wonderfully.
  • My uncle’s last addition to the Tono-Bungay group was the Tono-Bungay
  • Mouthwash. The reader has probably read a hundred times that inspiring
  • inquiry of his, “You are Young Yet, but are you Sure Nothing has Aged
  • your Gums?”
  • And after that we took over the agency for three or four good American
  • lines that worked in with our own, and could be handled with it; Texan
  • Embrocation, and “23--to clear the system” were the chief....
  • I set down these bare facts. To me they are all linked with the figure
  • of my uncle. In some of the old seventeenth and early eighteenth century
  • prayerbooks at Bladesover there used to be illustrations with long
  • scrolls coming out of the mouths of the wood-cut figures. I wish I could
  • write all this last chapter on a scroll coming out of the head of my
  • uncle, show it all the time as unfolding and pouring out from a short,
  • fattening, small-legged man with stiff cropped hair, disobedient glasses
  • on a perky little nose, and a round stare behind them. I wish I could
  • show you him breathing hard and a little through his nose as his pen
  • scrabbled out some absurd inspiration for a poster or a picture page,
  • and make you hear his voice, charged with solemn import like the voice
  • of a squeaky prophet, saying, “George! list’n! I got an ideer. I got a
  • notion! George!”
  • I should put myself into the same picture. Best setting for us, I think,
  • would be the Beckenham snuggery, because there we worked hardest. It
  • would be the lamplit room of the early nineties, and the clock upon the
  • mantel would indicate midnight or later. We would be sitting on either
  • side of the fire, I with a pipe, my uncle with a cigar or cigarette.
  • There would be glasses standing inside the brass fender. Our expressions
  • would be very grave. My uncle used to sit right back in his armchair;
  • his toes always turned in when he was sitting down and his legs had a
  • way of looking curved, as though they hadn’t bones or joints but were
  • stuffed with sawdust.
  • “George, whad’yer think of T.B. for sea-sickness?” he would say.
  • “No good that I can imagine.”
  • “Oom! No harm TRYING, George. We can but try.”
  • I would suck my pipe. “Hard to get at. Unless we sold our stuff
  • specially at the docks. Might do a special at Cook’s office, or in the
  • Continental Bradshaw.”
  • “It ‘ud give ‘em confidence, George.”
  • He would Zzzz, with his glasses reflecting the red of the glowing coals.
  • “No good hiding our light under a Bushel,” he would remark.
  • I never really determined whether my uncle regarded Tono-Bungay as a
  • fraud, or whether he didn’t come to believe in it in a kind of way by
  • the mere reiteration of his own assertions. I think that his average
  • attitude was one of kindly, almost parental, toleration. I remember
  • saying on one occasion, “But you don’t suppose this stuff ever did a
  • human being the slightest good all?” and how his face assumed a look of
  • protest, as of one reproving harshness and dogmatism.
  • “You’ve a hard nature, George,” he said. “You’re too ready to run things
  • down. How can one TELL? How can one venture to TELL!...”
  • I suppose any creative and developing game would have interested me
  • in those years. At any rate, I know I put as much zeal into this
  • Tono-Bungay as any young lieutenant could have done who suddenly found
  • himself in command of a ship. It was extraordinarily interesting to me
  • to figure out the advantage accruing from this shortening of the process
  • or that, and to weigh it against the capital cost of the alteration. I
  • made a sort of machine for sticking on the labels, that I patented; to
  • this day there is a little trickle of royalties to me from that. I also
  • contrived to have our mixture made concentrated, got the bottles, which
  • all came sliding down a guarded slant-way, nearly filled with distilled
  • water at one tap, and dripped our magic ingredients in at the next. This
  • was an immense economy of space for the inner sanctum. For the bottling
  • we needed special taps, and these, too, I invented and patented.
  • We had a sort of endless band of bottles sliding along an inclined glass
  • trough made slippery with running water. At one end a girl held them up
  • to the light, put aside any that were imperfect and placed the others in
  • the trough; the filling was automatic; at the other end a girl slipped
  • in the cork and drove it home with a little mallet. Each tank, the
  • little one for the vivifying ingredients and the big one for distilled
  • water, had a level indicator, and inside I had a float arrangement that
  • stopped the slide whenever either had sunk too low. Another girl stood
  • ready with my machine to label the corked bottles and hand them to the
  • three packers, who slipped them into their outer papers and put them,
  • with a pad of corrugated paper between each pair, into a little groove
  • from which they could be made to slide neatly into position in our
  • standard packing-case. It sounds wild, I know, but I believe I was the
  • first man in the city of London to pack patent medicines through the
  • side of the packing-case, to discover there was a better way in than by
  • the lid. Our cases packed themselves, practically; had only to be put
  • into position on a little wheeled tray and when full pulled to the lift
  • that dropped them to the men downstairs, who padded up the free space
  • and nailed on top and side. Our girls, moreover, packed with corrugated
  • paper and matchbook-wood box partitions when everybody else was using
  • expensive young men to pack through the top of the box with straw, many
  • breakages and much waste and confusion.
  • II
  • As I look back at them now, those energetic years seem all compacted
  • to a year or so; from the days of our first hazardous beginning in
  • Farringdon Street with barely a thousand pounds’ worth of stuff or
  • credit all told--and that got by something perilously like snatching--to
  • the days when my uncle went to the public on behalf of himself and me
  • (one-tenth share) and our silent partners, the drug wholesalers and the
  • printing people and the owner of that group of magazines and newspapers,
  • to ask with honest confidence for L150,000. Those silent partners were
  • remarkably sorry, I know, that they had not taken larger shares and
  • given us longer credit when the subscriptions came pouring in. My uncle
  • had a clear half to play with (including the one-tenth understood to be
  • mine).
  • L150,000--think of it!--for the goodwill in a string of lies and a trade
  • in bottles of mitigated water! Do you realise the madness of the world
  • that sanctions such a thing? Perhaps you don’t. At times use and wont
  • certainly blinded me. If it had not been for Ewart, I don’t think I
  • should have had an inkling of the wonderfulness of this development of
  • my fortunes; I should have grown accustomed to it, fallen in with all
  • its delusions as completely as my uncle presently did. He was immensely
  • proud of the flotation. “They’ve never been given such value,” he said,
  • “for a dozen years.” But Ewart, with his gesticulating hairy hands and
  • bony wrists, his single-handed chorus to all this as it played
  • itself over again in my memory, and he kept my fundamental absurdity
  • illuminated for me during all this astonishing time.
  • “It’s just on all fours with the rest of things,” he remarked; “only
  • more so. You needn’t think you’re anything out of the way.”
  • I remember one disquisition very distinctly. It was just after Ewart had
  • been to Paris on a mysterious expedition to “rough in” some work for
  • a rising American sculptor. This young man had a commission for an
  • allegorical figure of Truth (draped, of course) for his State Capitol,
  • and he needed help. Ewart had returned with his hair cut en brosse and
  • with his costume completely translated into French. He wore, I remember,
  • a bicycling suit of purplish-brown, baggy beyond ageing--the only
  • creditable thing about it was that it had evidently not been made for
  • him--a voluminous black tie, a decadent soft felt hat and several French
  • expletives of a sinister description. “Silly clothes, aren’t they?” he
  • said at the sight of my startled eye. “I don’t know why I got’m. They
  • seemed all right over there.”
  • He had come down to our Raggett Street place to discuss a benevolent
  • project of mine for a poster by him, and he scattered remarkable
  • discourse over the heads (I hope it was over the heads) of our bottlers.
  • “What I like about it all, Ponderevo, is its poetry.... That’s where
  • we get the pull of the animals. No animal would ever run a factory
  • like this. Think!... One remembers the Beaver, of course. He might very
  • possibly bottle things, but would he stick a label round ‘em and sell
  • ‘em? The Beaver is a dreamy fool, I’ll admit, him and his dams, but
  • after all there’s a sort of protection about ‘em, a kind of muddy
  • practicality! They prevent things getting at him. And it’s not your
  • poetry only. It’s the poetry of the customer too. Poet answering to
  • poet--soul to soul. Health, Strength and Beauty--in a bottle--the magic
  • philtre! Like a fairy tale....
  • “Think of the people to whom your bottles of footle go! (I’m calling it
  • footle, Ponderevo, out of praise,” he said in parenthesis.)
  • “Think of the little clerks and jaded women and overworked people.
  • People overstrained with wanting to do, people overstrained with wanting
  • to be.... People, in fact, overstrained.... The real trouble of life,
  • Ponderevo, isn’t that we exist--that’s a vulgar error; the real trouble
  • is that we DON’T really exist and we want to. That’s what this--in
  • the highest sense--just stands for! The hunger to be--for once--really
  • alive--to the finger tips!...
  • “Nobody wants to do and be the things people are--nobody. YOU don’t want
  • to preside over this--this bottling; I don’t want to wear these beastly
  • clothes and be led about by you; nobody wants to keep on sticking labels
  • on silly bottles at so many farthings a gross. That isn’t existing!
  • That’s--sus--substratum. None of us want to be what we are, or to do
  • what we do. Except as a sort of basis. What do we want? You know. I
  • know. Nobody confesses. What we all want to be is something perpetually
  • young and beautiful--young Joves--young Joves, Ponderevo”--his voice
  • became loud, harsh and declamatory--“pursuing coy half-willing nymphs
  • through everlasting forests.”...
  • There was a just-perceptible listening hang in the work about us.
  • “Come downstairs,” I interrupted, “we can talk better there.”
  • “I can talk better here,” he answered.
  • He was just going on, but fortunately the implacable face of Mrs.
  • Hampton Diggs appeared down the aisle of bottling machines.
  • “All right,” he said, “I’ll come.”
  • In the little sanctum below, my uncle was taking a digestive pause after
  • his lunch and by no means alert. His presence sent Ewart back to the
  • theme of modern commerce, over the excellent cigar my uncle gave him. He
  • behaved with the elaborate deference due to a business magnate from an
  • unknown man.
  • “What I was pointing out to your nephew, sir,” said Ewart, putting both
  • elbows on the table, “was the poetry of commerce. He doesn’t, you know,
  • seem to see it at all.”
  • My uncle nodded brightly. “Whad I tell ‘im,” he said round his cigar.
  • “We are artists. You and I, sir, can talk, if you will permit me, as one
  • artist to another. It’s advertisement has--done it. Advertisement has
  • revolutionised trade and industry; it is going to revolutionise the
  • world. The old merchant used to tote about commodities; the new one
  • creates values. Doesn’t need to tote. He takes something that isn’t
  • worth anything--or something that isn’t particularly worth anything--and
  • he makes it worth something. He takes mustard that is just like anybody
  • else’s mustard, and he goes about saying, shouting, singing, chalking
  • on walls, writing inside people’s books, putting it everywhere, ‘Smith’s
  • Mustard is the Best.’ And behold it is the best!”
  • “True,” said my uncle, chubbily and with a dreamy sense of mysticism;
  • “true!”
  • “It’s just like an artist; he takes a lump of white marble on the verge
  • of a lime-kiln, he chips it about, he makes--he makes a monument to
  • himself--and others--a monument the world will not willingly let die.
  • Talking of mustard, sir, I was at Clapham Junction the other day, and
  • all the banks are overgrown with horse radish that’s got loose from
  • a garden somewhere. You know what horseradish is--grows like
  • wildfire--spreads--spreads. I stood at the end of the platform looking
  • at the stuff and thinking about it. ‘Like fame,’ I thought, ‘rank and
  • wild where it isn’t wanted. Why don’t the really good things in life
  • grow like horseradish?’ I thought. My mind went off in a peculiar way
  • it does from that to the idea that mustard costs a penny a tin--I bought
  • some the other day for a ham I had. It came into my head that it would
  • be ripping good business to use horseradish to adulterate mustard. I had
  • a sort of idea that I could plunge into business on that, get rich and
  • come back to my own proper monumental art again. And then I said, ‘But
  • why adulterate? I don’t like the idea of adulteration.’”
  • “Shabby,” said my uncle, nodding his head. “Bound to get found out!”
  • “And totally unnecessary, too! Why not do up a mixture--three-quarters
  • pounded horseradish and a quarter mustard--give it a fancy name--and
  • sell it at twice the mustard price. See? I very nearly started the
  • business straight away, only something happened. My train came along.”
  • “Jolly good ideer,” said my uncle. He looked at me. “That really is an
  • ideer, George,” he said.
  • “Take shavin’s, again! You know that poem of Longfellow’s, sir, that
  • sounds exactly like the first declension. What is it?--‘Marr’s a maker,
  • men say!’”
  • My uncle nodded and gurgled some quotation that died away.
  • “Jolly good poem, George,” he said in an aside to me.
  • “Well, it’s about a carpenter and a poetic Victorian child, you know,
  • and some shavin’s. The child made no end out of the shavin’s. So
  • might you. Powder ‘em. They might be anything. Soak ‘em in
  • jipper,--Xylo-tobacco! Powder’em and get a little tar and turpentinous
  • smell in,--wood-packing for hot baths--a Certain Cure for the scourge
  • of Influenza! There’s all these patent grain foods,--what Americans call
  • cereals. I believe I’m right, sir, in saying they’re sawdust.”
  • “No!” said my uncle, removing his cigar; “as far as I can find out it’s
  • really grain,--spoilt grain.... I’ve been going into that.”
  • “Well, there you are!” said Ewart. “Say it’s spoilt grain. It carried
  • out my case just as well. Your modern commerce is no more buying and
  • selling than sculpture. It’s mercy--it’s salvation. It’s rescue work! It
  • takes all sorts of fallen commodities by the hand and raises them. Cana
  • isn’t in it. You turn water--into Tono-Bungay.”
  • “Tono-Bungay’s all right,” said my uncle, suddenly grave. “We aren’t
  • talking of Tono-Bungay.”
  • “Your nephew, sir, is hard; he wants everything to go to a sort of
  • predestinated end; he’s a Calvinist of Commerce. Offer him a dustbin
  • full of stuff; he calls it refuse--passes by on the other side. Now YOU,
  • sir you’d make cinders respect themselves.”
  • My uncle regarded him dubiously for a moment. But there was a touch of
  • appreciation in his eye.
  • “Might make ‘em into a sort of sanitary brick,” he reflected over his
  • cigar end.
  • “Or a friable biscuit. Why NOT? You might advertise: ‘Why are Birds so
  • Bright? Because they digest their food perfectly! Why do they digest
  • their food so perfectly? Because they have a gizzard! Why hasn’t man
  • a gizzard? Because he can buy Ponderevo’s Asphalt Triturating, Friable
  • Biscuit--Which is Better.’”
  • He delivered the last words in a shout, with his hairy hand flourished
  • in the air....
  • “Damn clever fellow,” said my uncle, after he had one. “I know a man
  • when I see one. He’d do. But drunk, I should say. But that only makes
  • some chap brighter. If he WANTS to do that poster, he can. Zzzz. That
  • ideer of his about the horseradish. There’s something in that, George.
  • I’m going to think over that....”
  • I may say at once that my poster project came to nothing in the end,
  • though Ewart devoted an interesting week to the matter. He let his
  • unfortunate disposition to irony run away with him. He produced a
  • picture of two beavers with a subtle likeness, he said, to myself and my
  • uncle--the likeness to my uncle certainly wasn’t half bad--and they
  • were bottling rows and rows of Tono-Bungay, with the legend “Modern
  • commerce.” It certainly wouldn’t have sold a case, though he urged it on
  • me one cheerful evening on the ground that it would “arouse curiosity.”
  • In addition he produced a quite shocking study of my uncle, excessively
  • and needlessly nude, but, so far as I was able to judge, an admirable
  • likeness, engaged in feats of strength of a Gargantuan type before an
  • audience of deboshed and shattered ladies. The legend, “Health, Beauty,
  • Strength,” below, gave a needed point to his parody. This he hung up in
  • the studio over the oil shop, with a flap of brown paper; by way of a
  • curtain over it to accentuate its libellous offence.
  • CHAPTER THE FOURTH
  • MARION I
  • As I look back on those days in which we built up the great Tono-Bungay
  • property out of human hope and credit for bottles and rent and printing,
  • I see my life as it were arranged in two parallel columns of unequal
  • width, a wider, more diffused, eventful and various one which
  • continually broadens out, the business side of my life, and a narrow,
  • darker and darkling one shot ever and again with a gleam of happiness,
  • my home-life with Marion. For, of course, I married Marion.
  • I didn’t, as a matter of fact, marry her until a year after Tono-Bungay
  • was thoroughly afloat, and then only after conflicts and discussions
  • of a quite strenuous sort. By that time I was twenty-four. It seems
  • the next thing to childhood now. We were both in certain directions
  • unusually ignorant and simple; we were temperamentally antagonistic, and
  • we hadn’t--I don’t think we were capable of--an idea in common. She was
  • young and extraordinarily conventional--she seemed never to have an
  • idea of her own but always the idea of her class--and I was young and
  • sceptical, enterprising and passionate; the two links that held us
  • together were the intense appeal her physical beauty had for me, and her
  • appreciation of her importance in my thoughts. There can be no doubt of
  • my passion for her. In her I had discovered woman desired. The nights I
  • have lain awake on account of her, writhing, biting my wrists in a fever
  • of longing! ...
  • I have told how I got myself a silk hat and black coat to please her
  • on Sunday--to the derision of some of my fellow-students who charged to
  • meet me, and how we became engaged. But that was only the beginning
  • of our difference. To her that meant the beginning of a not unpleasant
  • little secrecy, an occasional use of verbal endearments, perhaps even
  • kisses. It was something to go on indefinitely, interfering in no way
  • with her gossiping spells of work at Smithie’s. To me it was a pledge
  • to come together into the utmost intimacy of soul and body so soon as we
  • could contrive it....
  • I don’t know if it will strike the reader that I am setting out to
  • discuss the queer, unwise love relationship and my bungle of a marriage
  • with excessive solemnity. But to me it seems to reach out to vastly
  • wider issues than our little personal affair. I’ve thought over my life.
  • In these last few years I’ve tried to get at least a little wisdom out
  • of it. And in particular I’ve thought over this part of my life. I’m
  • enormously impressed by the ignorant, unguided way in which we two
  • entangled ourselves with each other. It seems to me the queerest thing
  • in all this network of misunderstandings and misstatements and faulty
  • and ramshackle conventions which makes up our social order as the
  • individual meets it, that we should have come together so accidentally
  • and so blindly. Because we were no more than samples of the common fate.
  • Love is not only the cardinal fact in the individual life, but the most
  • important concern of the community; after all, the way in which the
  • young people of this generation pair off determines the fate of the
  • nation; all the other affairs of the State are subsidiary to that.
  • And we leave it to flushed and blundering youth to stumble on its own
  • significance, with nothing to guide in but shocked looks and sentimental
  • twaddle and base whisperings and cant-smeared examples.
  • I have tried to indicate something of my own sexual development in the
  • preceding chapter. Nobody was ever frank and decent with me in this
  • relation; nobody, no book, ever came and said to me thus and thus is
  • the world made, and so and so is necessary. Everything came obscurely,
  • indefinitely, perplexingly; and all I knew of law or convention in the
  • matter had the form of threatenings and prohibitions. Except through the
  • furtive, shameful talk of my coevals at Goudhurst and Wimblehurst, I
  • was not even warned against quite horrible dangers. My ideas were made
  • partly of instinct, partly of a romantic imagination, partly woven out
  • of a medley of scraps of suggestion that came to me haphazard. I had
  • read widely and confusedly “Vathek,” Shelley, Tom Paine, Plutarch,
  • Carlyle, Haeckel, William Morris, the Bible, the Freethinker, the
  • Clarion, “The Woman Who Did,”--I mention the ingredients that come first
  • to mind. All sorts of ideas were jumbled up in me and never a lucid
  • explanation. But it was evident to me that the world regarded Shelley,
  • for example, as a very heroic as well as beautiful person; and that
  • to defy convention and succumb magnificently to passion was the proper
  • thing to do to gain the respect and affection of all decent people.
  • And the make-up of Marion’s mind in the matter was an equally irrational
  • affair. Her training had been one, not simply of silences, but
  • suppressions. An enormous force of suggestion had so shaped her that
  • the intense natural fastidiousness of girlhood had developed into
  • an absolute perversion of instinct. For all that is cardinal in this
  • essential business of life she had one inseparable epithet--“horrid.”
  • Without any such training she would have been a shy lover, but now she
  • was an impossible one. For the rest she had derived, I suppose, partly
  • from the sort of fiction she got from the Public Library, and partly
  • from the workroom talk at Smithie’s. So far as the former origin went,
  • she had an idea of love as a state of worship and service on the part of
  • the man and of condescension on the part of the woman. There was nothing
  • “horrid” about it in any fiction she had read. The man gave presents,
  • did services, sought to be in every way delightful. The woman “went out”
  • with him, smiled at him, was kissed by him in decorous secrecy, and if
  • he chanced to offend, denied her countenance and presence. Usually she
  • did something “for his good” to him, made him go to church, made him
  • give up smoking or gambling, smartened him up. Quite at the end of the
  • story came a marriage, and after that the interest ceased.
  • That was the tenor of Marion’s fiction; but I think the work-table
  • conversation at Smithie’s did something to modify that. At Smithie’s it
  • was recognised, I think, that a “fellow” was a possession to be desired;
  • that it was better to be engaged to a fellow than not; that fellows had
  • to be kept--they might be mislaid, they might even be stolen. There was
  • a case of stealing at Smithie’s, and many tears.
  • Smithie I met before we were married, and afterwards she became a
  • frequent visitor to our house at Ealing. She was a thin, bright-eyed,
  • hawk-nosed girl of thirtyodd, with prominent teeth, a high-pitched,
  • eager voice and a disposition to be urgently smart in her dress. Her
  • hats were startling and various, but invariably disconcerting, and she
  • talked in a rapid, nervous flow that was hilarious rather than witty,
  • and broken by little screams of “Oh, my dear!” and “you never did!” She
  • was the first woman I ever met who used scent. Poor old Smithie! What a
  • harmless, kindly soul she really was, and how heartily I detested her!
  • Out of the profits on the Persian robes she supported a sister’s family
  • of three children, she “helped” a worthless brother, and overflowed
  • in help even to her workgirls, but that didn’t weigh with me in those
  • youthfully-narrow times. It was one of the intense minor irritations of
  • my married life that Smithie’s whirlwind chatter seemed to me to have
  • far more influence with Marion than anything I had to say. Before all
  • things I coveted her grip upon Marion’s inaccessible mind.
  • In the workroom at Smithie’s, I gathered, they always spoke of me
  • demurely as “A Certain Person.” I was rumoured to be dreadfully
  • “clever,” and there were doubts--not altogether without
  • justification--of the sweetness of my temper.
  • II
  • Well, these general explanations will enable the reader to understand
  • the distressful times we two had together when presently I began to feel
  • on a footing with Marion and to fumble conversationally for the mind and
  • the wonderful passion I felt, obstinately and stupidity, must be in her.
  • I think she thought me the maddest of sane men; “clever,” in fact,
  • which at Smithie’s was, I suppose, the next thing to insanity, a word
  • intimating incomprehensible and incalculable motives.... She could be
  • shocked at anything, she misunderstood everything, and her weapon was
  • a sulky silence that knitted her brows, spoilt her mouth and robbed her
  • face of beauty. “Well, if we can’t agree, I don’t see why you should
  • go on talking,” she used to say. That would always enrage me beyond
  • measure. Or, “I’m afraid I’m not clever enough to understand that.”
  • Silly little people! I see it all now, but then I was no older than
  • she and I couldn’t see anything but that Marion, for some inexplicable
  • reason, wouldn’t come alive.
  • We would contrive semi-surreptitious walks on Sunday, and part
  • speechless with the anger of indefinable offences. Poor Marion! The
  • things I tried to put before her, my fermenting ideas about theology,
  • about Socialism, about aesthetics--the very words appalled her, gave her
  • the faint chill of approaching impropriety, the terror of a very present
  • intellectual impossibility. Then by an enormous effort I would suppress
  • myself for a time and continue a talk that made her happy, about
  • Smithie’s brother, about the new girl who had come to the workroom,
  • about the house we would presently live in. But there we differed
  • a little. I wanted to be accessible to St. Paul’s or Cannon Street
  • Station, and she had set her mind quite resolutely upon Eating.... It
  • wasn’t by any means quarreling all the time, you understand. She liked
  • me to play the lover “nicely”; she liked the effect of going about--we
  • had lunches, we went to Earl’s Court, to Kew, to theatres and concerts,
  • but not often to concerts, because, though Marion “liked” music,
  • she didn’t like “too much of it,” to picture shows--and there was a
  • nonsensical sort of babytalk I picked up--I forget where now--that
  • became a mighty peacemaker.
  • Her worst offence for me was an occasional excursion into the Smithie
  • style of dressing, debased West Kensington. For she had no sense at all
  • of her own beauty. She had no comprehension whatever of beauty of the
  • body, and she could slash her beautiful lines to rags with hat-brims and
  • trimmings. Thank Heaven! a natural refinement, a natural timidity,
  • and her extremely slender purse kept her from the real Smithie
  • efflorescence! Poor, simple, beautiful, kindly limited Marion! Now that
  • I am forty-five, I can look back at her with all my old admiration
  • and none of my old bitterness with a new affection and not a scrap
  • of passion, and take her part against the equally stupid,
  • drivingly-energetic, sensuous, intellectual sprawl I used to be. I was
  • a young beast for her to have married--a hound beast. With her it was
  • my business to understand and control--and I exacted fellowship,
  • passion....
  • We became engaged, as I have told; we broke it off and joined again. We
  • went through a succession of such phases. We had no sort of idea what
  • was wrong with us. Presently we were formally engaged. I had a wonderful
  • interview with her father, in which he was stupendously grave
  • and H--less, wanted to know about my origins and was tolerant
  • (exasperatingly tolerant) because my mother was a servant, and
  • afterwards her mother took to kissing me, and I bought a ring. But
  • the speechless aunt, I gathered, didn’t approve--having doubts of my
  • religiosity. Whenever we were estranged we could keep apart for days;
  • and to begin with, every such separation was a relief. And then I would
  • want her; a restless longing would come upon me. I would think of the
  • flow of her arms, of the soft, gracious bend of her body. I would lie
  • awake or dream of a transfigured Marion of light and fire. It was indeed
  • Dame Nature driving me on to womankind in her stupid, inexorable way;
  • but I thought it was the need of Marion that troubled me. So I always
  • went back to Marion at last and made it up and more or less conceded or
  • ignored whatever thing had parted us, and more and more I urged her to
  • marry me....
  • In the long run that became a fixed idea. It entangled my will and my
  • pride; I told myself I was not going to be beaten. I hardened to the
  • business. I think, as a matter of fact, my real passion for Marion had
  • waned enormously long before we were married, that she had lived it down
  • by sheer irresponsiveness. When I felt sure of my three hundred a year
  • she stipulated for delay, twelve months’ delay, “to see how things would
  • turn out.” There were times when she seemed simply an antagonist holding
  • out irritatingly against something I had to settle. Moreover, I began
  • to be greatly distracted by the interest and excitement of Tono-Bungay’s
  • success, by the change and movement in things, the going to and fro.
  • I would forget her for days together, and then desire her with an
  • irritating intensity at last, one Saturday afternoon, after a brooding
  • morning, I determined almost savagely that these delays must end.
  • I went off to the little home at Walham Green, and made Marion come with
  • me to Putney Common. Marion wasn’t at home when I got there and I had
  • to fret for a time and talk to her father, who was just back from
  • his office, he explained, and enjoying himself in his own way in the
  • greenhouse.
  • “I’m going to ask your daughter to marry me!” I said. “I think we’ve
  • been waiting long enough.”
  • “I don’t approve of long engagements either,” said her father. “But
  • Marion will have her own way about it, anyhow. Seen this new powdered
  • fertiliser?”
  • I went in to talk to Mrs. Ramboat. “She’ll want time to get her things,”
  • said Mrs. Ramboat....
  • I and Marion sat down together on a little seat under some trees at the
  • top of Putney Hill, and I came to my point abruptly.
  • “Look here, Marion,” I said, “are you going to marry me or are you not?”
  • She smiled at me. “Well,” she said, “we’re engaged--aren’t we?”
  • “That can’t go on for ever. Will you marry me next week?”
  • She looked me in the face. “We can’t,” she said.
  • “You promised to marry me when I had three hundred a year.”
  • She was silent for a space. “Can’t we go on for a time as we are? We
  • COULD marry on three hundred a year. But it means a very little house.
  • There’s Smithie’s brother. They manage on two hundred and fifty, but
  • that’s very little. She says they have a semi-detached house almost on
  • the road, and hardly a bit of garden. And the wall to next-door is so
  • thin they hear everything. When her baby cries--they rap. And people
  • stand against the railings and talk.... Can’t we wait? You’re doing so
  • well.”
  • An extraordinary bitterness possessed me at this invasion of the
  • stupendous beautiful business of love by sordid necessity. I answered
  • her with immense restraint.
  • “If,” I said, “we could have a double-fronted, detached house--at
  • Ealing, say--with a square patch of lawn in front and a garden
  • behind--and--and a tiled bathroom.”
  • “That would be sixty pounds a year at least.”
  • “Which means five hundred a year.... Yes, well, you see, I told my uncle
  • I wanted that, and I’ve got it.”
  • “Got what?”
  • “Five hundred pounds a year.”
  • “Five hundred pounds!”
  • I burst into laughter that had more than a taste of bitterness.
  • “Yes,” I said, “really! and NOW what do you think?”
  • “Yes,” she said, a little flushed; “but be sensible! Do you really mean
  • you’ve got a Rise, all at once, of two hundred a year?”
  • “To marry on--yes.”
  • She scrutinised me a moment. “You’ve done this as a surprise!” she said,
  • and laughed at my laughter. She had become radiant, and that made me
  • radiant, too.
  • “Yes,” I said, “yes,” and laughed no longer bitterly.
  • She clasped her hands and looked me in the eyes.
  • She was so pleased that I forgot absolutely my disgust of a moment
  • before. I forgot that she had raised her price two hundred pounds a year
  • and that I had bought her at that.
  • “Come!” I said, standing up; “let’s go towards the sunset, dear, and
  • talk about it all. Do you know--this is a most beautiful world, an
  • amazingly beautiful world, and when the sunset falls upon you it
  • makes you into shining gold. No, not gold--into golden glass.... Into
  • something better that either glass or gold.”...
  • And for all that evening I wooed her and kept her glad. She made me
  • repeat my assurances over again and still doubted a little.
  • We furnished that double-fronted house from attic--it ran to an
  • attic--to cellar, and created a garden.
  • “Do you know Pampas Grass?” said Marion. “I love Pampas Grass... if
  • there is room.”
  • “You shall have Pampas Grass,” I declared. And there were moments as we
  • went in imagination about that house together, when my whole being cried
  • out to take her in my arms--now. But I refrained. On that aspect of life
  • I touched very lightly in that talk, very lightly because I had had
  • my lessons. She promised to marry me within two months’ time. Shyly,
  • reluctantly, she named a day, and next afternoon, in heat and wrath,
  • we “broke it off” again for the last time. We split upon procedure.
  • I refused flatly to have a normal wedding with wedding cake, in white
  • favours, carriages and the rest of it. It dawned upon me suddenly in
  • conversation with her and her mother, that this was implied. I blurted
  • out my objection forthwith, and this time it wasn’t any ordinary
  • difference of opinion; it was a “row.” I don’t remember a quarter of the
  • things we flung out in that dispute. I remember her mother reiterating
  • in tones of gentle remonstrance: “But, George dear, you must have
  • a cake--to send home.” I think we all reiterated things. I seem to
  • remember a refrain of my own: “A marriage is too sacred a thing, too
  • private a thing, for this display. Her father came in and stood behind
  • me against the wall, and her aunt appeared beside the sideboard and
  • stood with arms, looking from speaker to speaker, a sternly gratified
  • prophetess. It didn’t occur to me then! How painful it was to Marion for
  • these people to witness my rebellion.
  • “But, George,” said her father, “what sort of marriage do you want? You
  • don’t want to go to one of those there registry offices?”
  • “That’s exactly what I’d like to do. Marriage is too private a thing--”
  • “I shouldn’t feel married,” said Mrs. Ramboat.
  • “Look here, Marion,” I said; “we are going to be married at a registry
  • office. I don’t believe in all these fripperies and superstitions, and I
  • won’t submit to them. I’ve agreed to all sorts of things to please you.”
  • “What’s he agreed to?” said her father--unheeded.
  • “I can’t marry at a registry office,” said Marion, sallow-white.
  • “Very well,” I said. “I’ll marry nowhere else.”
  • “I can’t marry at a registry office.”
  • “Very well,” I said, standing up, white and tense and it amazed me, but
  • I was also exultant; “then we won’t marry at all.”
  • She leant forward over the table, staring blankly. But presently her
  • half-averted face began to haunt me as she had sat at the table, and her
  • arm and the long droop of her shoulder.
  • III
  • The next day I did an unexampled thing. I sent a telegram to my uncle,
  • “Bad temper not coming to business,” and set off for Highgate and Ewart.
  • He was actually at work--on a bust of Millie, and seemed very glad for
  • any interruption.
  • “Ewart, you old Fool,” I said, “knock off and come for a day’s gossip.
  • I’m rotten. There’s a sympathetic sort of lunacy about you. Let’s go to
  • Staines and paddle up to Windsor.”
  • “Girl?” said Ewart, putting down a chisel.
  • “Yes.”
  • That was all I told him of my affair.
  • “I’ve got no money,” he remarked, to clear up ambiguity in my
  • invitation.
  • We got a jar of shandy-gaff, some food, and, on Ewart’s suggestion,
  • two Japanese sunshades in Staines; we demanded extra cushions at the
  • boathouse and we spent an enormously soothing day in discourse and
  • meditation, our boat moored in a shady place this side of Windsor.
  • I seem to remember Ewart with a cushion forward, only his heels and
  • sunshade and some black ends of hair showing, a voice and no more,
  • against the shining, smoothly-streaming mirror of the trees and bushes.
  • “It’s not worth it,” was the burthen of the voice. “You’d better get
  • yourself a Millie, Ponderevo, and then you wouldn’t feel so upset.”
  • “No,” I said decidedly, “that’s not my way.”
  • A thread of smoke ascended from Ewart for a while, like smoke from an
  • altar.
  • “Everything’s a muddle, and you think it isn’t. Nobody knows where
  • we are--because, as a matter of fact we aren’t anywhere. Are women
  • property--or are they fellow-creatures? Or a sort of proprietary
  • goddesses? They’re so obviously fellow-creatures. You believe in the
  • goddess?”
  • “No,” I said, “that’s not my idea.”
  • “What is your idea?”
  • “Well”
  • “H’m,” said Ewart, in my pause.
  • “My idea,” I said, “is to meet one person who will belong to me--to whom
  • I shall belong--body and soul. No half-gods! Wait till she comes. If she
  • comes at all.... We must come to each other young and pure.”
  • “There’s no such thing as a pure person or an impure person.... Mixed to
  • begin with.”
  • This was so manifestly true that it silenced me altogether.
  • “And if you belong to her and she to you, Ponderevo--which end’s the
  • head?”
  • I made no answer except an impatient “oh!”
  • For a time we smoked in silence....
  • “Did I tell you, Ponderevo, of a wonderful discovery I’ve made?” Ewart
  • began presently.
  • “No,” I said, “what is it?”
  • “There’s no Mrs. Grundy.”
  • “No?”
  • “No! Practically not. I’ve just thought all that business out. She’s
  • merely an instrument, Ponderevo. She’s borne the blame. Grundy’s a man.
  • Grundy unmasked. Rather lean and out of sorts. Early middle age. With
  • bunchy black whiskers and a worried eye. Been good so far, and it’s
  • fretting him! Moods! There’s Grundy in a state of sexual panic, for
  • example,--‘For God’s sake cover it up! They get together--they get
  • together! It’s too exciting! The most dreadful things are happening!’
  • Rushing about--long arms going like a windmill. ‘They must be kept
  • apart!’ Starts out for an absolute obliteration of everything absolute
  • separations. One side of the road for men, and the other for women, and
  • a hoarding--without posters between them. Every boy and girl to be sewed
  • up in a sack and sealed, just the head and hands and feet out until
  • twenty-one. Music abolished, calico garments for the lower animals!
  • Sparrows to be suppressed--ab-so-lutely.”
  • I laughed abruptly.
  • “Well, that’s Mr. Grundy in one mood--and it puts Mrs. Grundy--She’s a
  • much-maligned person, Ponderevo--a rake at heart--and it puts her in a
  • most painful state of fluster--most painful! She’s an amenable creature.
  • When Grundy tells her things are shocking, she’s shocked--pink and
  • breathless. She goes about trying to conceal her profound sense of guilt
  • behind a haughty expression....
  • “Grundy, meanwhile, is in a state of complete whirlabout. Long lean
  • knuckly hands pointing and gesticulating! ‘They’re still thinking of
  • things--thinking of things! It’s dreadful. They get it out of books.
  • I can’t imagine where they get it! I must watch! There’re people over
  • there whispering! Nobody ought to whisper!--There’s something suggestive
  • in the mere act! Then, pictures! In the museum--things too dreadful for
  • words. Why can’t we have pure art--with the anatomy all wrong and pure
  • and nice--and pure fiction pure poetry, instead of all this stuff with
  • allusions--allusions?... Excuse me! There’s something up behind that
  • locked door! The keyhole! In the interests of public morality--yes, Sir,
  • as a pure good man--I insist--I’LL look--it won’t hurt me--I insist on
  • looking my duty--M’m’m--the keyhole!’”
  • He kicked his legs about extravagantly, and I laughed again.
  • “That’s Grundy in one mood, Ponderevo. It isn’t Mrs. Grundy. That’s one
  • of the lies we tell about women. They’re too simple. Simple! Woman ARE
  • simple! They take on just what men tell ‘em.”
  • Ewart meditated for a space. “Just exactly as it’s put to them,” he
  • said, and resumed the moods of Mr. Grundy.
  • “Then you get old Grundy in another mood. Ever caught him nosing,
  • Ponderevo? Mad with the idea of mysterious, unknown, wicked, delicious
  • things. Things that aren’t respectable. Wow! Things he mustn’t do!...
  • Any one who knows about these things, knows there’s just as much mystery
  • and deliciousness about Grundy’s forbidden things as there is about
  • eating ham. Jolly nice if it’s a bright morning and you’re well and
  • hungry and having breakfast in the open air. Jolly unattractive if
  • you’re off colour. But Grundy’s covered it all up and hidden it and
  • put mucky shades and covers over it until he’s forgotten it. Begins to
  • fester round it in his mind. Has dreadful struggles--with himself about
  • impure thoughts.... Then you set Grundy with hot ears,--curious in
  • undertones. Grundy on the loose, Grundy in a hoarse whisper and
  • with furtive eyes and convulsive movements--making things indecent.
  • Evolving--in dense vapours--indecency!
  • “Grundy sins. Oh, yes, he’s a hypocrite. Sneaks round a corner and
  • sins ugly. It’s Grundy and his dark corners that make vice, vice! We
  • artists--we have no vices.
  • “And then he’s frantic with repentance. And wants to be cruel to fallen
  • women and decent harmless sculptors of the simple nude--like me--and so
  • back to his panic again.”
  • “Mrs. Grundy, I suppose, doesn’t know he sins,” I remarked.
  • “No? I’m not so sure.... But, bless her heart she’s a woman.... She’s
  • a woman. Then again you get Grundy with a large greasy smile--like
  • an accident to a butter tub--all over his face, being Liberal
  • Minded--Grundy in his Anti-Puritan moments, ‘trying not to see Harm in
  • it’--Grundy the friend of innocent pleasure. He makes you sick with the
  • Harm he’s trying not to see in it...
  • “And that’s why everything’s wrong, Ponderevo. Grundy, damn him! stands
  • in the light, and we young people can’t see. His moods affect us. We
  • catch his gusts of panic, his disease of nosing, his greasiness. We
  • don’t know what we may think, what we may say, he does his silly
  • utmost to prevent our reading and seeing the one thing, the one sort of
  • discussion we find--quite naturally and properly--supremely interesting.
  • So we don’t adolescence; we blunder up to sex. Dare--dare to look--and
  • he may dirt you for ever! The girls are terror-stricken to silence by
  • his significant whiskers, by the bleary something in his eyes.”
  • Suddenly Ewart, with an almost Jack-in-the-box effect, sat up.
  • “He’s about us everywhere, Ponderevo,” he said, very solemnly.
  • “Sometimes--sometimes I think he is--in our blood. In MINE.”
  • He regarded me for my opinion very earnestly, with his pipe in the
  • corner of his mouth.
  • “You’re the remotest cousin he ever had,” I said.
  • I reflected. “Look here, Ewart,” I asked, “how would you have things
  • different?”
  • He wrinkled up his queer face, regarded the wait and made his pipe
  • gurgle for a space, thinking deeply.
  • “There are complications, I admit. We’ve grown up under the terror of
  • Grundy and that innocent but docile and--yes--formidable lady, his
  • wife. I don’t know how far the complications aren’t a disease, a sort of
  • bleaching under the Grundy shadow.... It is possible there are things
  • I have still to learn about women.... Man has eaten of the Tree of
  • Knowledge. His innocence is gone. You can’t have your cake and eat
  • it. We’re in for knowledge; let’s have it plain and straight. I should
  • begin, I think, by abolishing the ideas of decency and indecency....”
  • “Grundy would have fits!” I injected.
  • “Grundy, Ponderevo, would have cold douches--publicly--if the sight was
  • not too painful--three times a day.... But I don’t think, mind you,
  • that I should let the sexes run about together. No. The fact behind the
  • sexes--is sex. It’s no good humbugging. It trails about--even in the
  • best mixed company. Tugs at your ankle. The men get showing off and
  • quarrelling--and the women. Or they’re bored. I suppose the ancestral
  • males have competed for the ancestral females ever since they were both
  • some sort of grubby little reptile. You aren’t going to alter that in
  • a thousand years or so.... Never should you have a mixed company,
  • never--except with only one man or only one woman. How would that be?...
  • “Or duets only?...
  • “How to manage it? Some rule of etiquette, perhaps.”... He became
  • portentously grave.
  • Then his long hand went out in weird gestures.
  • “I seem to see--I seem to see--a sort of City of Women, Ponderevo.
  • Yes.... A walled enclosure--good stone-mason’s work--a city wall, high
  • as the walls of Rome, going about a garden. Dozens of square miles of
  • garden--trees--fountains--arbours--lakes. Lawns on which the women play,
  • avenues in which they gossip, boats.... Women like that sort of thing.
  • Any woman who’s been to a good eventful girls’ school lives on the
  • memory of it for the rest of her life. It’s one of the pathetic things
  • about women--the superiority of school and college--to anything they get
  • afterwards. And this city-garden of women will have beautiful places
  • for music, places for beautiful dresses, places for beautiful work.
  • Everything a woman can want. Nurseries. Kindergartens. Schools. And no
  • man--except to do rough work, perhaps--ever comes in. The men live in a
  • world where they can hunt and engineer, invent and mine and manufacture,
  • sail ships, drink deep and practice the arts, and fight--”
  • “Yes,” I said, “but--”
  • He stilled me with a gesture.
  • “I’m coming to that. The homes of the women, Ponderevo, will be set in
  • the wall of their city; each woman will have her own particular house
  • and home, furnished after her own heart in her own manner--with a little
  • balcony on the outside wall. Built into the wall--and a little balcony.
  • And there she will go and look out, when the mood takes her, and all
  • round the city there will be a broad road and seats and great shady
  • trees. And men will stroll up and down there when they feel the need
  • of feminine company; when, for instance, they want to talk about their
  • souls or their characters or any of the things that only women will
  • stand.... The women will lean over and look at the men and smile and
  • talk to them as they fancy. And each woman will have this; she will have
  • a little silken ladder she can let down if she chooses--if she wants to
  • talk closer...”
  • “The men would still be competing.”
  • “There perhaps--yes. But they’d have to abide by the women’s decisions.”
  • I raised one or two difficulties, and for a while we played with this
  • idea.
  • “Ewart,” I said, “this is like Doll’s Island.
  • “Suppose,” I reflected, “an unsuccessful man laid siege to a balcony and
  • wouldn’t let his rival come near it?”
  • “Move him on,” said Ewart, “by a special regulation. As one does
  • organ-grinders. No difficulty about that. And you could forbid it--make
  • it against the etiquette. No life is decent without etiquette.... And
  • people obey etiquette sooner than laws...”
  • “H’m,” I said, and was struck by an idea that is remote in the world of
  • a young man. “How about children?” I asked; “in the City? Girls are all
  • very well. But boys, for example--grow up.”
  • “Ah!” said Ewart. “Yes. I forgot. They mustn’t grow up inside.... They’d
  • turn out the boys when they were seven. The father must come with a
  • little pony and a little gun and manly wear, and take the boy away. Then
  • one could come afterwards to one’s mother’s balcony.... It must be fine
  • to have a mother. The father and the son...”
  • “This is all very pretty in its way,” I said at last, “but it’s a dream.
  • Let’s come back to reality. What I want to know is, what are you going
  • to do in Brompton, let us say, or Walham Green NOW?”
  • “Oh! damn it!” he remarked, “Walham Green! What a chap you are,
  • Ponderevo!” and he made an abrupt end to his discourse. He wouldn’t even
  • reply to my tentatives for a time.
  • “While I was talking just now,” he remarked presently,
  • “I had a quite different idea.”
  • “What?”
  • “For a masterpiece. A series. Like the busts of the Caesars. Only
  • not heads, you know. We don’t see the people who do things to us
  • nowadays...”
  • “How will you do it, then?”
  • “Hands--a series of hands! The hands of the Twentieth Century. I’ll do
  • it. Some day some one will discover it--go there--see what I have done,
  • and what is meant by it.”
  • “See it where?”
  • “On the tombs. Why not? The Unknown Master of the Highgate Slope! All
  • the little, soft feminine hands, the nervous ugly males, the hands of
  • the flops, and the hands of the snatchers! And Grundy’s loose, lean,
  • knuckly affair--Grundy the terror!--the little wrinkles and the thumb!
  • Only it ought to hold all the others together--in a slightly disturbing
  • squeeze....Like Rodin’s great Hand--you know the thing!”
  • IV
  • I forget how many days intervened between that last breaking off of our
  • engagement and Marion’s surrender. But I recall now the sharpness of my
  • emotion, the concentrated spirit of tears and laughter in my throat as
  • I read the words of her unexpected letter--“I have thought over
  • everything, and I was selfish....” I rushed off to Walham Green that
  • evening to give back all she had given me, to beat her altogether
  • at giving. She was extraordinarily gentle and generous that time, I
  • remember, and when at last I left her, she kissed me very sweetly.
  • So we were married.
  • We were married with all the customary incongruity. I gave--perhaps
  • after a while not altogether ungrudgingly--and what I gave, Marion took,
  • with a manifest satisfaction. After all, I was being sensible. So that
  • we had three livery carriages to the church (one of the pairs of horses
  • matched) and coachmen--with improvised flavour and very shabby silk
  • hats--bearing white favours on their whips, and my uncle intervened with
  • splendour and insisted upon having a wedding breakfast sent in from
  • a caterer’s in Hammersmith. The table had a great display of
  • chrysanthemums, and there was orange blossom in the significant place
  • and a wonderful cake. We also circulated upwards of a score of wedges
  • of that accompanied by silver-printed cards in which Marion’s name of
  • Ramboat was stricken out by an arrow in favour of Ponderevo. We had a
  • little rally of Marion’s relations, and several friends and friends’
  • friends from Smithie’s appeared in the church and drifted vestry-ward.
  • I produced my aunt and uncle a select group of two. The effect in that
  • shabby little house was one of exhilarating congestion. The side-board,
  • in which lived the table-cloth and the “Apartments” card, was used for
  • a display of the presents, eked out by the unused balance of the
  • silver-printed cards.
  • Marion wore the white raiment of a bride, white silk and satin, that did
  • not suit her, that made her seem large and strange to me; she obtruded
  • bows and unfamiliar contours. She went through all this strange ritual
  • of an English wedding with a sacramental gravity that I was altogether
  • too young and egotistical to comprehend. It was all extraordinarily
  • central and important to her; it was no more than an offensive,
  • complicated, and disconcerting intrusion of a world I was already
  • beginning to criticise very bitterly, to me. What was all this fuss for?
  • The mere indecent advertisement that I had been passionately in love
  • with Marion! I think, however, that Marion was only very remotely aware
  • of my smouldering exasperation at having in the end behaved “nicely.” I
  • had played--up to the extent of dressing my part; I had an admirably
  • cut frock--coat, a new silk hat, trousers as light as I could endure
  • them--lighter, in fact--a white waistcoat, night tie, light gloves.
  • Marion, seeing me despondent had the unusual enterprise to whisper to
  • me that I looked lovely; I knew too well I didn’t look myself. I looked
  • like a special coloured supplement to Men’s Wear, or The Tailor
  • and Cutter, Full Dress For Ceremonial Occasions. I had even the
  • disconcerting sensations of an unfamiliar collar. I felt lost--in
  • a strange body, and when I glanced down myself for reassurance, the
  • straight white abdomen, the alien legs confirmed that impression.
  • My uncle was my best man, and looked like a banker--a little banker--in
  • flower. He wore a white rose in his buttonhole. He wasn’t, I think,
  • particularly talkative. At least I recall very little from him.
  • “George” he said once or twice, “this is a great occasion for you--a
  • very great occasion.” He spoke a little doubtfully.
  • You see I had told him nothing about Marion until about a week before
  • the wedding; both he and my aunt had been taken altogether by surprise.
  • They couldn’t, as people say, “make it out.” My aunt was intensely
  • interested, much more than my uncle; it was then, I think, for the
  • first time that I really saw that she cared for me. She got me alone,
  • I remember, after I had made my announcement. “Now, George,” she
  • said, “tell me everything about her. Why didn’t you tell--ME at
  • least--before?”
  • I was surprised to find how difficult it was to tell her about Marion. I
  • perplexed her.
  • “Then is she beautiful?” she asked at last.
  • “I don’t know what you’ll think of her,” I parried. “I think--”
  • “Yes?”
  • “I think she might be the most beautiful person in the world.”
  • “And isn’t she? To you?”
  • “Of course,” I said, nodding my head. “Yes. She IS...”
  • And while I don’t remember anything my uncle said or did at the
  • wedding, I do remember very distinctly certain little things, scrutiny,
  • solicitude, a curious rare flash of intimacy in my aunt’s eyes. It
  • dawned on me that I wasn’t hiding anything from her at all. She was
  • dressed very smartly, wearing a big-plumed hat that made her neck seem
  • longer and slenderer than ever, and when she walked up the aisle with
  • that rolling stride of hers and her eye all on Marion, perplexed into
  • self-forgetfulness, it wasn’t somehow funny. She was, I do believe,
  • giving my marriage more thought than I had done, she was concerned
  • beyond measure at my black rage and Marion’s blindness, she was looking
  • with eyes that knew what loving is--for love.
  • In the vestry she turned away as we signed, and I verily believe she was
  • crying, though to this day I can’t say why she should have cried, and
  • she was near crying too when she squeezed my hand at parting--and she
  • never said a word or looked at me, but just squeezed my hand....
  • If I had not been so grim in spirit, I think I should have found much
  • of my wedding amusing. I remember a lot of ridiculous detail that still
  • declines to be funny in my memory. The officiating clergyman had a
  • cold, and turned his “n’s” to “d’s,” and he made the most mechanical
  • compliment conceivable about the bride’s age when the register was
  • signed. Every bride he had ever married had had it, one knew. And two
  • middle-aged spinsters, cousins of Marion’s and dressmakers at Barking,
  • stand out. They wore marvellously bright and gay blouses and dim old
  • skirts, and had an immense respect for Mr. Ramboat. They threw rice;
  • they brought a whole bag with them and gave handfuls away to unknown
  • little boys at the church door and so created a Lilliputian riot; and
  • one had meant to throw a slipper. It was a very warm old silk slipper,
  • I know, because she dropped it out of a pocket in the aisle--there was
  • a sort of jumble in the aisle--and I picked it up for her. I don’t think
  • she actually threw it, for as we drove away from the church I saw her
  • in a dreadful, and, it seemed to me, hopeless, struggle with her pocket;
  • and afterwards my eye caught the missile of good fortune lying, it or
  • its fellow, most obviously mislaid, behind the umbrella-stand in the
  • hall....
  • The whole business was much more absurd, more incoherent, more human
  • than I had anticipated, but I was far too young and serious to let the
  • latter quality atone for its shortcomings. I am so remote from this
  • phase of my youth that I can look back at it all as dispassionately as
  • one looks at a picture--at some wonderful, perfect sort of picture
  • that is inexhaustible; but at the time these things filled me with
  • unspeakable resentment. Now I go round it all, look into its details,
  • generalise about its aspects. I’m interested, for example, to square it
  • with my Bladesover theory of the British social scheme. Under stress of
  • tradition we were all of us trying in the fermenting chaos of London to
  • carry out the marriage ceremonies of a Bladesover tenant or one of the
  • chubby middling sort of people in some dependent country town. There
  • a marriage is a public function with a public significance. There the
  • church is to a large extent the gathering-place of the community, and
  • your going to be married a thing of importance to every one you pass on
  • the road. It is a change of status that quite legitimately interests
  • the whole neighbourhood. But in London there are no neighbours, nobody
  • knows, nobody cares. An absolute stranger in an office took my notice,
  • and our banns were proclaimed to ears that had never previously heard
  • our names. The clergyman, even, who married us had never seen us before,
  • and didn’t in any degree intimate that he wanted to see us again.
  • Neighbours in London! The Ramboats did not know the names of the people
  • on either side of them. As I waited for Marion before we started off
  • upon our honeymoon flight, Mr. Ramboat, I remember, came and stood
  • beside me and stared out of the window.
  • “There was a funeral over there yesterday,” he said, by way of making
  • conversation, and moved his head at the house opposite. “Quite a smart
  • affair it was with a glass ‘earse....”
  • And our little procession of three carriages with white-favour-adorned
  • horses and drivers, went through all the huge, noisy, indifferent
  • traffic like a lost china image in the coal-chute of an ironclad. Nobody
  • made way for us, nobody cared for us; the driver of an omnibus jeered;
  • for a long time we crawled behind an unamiable dust-cart. The irrelevant
  • clatter and tumult gave a queer flavour of indecency to this public
  • coming together of lovers. We seemed to have obtruded ourselves
  • shamelessly. The crowd that gathered outside the church would have
  • gathered in the same spirit and with greater alacrity for a street
  • accident....
  • At Charing Cross--we were going to Hastings--the experienced eye of the
  • guard detected the significance of our unusual costume and he secured us
  • a compartment.
  • “Well,” said I, as the train moved out of the station, “That’s all
  • over!” And I turned to Marion--a little unfamiliar still, in her
  • unfamiliar clothes--and smiled.
  • She regarded me gravely, timidly.
  • “You’re not cross?” she asked.
  • “Cross! Why?”
  • “At having it all proper.”
  • “My dear Marion!” said I, and by way of answer took and kissed her
  • white-gloved, leather-scented hand....
  • I don’t remember much else about the journey, an hour or so it was of
  • undistinguished time--for we were both confused and a little fatigued
  • and Marion had a slight headache and did not want caresses. I fell into
  • a reverie about my aunt, and realised as if it were a new discovery,
  • that I cared for her very greatly. I was acutely sorry I had not told
  • her earlier of my marriage.
  • But you will not want to hear the history of my honeymoon. I have told
  • all that was needed to serve my present purpose. Thus and thus it was
  • the Will in things had its way with me. Driven by forces I did not
  • understand, diverted altogether from the science, the curiosities and
  • work to which I had once given myself, I fought my way through a tangle
  • of traditions, customs, obstacles and absurdities, enraged myself,
  • limited myself, gave myself to occupations I saw with the clearest
  • vision were dishonourable and vain, and at last achieved the end of
  • purblind Nature, the relentless immediacy of her desire, and held, far
  • short of happiness, Marion weeping and reluctant in my arms.
  • V
  • Who can tell the story of the slow estrangement of two married people,
  • the weakening of first this bond and then that of that complex contact?
  • Least of all can one of the two participants. Even now, with an
  • interval of fifteen years to clear it up for me, I still find a mass of
  • impressions of Marion as confused, as discordant, as unsystematic and
  • self-contradictory as life. I think of this thing and love her, of that
  • and hate her--of a hundred aspects in which I can now see her with an
  • unimpassioned sympathy. As I sit here trying to render some vision of
  • this infinitely confused process, I recall moments of hard and fierce
  • estrangement, moments of clouded intimacy, the passage of transition all
  • forgotten. We talked a little language together whence were “friends,”
  • and I was “Mutney” and she was “Ming,” and we kept up such an outward
  • show that till the very end Smithie thought our household the most
  • amiable in the world.
  • I cannot tell to the full how Marion thwarted me and failed in that life
  • of intimate emotions which is the kernel of love. That life of intimate
  • emotions is made up of little things. A beautiful face differs from an
  • ugly one by a difference of surfaces and proportions that are sometimes
  • almost infinitesimally small. I find myself setting down little things
  • and little things; none of them do more than demonstrate those essential
  • temperamental discords I have already sought to make clear. Some readers
  • will understand--to others I shall seem no more than an unfeeling brute
  • who couldn’t make allowances.... It’s easy to make allowances now; but
  • to be young and ardent and to make allowances, to see one’s married life
  • open before one, the life that seemed in its dawn a glory, a garden of
  • roses, a place of deep sweet mysteries and heart throbs and wonderful
  • silences, and to see it a vista of tolerations and baby-talk; a
  • compromise, the least effectual thing in all one’s life.
  • Every love romance I read seemed to mock our dull intercourse, every
  • poem, every beautiful picture reflected upon the uneventful succession
  • of grey hours we had together. I think our real difference was one of
  • aesthetic sensibility.
  • I do still recall as the worst and most disastrous aspect of all that
  • time, her absolute disregard of her own beauty. It’s the pettiest thing
  • to record, I know, but she could wear curl-papers in my presence. It was
  • her idea, too, to “wear out” her old clothes and her failures at home
  • when “no one was likely to see her”--“no one” being myself. She allowed
  • me to accumulate a store of ungracious and slovenly memories....
  • All our conceptions of life differed. I remember how we differed about
  • furniture. We spent three or four days in Tottenham Court Road, and she
  • chose the things she fancied with an inexorable resolution,--sweeping
  • aside my suggestions with--“Oh, YOU want such queer things.” She pursued
  • some limited, clearly seen and experienced ideal--that excluded all
  • other possibilities. Over every mantel was a mirror that was draped, our
  • sideboard was wonderfully good and splendid with beveled glass, we had
  • lamps on long metal stalks and cozy corners and plants in grog-tubs.
  • Smithie approved it all. There wasn’t a place where one could sit and
  • read in the whole house. My books went upon shelves in the dining-room
  • recess. And we had a piano though Marion’s playing was at an elementary
  • level.
  • You know, it was the cruelest luck for Marion that I, with my
  • restlessness, my scepticism, my constantly developing ideas, had
  • insisted on marriage with her. She had no faculty of growth or change;
  • she had taken her mould, she had set in the limited ideas of her
  • peculiar class. She preserved her conception of what was right in
  • drawing-room chairs and in marriage ceremonial and in every relation of
  • life with a simple and luminous honesty and conviction, with an immense
  • unimaginative inflexibility--as a tailor-bird builds its nest or a
  • beaver makes its dam.
  • Let me hasten over this history of disappointments and separation. I
  • might tell of waxings and waning of love between us, but the whole was
  • waning. Sometimes she would do things for me, make me a tie or a pair
  • of slippers, and fill me with none the less gratitude because the things
  • were absurd. She ran our home and our one servant with a hard, bright
  • efficiency. She was inordinately proud of house and garden. Always, by
  • her lights, she did her duty by me.
  • Presently the rapid development of Tono-Bungay began to take me into the
  • provinces, and I would be away sometimes for a week together. This she
  • did not like; it left her “dull,” she said, but after a time she began
  • to go to Smithie’s again and to develop an independence of me. At
  • Smithie’s she was now a woman with a position; she had money to
  • spend. She would take Smithie to theatres and out to lunch and talk
  • interminably of the business, and Smithie became a sort of permanent
  • weekender with us. Also Marion got a spaniel and began to dabble with
  • the minor arts, with poker-work and a Kodak and hyacinths in glasses.
  • She called once on a neighbour. Her parents left Walham Green--her
  • father severed his connection with the gas-works--and came to live in a
  • small house I took for them near us, and they were much with us.
  • Odd the littleness of the things that exasperate when the fountains of
  • life are embittered! My father-in-law was perpetually catching me in
  • moody moments and urging me to take to gardening. He irritated me beyond
  • measure.
  • “You think too much,” he would say. “If you was to let in a bit with
  • a spade, you might soon ‘ave that garden of yours a Vision of Flowers.
  • That’s better than thinking, George.”
  • Or in a torrent of exasperation, “I CARN’T think, George, why you don’t
  • get a bit of glass ‘ere. This sunny corner you c’d do wonders with a bit
  • of glass.”
  • And in the summer time he never came in without performing a sort of
  • conjuring trick in the hall, and taking cucumbers and tomatoes from
  • unexpected points of his person. “All out o’ MY little bit,” he’d say
  • in exemplary tones. He left a trail of vegetable produce in the most
  • unusual places, on mantel boards, sideboards, the tops of pictures.
  • Heavens! how the sudden unexpected tomato could annoy me!...
  • It did much to widen our estrangement that Marion and my aunt failed to
  • make friends, became, by a sort of instinct, antagonistic.
  • My aunt, to begin with, called rather frequently, for she was really
  • anxious to know Marion. At first she would arrive like a whirlwind and
  • pervade the house with an atmosphere of hello! She dressed already with
  • that cheerfully extravagant abandon that signalised her accession to
  • fortune, and dressed her best for these visits.
  • She wanted to play the mother to me, I fancy, to tell Marion occult
  • secrets about the way I wore out my boots and how I never could think to
  • put on thicker things in cold weather. But Marion received her with
  • that defensive suspiciousness of the shy person, thinking only of the
  • possible criticism of herself; and my aunt, perceiving this, became
  • nervous and slangy...
  • “She says such queer things,” said Marion once, discussing her. “But I
  • suppose it’s witty.”
  • “Yes,” I said; “it IS witty.”
  • “If I said things like she does--”
  • The queer things my aunt said were nothing to the queer things she
  • didn’t say. I remember her in our drawing-room one day, and how she
  • cocked her eye--it’s the only expression--at the India-rubber plant in a
  • Doulton-ware pot which Marion had placed on the corner of the piano.
  • She was on the very verge of speech. Then suddenly she caught my
  • expression, and shrank up like a cat that has been discovered looking at
  • the milk.
  • Then a wicked impulse took her.
  • “Didn’t say an old word, George,” she insisted, looking me full in the
  • eye.
  • I smiled. “You’re a dear,” I said, “not to,” as Marion came lowering
  • into the room to welcome her. But I felt extraordinarily like a
  • traitor--to the India-rubber plant, I suppose--for all that nothing had
  • been said...
  • “Your aunt makes Game of people,” was Marion’s verdict, and,
  • open-mindedly: “I suppose it’s all right... for her.”
  • Several times we went to the house in Beckenham for lunch, and once or
  • twice to dinner. My aunt did her peculiar best to be friends, but Marion
  • was implacable. She was also, I know, intensely uncomfortable, and she
  • adopted as her social method, an exhausting silence, replying compactly
  • and without giving openings to anything that was said to her.
  • The gaps between my aunt’s visits grew wider and wider.
  • My married existence became at last like a narrow deep groove in the
  • broad expanse of interests in which I was living. I went about the
  • world; I met a great number of varied personalities; I read endless
  • books in trains as I went to and fro. I developed social relationships
  • at my uncle’s house that Marion did not share. The seeds of new ideas
  • poured in upon me and grew in me. Those early and middle years of one’s
  • third decade are, I suppose, for a man the years of greatest mental
  • growth. They are restless years and full of vague enterprise.
  • Each time I returned to Ealing, life there seemed more alien, narrow,
  • and unattractive--and Marion less beautiful and more limited and
  • difficult--until at last she was robbed of every particle of her magic.
  • She gave me always a cooler welcome, I think, until she seemed entirely
  • apathetic. I never asked myself then what heartaches she might hide or
  • what her discontents might be.
  • I would come home hoping nothing, expecting nothing.
  • This was my fated life, and I had chosen it. I became more sensitive to
  • the defects I had once disregarded altogether; I began to associate her
  • sallow complexion with her temperamental insufficiency, and the heavier
  • lines of her mouth and nostril with her moods of discontent. We
  • drifted apart; wider and wider the gap opened. I tired of baby-talk and
  • stereotyped little fondlings; I tired of the latest intelligence from
  • those wonderful workrooms, and showed it all too plainly; we hardly
  • spoke when we were alone together. The mere unreciprocated physical
  • residue of my passion remained--an exasperation between us.
  • No children came to save us. Marion had acquired at Smithie’s a disgust
  • and dread of maternity. All that was the fruition and quintessence of
  • the “horrid” elements in life, a disgusting thing, a last indignity that
  • overtook unwary women. I doubt indeed a little if children would have
  • saved us; we should have differed so fatally about their upbringing.
  • Altogether, I remember my life with Marion as a long distress, now hard,
  • now tender. It was in those days that I first became critical of my life
  • and burdened with a sense of error and maladjustment. I would lie
  • awake in the night, asking myself the purpose of things, reviewing my
  • unsatisfying, ungainly home-life, my days spent in rascal enterprise
  • and rubbish-selling, contrasting all I was being and doing with my
  • adolescent ambitions, my Wimblehurst dreams. My circumstances had an
  • air of finality, and I asked myself in vain why I had forced myself into
  • them.
  • VI
  • The end of our intolerable situation came suddenly and unexpectedly, but
  • in a way that I suppose was almost inevitable.
  • My alienated affections wandered, and I was unfaithful to Marion.
  • I won’t pretend to extenuate the quality of my conduct. I was a young
  • and fairly vigorous male; all my appetite for love had been roused
  • and whetted and none of it had been satisfied by my love affair and my
  • marriage. I had pursued an elusive gleam of beauty to the disregard of
  • all else, and it had failed me. It had faded when I had hoped it would
  • grow brighter. I despaired of life and was embittered. And things
  • happened as I am telling. I don’t draw any moral at all in the matter,
  • and as for social remedies, I leave them to the social reformer. I’ve
  • got to a time of life when the only theories that interest me are
  • generalisations about realities.
  • To go to our inner office in Raggett Street I had to walk through a room
  • in which the typists worked. They were the correspondence typists; our
  • books and invoicing had long since overflowed into the premises we had
  • had the luck to secure on either side of us. I was, I must confess,
  • always in a faintly cloudily-emotional way aware of that collection of
  • for the most part round-shouldered femininity, but presently one of
  • the girls detached herself from the others and got a real hold upon
  • my attention. I appreciated her at first as a straight little back,
  • a neater back than any of the others; as a softly rounded neck with a
  • smiling necklace of sham pearls; as chestnut hair very neatly done--and
  • as a side-long glance; presently as a quickly turned face that looked
  • for me.
  • My eye would seek her as I went through on business things--I dictated
  • some letters to her and so discovered she had pretty, soft-looking hands
  • with pink nails. Once or twice, meeting casually, we looked one another
  • for the flash of a second in the eyes.
  • That was all. But it was enough in the mysterious free-masonry of sex to
  • say essential things. We had a secret between us.
  • One day I came into Raggett Street at lunch time and she was alone,
  • sitting at her desk. She glanced up as I entered, and then became very
  • still, with a downcast face and her hands clenched on the table. I
  • walked right by her to the door of the inner office, stopped, came back
  • and stood over her.
  • We neither of us spoke for quite a perceptible time. I was trembling
  • violently.
  • “Is that one of the new typewriters?” I asked at last for the sake of
  • speaking.
  • She looked up at me without a word, with her face flushed and her eyes
  • alight, and I bent down and kissed her lips. She leant back to put
  • an arm about me, drew my face to her and kissed me again and again. I
  • lifted her and held her in my arms. She gave a little smothered cry to
  • feel herself so held.
  • Never before had I known the quality of passionate kisses.
  • Somebody became audible in the shop outside.
  • We started back from one another with flushed faces and bright and
  • burning eyes.
  • “We can’t talk here,” I whispered with a confident intimacy. “Where do
  • you go at five?”
  • “Along the Embankment to Charing Cross,” she answered as intimately.
  • “None of the others go that way...”
  • “About half-past five?”
  • “Yes, half-past five...”
  • The door from the shop opened, and she sat down very quickly.
  • “I’m glad,” I said in a commonplace voice, “that these new typewriters
  • are all right.”
  • I went into the inner office and routed out the paysheet in order to
  • find her name--Effie Rink. And did no work at all that afternoon. I
  • fretted about that dingy little den like a beast in a cage.
  • When presently I went out, Effie was working with an extraordinary
  • appearance of calm--and there was no look for me at all....
  • We met and had our talk that evening, a talk in whispers when there was
  • none to overhear; we came to an understanding. It was strangely unlike
  • any dream of romance I had ever entertained.
  • VII
  • I came back after a week’s absence to my home again--a changed man.
  • I had lived out my first rush of passion for Effie, had come to a
  • contemplation of my position. I had gauged Effie’s place in the scheme
  • of things, and parted from her for a time. She was back in her place at
  • Raggett Street after a temporary indisposition. I did not feel in any
  • way penitent or ashamed, I know, as I opened the little cast-iron gate
  • that kept Marion’s front grader and Pampas Grass from the wandering dog.
  • Indeed, if anything, I felt as if I had vindicated some right that had
  • been in question. I came back to Marion with no sense of wrong-doing at
  • all with, indeed, a new friendliness towards her. I don’t know how it
  • may be proper to feel on such occasions; that is how I felt.
  • I followed her in our drawing-room, standing beside the tall lamp-stand
  • that half filled the bay as though she had just turned from watching for
  • me at the window. There was something in her pale face that arrested me.
  • She looked as if she had not been sleeping. She did not come forward to
  • greet me.
  • “You’ve come home,” she said.
  • “As I wrote to you.”
  • She stood very still, a dusky figure against the bright window.
  • “Where have you been?” she asked.
  • “East Coast,” I said easily.
  • She paused for a moment. “I KNOW,” she said.
  • I stared at her. It was the most amazing moment in any life....
  • “By Jove!” I said at last, “I believe you do!”
  • “And then you come home to me!”
  • I walked to the hearthrug and stood quite still there regarding this new
  • situation.
  • “I didn’t dream,” she began. “How could you do such a thing?”
  • It seemed a long interval before either of us spoke another word.
  • “Who knows about it?” I asked at last.
  • “Smithie’s brother. They were at Cromer.”
  • “Confound Cromer! Yes!”
  • “How could you bring yourself”
  • I felt a spasm of petulant annoyance at this unexpected catastrophe.
  • “I should like to wring Smithie’s brother’s neck,” I said....
  • Marion spoke in dry, broken fragments of sentences. “You... I’d always
  • thought that anyhow you couldn’t deceive me... I suppose all men are
  • horrid--about this.”
  • “It doesn’t strike me as horrid. It seems to me the most necessary
  • consequence--and natural thing in the world.”
  • I became aware of some one moving about in the passage, and went and
  • shut the door of the room, then I walked back to the hearthrug and
  • turned.
  • “It’s rough on you,” I said. “But I didn’t mean you to know. You’ve
  • never cared for me. I’ve had the devil of a time. Why should you mind?”
  • She sat down in a draped armchair. “I HAVE cared for you,” she said.
  • I shrugged my shoulders.
  • “I suppose,” she said, “SHE cares for you?”
  • I had no answer.
  • “Where is she now?”
  • “Oh! does it matter to you?... Look here, Marion! This--this I didn’t
  • anticipate. I didn’t mean this thing to smash down on you like this.
  • But, you know, something had to happen. I’m sorry--sorry to the bottom
  • of my heart that things have come to this between us. But indeed, I’m
  • taken by surprise. I don’t know where I am--I don’t know how we got
  • here. Things took me by surprise. I found myself alone with her one day.
  • I kissed her. I went on. It seemed stupid to go back. And besides--why
  • should I have gone back? Why should I? From first to last, I’ve hardly
  • thought of it as touching you.... Damn!”
  • She scrutinised my face, and pulled at the ball-fringe of the little
  • table beside her.
  • “To think of it,” she said. “I don’t believe I can ever touch you
  • again.”
  • We kept a long silence. I was only beginning to realise in the most
  • superficial way the immense catastrophe that had happened between us.
  • Enormous issues had rushed upon us. I felt unprepared and altogether
  • inadequate. I was unreasonably angry. There came a rush of stupid
  • expressions to my mind that my rising sense of the supreme importance
  • of the moment saved me from saying. The gap of silence widened until
  • it threatened to become the vast memorable margin of some one among a
  • thousand trivial possibilities of speech that would vex our relations
  • for ever.
  • Our little general servant tapped at the door--Marion always liked the
  • servant to tap--and appeared.
  • “Tea, M’m,” she said--and vanished, leaving the door open.
  • “I will go upstairs,” said I, and stopped. “I will go upstairs” I
  • repeated, “and put my bag in the spare room.”
  • We remained motionless and silent for a few seconds.
  • “Mother is having tea with us to-day,” Marion remarked at last, and
  • dropped the worried end of ball-fringe and stood up slowly....
  • And so, with this immense discussion of our changed relations hanging
  • over us, we presently had tea with the unsuspecting Mrs. Ramboat and
  • the spaniel. Mrs. Ramboat was too well trained in her position to remark
  • upon our somber preoccupation. She kept a thin trickle of talk going,
  • and told us, I remember, that Mr. Ramboat was “troubled” about his
  • cannas.
  • “They don’t come up and they won’t come up. He’s been round and had an
  • explanation with the man who sold him the bulbs--and he’s very heated
  • and upset.”
  • The spaniel was a great bore, begging and doing small tricks first at
  • one and then at the other of us. Neither of us used his name. You see
  • we had called him Miggles, and made a sort of trio in the baby-talk of
  • Mutney and Miggles and Ming.
  • VIII
  • Then presently we resumed our monstrous, momentous dialogue. I can’t now
  • make out how long that dialogue went on. It spread itself, I know,
  • in heavy fragments over either three days or four. I remember myself
  • grouped with Marion, talking sitting on our bed in her room, talking
  • standing in our dining-room, saving this thing or that. Twice we went
  • for long walks. And we had a long evening alone together, with jaded
  • nerves and hearts that fluctuated between a hard and dreary recognition
  • of facts and, on my part at least, a strange unwonted tenderness;
  • because in some extraordinary way this crisis had destroyed our mutual
  • apathy and made us feel one another again.
  • It was a dialogue that had discrepant parts that fell into lumps of
  • talk that failed to join on to their predecessors, that began again at
  • a different level, higher or lower, that assumed new aspects in the
  • intervals and assimilated new considerations. We discussed the fact that
  • we two were no longer lovers; never before had we faced that. It seems
  • a strange thing to write, but as I look back, I see clearly that those
  • several days were the time when Marion and I were closest together,
  • looked for the first and last time faithfully and steadfastly into each
  • other’s soul. For those days only, there were no pretences, I made no
  • concessions to her nor she to me; we concealed nothing, exaggerated
  • nothing. We had done with pretending. We had it out plainly and soberly
  • with each other. Mood followed mood and got its stark expression.
  • Of course there was quarreling between us, bitter quarreling, and we
  • said things to one another--long pent-up things that bruised and crushed
  • and cut. But over it all in my memory now is an effect of deliberate
  • confrontation, and the figure of Marion stands up, pale, melancholy,
  • tear-stained, injured, implacable and dignified.
  • “You love her?” she asked once, and jerked that doubt into my mind.
  • I struggled with tangled ideas and emotions. “I don’t know what love
  • is. It’s all sorts of things--it’s made of a dozen strands twisted in a
  • thousand ways.”
  • “But you want her? You want her now--when you think of her?”
  • “Yes,” I reflected. “I want her--right enough.”
  • “And me? Where do I come in?”
  • “I suppose you come in here.”
  • “Well, but what are you going to do?”
  • “Do!” I said with the exasperation of the situation growing upon me.
  • “What do you want me to do?”
  • As I look back upon all that time--across a gulf of fifteen active
  • years--I find I see it with an understanding judgment. I see it as if
  • it were the business of some one else--indeed of two other
  • people--intimately known yet judged without passion. I see now that this
  • shock, this sudden immense disillusionment, did in real fact bring out
  • a mind and soul in Marion; that for the first time she emerged
  • from habits, timidities, imitations, phrases and a certain narrow
  • will-impulse, and became a personality.
  • Her ruling motive at first was, I think, an indignant and outraged
  • pride. This situation must end. She asked me categorically to give up
  • Effie, and I, full of fresh and glowing memories, absolutely refused.
  • “It’s too late, Marion,” I said. “It can’t be done like that.”
  • “Then we can’t very well go on living together,” she said. “Can we?”
  • “Very well,” I deliberated “if you must have it so.”
  • “Well, can we?”
  • “Can you stay in this house? I mean--if I go away?”
  • “I don’t know.... I don’t think I could.”
  • “Then--what do you want?”
  • Slowly we worked our way from point to point, until at last the word
  • “divorce” was before us.
  • “If we can’t live together we ought to be free,” said Marion.
  • “I don’t know anything of divorce,” I said--“if you mean that. I don’t
  • know how it is done. I shall have to ask somebody--or look it up....
  • Perhaps, after all, it is the thing to do. We may as well face it.”
  • We began to talk ourselves into a realisation of what our divergent
  • futures might be. I came back on the evening of that day with my
  • questions answered by a solicitor.
  • “We can’t as a matter of fact,” I said, “get divorced as things are.
  • Apparently, so far as the law goes you’ve got to stand this sort of
  • thing. It’s silly but that is the law. However, it’s easy to arrange a
  • divorce. In addition to adultery there must be desertion or cruelty.
  • To establish cruelty I should have to strike you, or something of that
  • sort, before witnesses. That’s impossible--but it’s simple to desert you
  • legally. I have to go away from you; that’s all. I can go on sending you
  • money--and you bring a suit, what is it?--for Restitution of Conjugal
  • Rights. The Court orders me to return. I disobey. Then you can go on to
  • divorce me. You get a Decree Nisi, and once more the Court tries to make
  • me come back. If we don’t make it up within six months and if you don’t
  • behave scandalously the Decree is made absolute. That’s the end of the
  • fuss. That’s how one gets unmarried. It’s easier, you see, to marry than
  • unmarry.”
  • “And then--how do I live? What becomes of me?”
  • “You’ll have an income. They call it alimony. From a third to a half of
  • my present income--more if you like--I don’t mind--three hundred a year,
  • say. You’ve got your old people to keep and you’ll need all that.”
  • “And then--then you’ll be free?”
  • “Both of us.”
  • “And all this life you’ve hated”
  • I looked up at her wrung and bitter face. “I haven’t hated it,” I lied,
  • my voice near breaking with the pain of it all. “Have you?”
  • IX
  • The perplexing thing about life is the irresolvable complexity of
  • reality, of things and relations alike. Nothing is simple. Every wrong
  • done has a certain justice in it, and every good deed has dregs of evil.
  • As for us, young still, and still without self-knowledge, resounded
  • a hundred discordant notes in the harsh angle of that shock. We were
  • furiously angry with each other, tender with each other, callously
  • selfish, generously self-sacrificing.
  • I remember Marion saying innumerable detached things that didn’t hang
  • together one with another, that contradicted one another, that were,
  • nevertheless, all in their places profoundly true and sincere. I see
  • them now as so many vain experiments in her effort to apprehend the
  • crumpled confusions of our complex moral landslide. Some I found
  • irritating beyond measure. I answered her--sometimes quite abominably.
  • “Of course,” she would say again and again, “my life has been a
  • failure.”
  • “I’ve besieged you for three years,” I would retort “asking it not to
  • be. You’ve done as you pleased. If I’ve turned away at last--”
  • Or again she would revive all the stresses before our marriage.
  • “How you must hate me! I made you wait. Well now--I suppose you have
  • your revenge.”
  • “REVENGE!” I echoed.
  • Then she would try over the aspects of our new separated lives.
  • “I ought to earn my own living,” she would insist.
  • “I want to be quite independent. I’ve always hated London. Perhaps I
  • shall try a poultry farm and bees. You won’t mind at first my being a
  • burden. Afterwards--”
  • “We’ve settled all that,” I said.
  • “I suppose you will hate me anyhow...”
  • There were times when she seemed to regard our separation with
  • absolute complacency, when she would plan all sorts of freedoms and
  • characteristic interests.
  • “I shall go out a lot with Smithie,” she said.
  • And once she said an ugly thing that I did indeed hate her for that I
  • cannot even now quite forgive her.
  • “Your aunt will rejoice at all this. She never cared for me...”
  • Into my memory of these pains and stresses comes the figure of Smithie,
  • full-charged with emotion, so breathless in the presence of the horrid
  • villain of the piece that she could make no articulate sounds. She
  • had long tearful confidences with Marion, I know, sympathetic close
  • clingings. There were moments when only absolute speechlessness
  • prevented her giving me a stupendous “talking-to”--I could see it in
  • her eye. The wrong things she would have said! And I recall, too,
  • Mrs. Ramboat’s slow awakening to something in, the air, the growing
  • expression of solicitude in her eye, only her well-trained fear of
  • Marion keeping her from speech.
  • And at last through all this welter, like a thing fated and altogether
  • beyond our control, parting came to Marion and me.
  • I hardened my heart, or I could not have gone. For at the last it came
  • to Marion that she was parting from me for ever. That overbore all other
  • things, had turned our last hour to anguish. She forgot for a time
  • the prospect of moving into a new house, she forgot the outrage on her
  • proprietorship and pride. For the first time in her life she really
  • showed strong emotions in regard to me, for the first time, perhaps,
  • they really came to her. She began to weep slow, reluctant tears. I came
  • into her room, and found her asprawl on the bed, weeping.
  • “I didn’t know,” she cried. “Oh! I didn’t understand!”
  • “I’ve been a fool. All my life is a wreck!
  • “I shall be alone!...MUTNEY! Mutney, don’t leave me! Oh! Mutney! I
  • didn’t understand.”
  • I had to harden my heart indeed, for it seemed to me at moments in those
  • last hours together that at last, too late, the longed-for thing had
  • happened and Marion had come alive. A new-born hunger for me lit her
  • eyes.
  • “Don’t leave me!” she said, “don’t leave me!” She clung to me; she
  • kissed me with tear-salt lips.
  • I was promised now and pledged, and I hardened my heart against this
  • impossible dawn. Yet it seems to me that there were moments when it
  • needed but a cry, but one word to have united us again for all our
  • lives. Could we have united again? Would that passage have enlightened
  • us for ever or should we have fallen back in a week or so into the old
  • estrangement, the old temperamental opposition?
  • Of that there is now no telling. Our own resolve carried us on our
  • predestined way. We behaved more and more like separating lovers,
  • parting inexorably, but all the preparations we had set going worked on
  • like a machine, and we made no attempt to stop them. My trunks and boxes
  • went to the station. I packed my bag with Marion standing before me. We
  • were like children who had hurt each other horribly in sheer stupidity,
  • who didn’t know now how to remedy it. We belonged to each other
  • immensely--immensely. The cab came to the little iron gate.
  • “Good-bye!” I said.
  • “Good-bye.”
  • For a moment we held one another in each other’s arms and
  • kissed--incredibly without malice. We heard our little servant in the
  • passage going to open the door. For the last time we pressed ourselves
  • to one another. We were not lovers nor enemies, but two human souls in a
  • frank community of pain. I tore myself from her.
  • “Go away,” I said to the servant, seeing that Marion had followed me
  • down.
  • I felt her standing behind me as I spoke to the cab man.
  • I got into the cab, resolutely not looking back, and then as it started
  • jumped up, craned out and looked at the door.
  • It was wide open, but she had disappeared....
  • I wonder--I suppose she ran upstairs.
  • X
  • So I parted from Marion at an extremity of perturbation and regret, and
  • went, as I had promised and arranged, to Effie, who was waiting for me
  • in apartments near Orpington. I remember her upon the station platform,
  • a bright, flitting figure looking along the train for me, and our walk
  • over the fields in the twilight. I had expected an immense sense of
  • relief where at last the stresses of separation were over, but now
  • I found I was beyond measure wretched and perplexed, full of the
  • profoundest persuasion of irreparable error. The dusk and somber Marion
  • were so alike, her sorrow seemed to be all about me. I had to hold
  • myself to my own plans, to remember that I must keep faith with Effie,
  • with Effie who had made no terms, exacted no guarantees, but flung
  • herself into my hands.
  • We went across the evening fields in silence, towards a sky of deepening
  • gold and purple, and Effie was close beside me always, very close,
  • glancing up ever and again at my face.
  • Certainly she knew I grieved for Marion, that ours was now no joyful
  • reunion. But she showed no resentment and no jealousy. Extraordinarily,
  • she did not compete against Marion. Never once in all our time together
  • did she say an adverse word of Marion....
  • She set herself presently to dispel the shadow that brooded over me with
  • the same instinctive skill that some women will show with the trouble
  • of a child. She made herself my glad and pretty slave and handmaid; she
  • forced me at last to rejoice in her. Yet at the back of it all Marion
  • remained, stupid and tearful and infinitely distressful, so that I was
  • almost intolerably unhappy for her--for her and the dead body of my
  • married love.
  • It is all, as I tell it now, unaccountable to me. I go back into these
  • remote parts, these rarely visited uplands and lonely tares of memory,
  • and it seems to me still a strange country. I had thought I might be
  • going to some sensuous paradise with Effie, but desire which fills the
  • universe before its satisfaction, vanishes utterly like the going of
  • daylight--with achievement. All the facts and forms of life remain
  • darkling and cold. It was an upland of melancholy questionings, a region
  • from which I saw all the world at new angles and in new aspects; I had
  • outflanked passion and romance.
  • I had come into a condition of vast perplexities. For the first time in
  • my life, at least so it seems to me now in this retrospect, I looked at
  • my existence as a whole.
  • Since this was nothing, what was I doing? What was I for?
  • I was going to and fro about Tono-Bungay--the business I had taken up
  • to secure Marion and which held me now in spite of our intimate
  • separation--and snatching odd week-ends and nights for Orpington, and
  • all the while I struggled with these obstinate interrogations. I used
  • to fall into musing in the trains, I became even a little inaccurate and
  • forgetful about business things. I have the clearest memory of myself
  • sitting thoughtful in the evening sunlight on a grassy hillside that
  • looked toward Seven Oaks and commanded a wide sweep of country, and that
  • I was thinking out my destiny. I could almost write my thought down now,
  • I believe, as they came to me that afternoon. Effie, restless little
  • cockney that she was, rustled and struggled in a hedgerow below,
  • gathering flowers, discovering flowers she had never seen before. I
  • had. I remember, a letter from Marion in my pocket. I had even made some
  • tentatives for return, for a reconciliation; Heaven knows now how I
  • had put it! but her cold, ill-written letter repelled me. I perceived
  • I could never face that old inconclusive dullness of life again, that
  • stagnant disappointment. That, anyhow, wasn’t possible. But what was
  • possible? I could see no way of honour or fine living before me at all.
  • “What am I to do with life?” that was the question that besieged me.
  • I wondered if all the world was even as I, urged to this by one motive
  • and to that by another, creatures of chance and impulse and unmeaning
  • traditions. Had I indeed to abide by what I had said and done and
  • chosen? Was there nothing for me in honour but to provide for Effie, go
  • back penitent to Marion and keep to my trade in rubbish--or find some
  • fresh one--and so work out the residue of my days? I didn’t accept that
  • for a moment. But what else was I to do? I wondered if my case was
  • the case of many men, whether in former ages, too, men had been so
  • guideless, so uncharted, so haphazard in their journey into life. In the
  • Middle Ages, in the old Catholic days, one went to a priest, and he said
  • with all the finality of natural law, this you are and this you must do.
  • I wondered whether even in the Middle Ages I should have accepted that
  • ruling without question.
  • I remember too very distinctly how Effie came and sat beside me on a
  • little box: that was before the casement window of our room.
  • “Gloomkins,” said she.
  • I smiled and remained head on hand, looking out of the window forgetful
  • of her.
  • “Did you love your wife so well?” she whispered softly.
  • “Oh!” I cried, recalled again; “I don’t know. I don’t understand these
  • things. Life is a thing that hurts, my dear! It hurts without logic or
  • reason. I’ve blundered! I didn’t understand. Anyhow--there is no need to
  • go hurting you, is there?”
  • And I turned about and drew her to me, and kissed her ear....
  • Yes, I had a very bad time--I still recall. I suffered, I suppose, from
  • a sort of ennui of the imagination. I found myself without an object to
  • hold my will together. I sought. I read restlessly and discursively.
  • I tried Ewart and got no help from him. As I regard it all now in this
  • retrospect, it seems to me as if in those days of disgust and abandoned
  • aims I discovered myself for the first time. Before that I had seen only
  • the world and things in it, had sought them self-forgetful of all but
  • my impulse. Now I found myself GROUPED with a system of appetites and
  • satisfactions, with much work to do--and no desire, it seemed, left in
  • me.
  • There were moments when I thought of suicide. At times my life appeared
  • before me in bleak, relentless light, a series of ignorances, crude
  • blunderings, degradation and cruelty. I had what the old theologians
  • call a “conviction of sin.” I sought salvation--not perhaps in the
  • formula a Methodist preacher would recognise but salvation nevertheless.
  • Men find their salvation nowadays in many ways. Names and forms don’t, I
  • think, matter very much; the real need is something that we can hold
  • and that holds one. I have known a man find that determining factor in
  • a dry-plate factory, and another in writing a history of the Manor. So
  • long as it holds one, it does not matter. Many men and women nowadays
  • take up some concrete aspect of Socialism or social reform. But
  • Socialism for me has always been a little bit too human, too set about
  • with personalities and foolishness. It isn’t my line. I don’t like
  • things so human. I don’t think I’m blind to the fun, the surprises, the
  • jolly little coarsenesses and insufficiency of life, to the “humour of
  • it,” as people say, and to adventure, but that isn’t the root of the
  • matter with me. There’s no humour in my blood. I’m in earnest in warp
  • and woof. I stumble and flounder, but I know that over all these merry
  • immediate things, there are other things that are great and serene, very
  • high, beautiful things--the reality. I haven’t got it, but it’s there
  • nevertheless. I’m a spiritual guttersnipe in love with unimaginable
  • goddesses. I’ve never seen the goddesses nor ever shall--but it takes
  • all the fun out of the mud--and at times I fear it takes all the
  • kindliness, too.
  • But I’m talking of things I can’t expect the reader to understand,
  • because I don’t half understand them myself. There is something links
  • things for me, a sunset or so, a mood or so, the high air, something
  • there was in Marion’s form and colour, something I find and lose in
  • Mantegna’s pictures, something in the lines of these boats I make. (You
  • should see X2, my last and best!)
  • I can’t explain myself, I perceive. Perhaps it all comes to this, that
  • I am a hard and morally limited cad with a mind beyond my merits.
  • Naturally I resist that as a complete solution. Anyhow, I had a sense of
  • inexorable need, of distress and insufficiency that was unendurable, and
  • for a time this aeronautical engineering allayed it....
  • In the end of this particular crisis of which I tell so badly, I
  • idealised Science. I decided that in power and knowledge lay the
  • salvation of my life, the secret that would fill my need; that to these
  • things I would give myself.
  • I emerged at last like a man who has been diving in darkness, clutching
  • at a new resolve for which he had groped desperately and long.
  • I came into the inner office suddenly one day--it must have been just
  • before the time of Marion’s suit for restitution--and sat down before my
  • uncle.
  • “Look here,” I said, “I’m sick of this.”
  • “HulLO!” he answered, and put some papers aside.
  • “What’s up, George?”
  • “Things are wrong.”
  • “As how?”
  • “My life,” I said, “it’s a mess, an infinite mess.”
  • “She’s been a stupid girl, George,” he said; “I partly understand. But
  • you’re quit of her now, practically, and there’s just as good fish in
  • the sea--”
  • “Oh! it’s not that!” I cried. “That’s only the part that shows. I’m
  • sick--I’m sick of all this damned rascality.”
  • “Eh? Eh?” said my uncle. “WHAT--rascality?”
  • “Oh, YOU know. I want some STUFF, man. I want something to hold on to. I
  • shall go amok if I don’t get it. I’m a different sort of beast from
  • you. You float in all this bunkum. _I_ feel like a man floundering in a
  • universe of soapsuds, up and downs, east and west. I can’t stand it. I
  • must get my foot on something solid or--I don’t know what.”
  • I laughed at the consternation in his face.
  • “I mean it,” I said. “I’ve been thinking it over. I’ve made up my mind.
  • It’s no good arguing. I shall go in for work--real work. No! this isn’t
  • work; it’s only laborious cheating. But I’ve got an idea! It’s an old
  • idea--I thought of years ago, but it came back to me. Look here! Why
  • should I fence about with you? I believe the time has come for flying to
  • be possible. Real flying!”
  • “Flying!”
  • I stuck to that, and it helped me through the worst time in my life.
  • My uncle, after some half-hearted resistance and a talk with my aunt,
  • behaved like the father of a spoilt son. He fixed up an arrangement that
  • gave me capital to play with, released me from too constant a solicitude
  • for the newer business developments--this was in what I may call the
  • later Moggs period of our enterprises--and I went to work at once with
  • grim intensity.
  • But I will tell of my soaring and flying machines in the proper place.
  • I’ve been leaving the story of my uncle altogether too long. I
  • wanted merely to tell how it was I took to this work. I took to these
  • experiments after I had sought something that Marion in some indefinable
  • way had seemed to promise. I toiled and forgot myself for a time, and
  • did many things. Science too has been something of an irresponsive
  • mistress since, though I’ve served her better than I served Marion. But
  • at the time Science, with her order, her inhuman distance, yet steely
  • certainties, saved me from despair.
  • Well, I have still to fly; but incidentally I have invented the lightest
  • engines in the world.
  • I am trying to tell of all the things that happened to me. It’s hard
  • enough simply to get it put down in the remotest degree right. But this
  • is a novel, not a treatise. Don’t imagine that I am coming presently
  • to any sort of solution of my difficulties. Here among my drawings and
  • hammerings NOW, I still question unanswering problems. All my life has
  • been at bottom, SEEKING, disbelieving always, dissatisfied always with
  • the thing seen and the thing believed, seeking something in toil, in
  • force, in danger, something whose name and nature I do not clearly
  • understand, something beautiful, worshipful, enduring, mine profoundly
  • and fundamentally, and the utter redemption of myself; I don’t know--all
  • I can tell is that it is something I have ever failed to find.
  • XI
  • But before I finish this chapter and book altogether and go on with
  • the great adventure of my uncle’s career. I may perhaps tell what else
  • remains to tell of Marion and Effie, and then for a time set my private
  • life behind me.
  • For a time Marion and I corresponded with some regularity, writing
  • friendly but rather uninforming letters about small business things. The
  • clumsy process of divorce completed itself.
  • She left the house at Ealing and went into the country with her aunt and
  • parents, taking a small farm near Lewes in Sussex. She put up glass, she
  • put in heat for her father, happy man! and spoke of figs and peaches.
  • The thing seemed to promise well throughout a spring and summer, but the
  • Sussex winter after London was too much for the Ramboats. They got very
  • muddy and dull; Mr. Ramboat killed a cow by improper feeding, and that
  • disheartened them all. A twelvemonth saw the enterprise in difficulties.
  • I had to help her out of this, and then they returned to London and she
  • went into partnership with Smithie at Streatham, and ran a business that
  • was intimated on the firm’s stationery as “Robes.” The parents and aunt
  • were stowed away in a cottage somewhere. After that the letters became
  • infrequent. But in one I remember a postscript that had a little stab of
  • our old intimacy: “Poor old Miggles is dead.”
  • Nearly eight years slipped by. I grew up. I grew in experience, in
  • capacity, until I was fully a man, but with many new interests, living
  • on a larger scale in a wider world than I could have dreamt of in my
  • Marion days. Her letters become rare and insignificant. At last came a
  • gap of silence that made me curious. For eighteen months or more I had
  • nothing from Marion save her quarterly receipts through the bank. Then I
  • damned at Smithie, and wrote a card to Marion.
  • “Dear Marion,” I said, “how goes it?”
  • She astonished me tremendously by telling me she had married again--“a
  • Mr. Wachorn, a leading agent in the paper-pattern trade.” But she still
  • wrote on the Ponderevo and Smith (Robes) notepaper, from the Ponderevo
  • and Smith address.
  • And that, except for a little difference of opinion about the
  • continuance of alimony which gave me some passages of anger, and the use
  • of my name by the firm, which also annoyed me, is the end of Marion’s
  • history for me, and she vanishes out of this story. I do not know where
  • she is or what she is doing. I do not know whether she is alive or dead.
  • It seems to me utterly grotesque that two people who have stood so close
  • to one another as she and I should be so separated, but so it is between
  • us.
  • Effie, too, I have parted from, though I still see her at times. Between
  • us there was never any intention of marriage nor intimacy of soul. She
  • had a sudden, fierce, hot-blooded passion for me and I for her, but
  • I was not her first lover nor her last. She was in another world from
  • Marion. She had a queer, delightful nature; I’ve no memory of
  • ever seeing her sullen or malicious. She was--indeed she was
  • magnificently--eupeptic. That, I think, was the central secret of her
  • agreeableness, and, moreover, that she was infinitely kind-hearted. I
  • helped her at last into an opening she coveted, and she amazed me by a
  • sudden display of business capacity. She has now a typewriting bureau
  • in Riffle’s Inn, and she runs it with a brisk vigour and considerable
  • success, albeit a certain plumpness has overtaken her. And she still
  • loves her kind. She married a year or so ago a boy half her age--a
  • wretch of a poet, a wretched poet, and given to drugs, a thing with lank
  • fair hair always getting into his blue eyes, and limp legs. She did it,
  • she said, because he needed nursing....
  • But enough of this disaster of my marriage and of my early love affairs;
  • I have told all that is needed for my picture to explain how I came to
  • take up aeroplane experiments and engineering science; let me get back
  • to my essential story, to Tono-Bungay and my uncle’s promotions and to
  • the vision of the world these things have given me.
  • BOOK THE THIRD
  • THE GREAT DAYS OF TONO-BUNGAY
  • CHAPTER THE FIRST
  • THE HARDINGHAM HOTEL, AND HOW WE BECAME BIG PEOPLE
  • I
  • But now that I resume the main line of my story it may be well to
  • describe the personal appearance of my uncle as I remember him during
  • those magnificent years that followed his passage from trade to finance.
  • The little man plumped up very considerably during the creation of the
  • Tono-Bungay property, but with the increasing excitements that followed
  • that first flotation came dyspepsia and a certain flabbiness and falling
  • away. His abdomen--if the reader will pardon my taking his features
  • in the order of their value--had at first a nice full roundness, but
  • afterwards it lost tone without, however, losing size. He always went as
  • though he was proud of it and would make as much of it as possible. To
  • the last his movements remained quick and sudden, his short firm legs,
  • as he walked, seemed to twinkle rather than display the scissors-stride
  • of common humanity, and he never seemed to have knees, but instead, a
  • dispersed flexibility of limb.
  • There was, I seem to remember, a secular intensification of his
  • features; his nose developed character, became aggressive, stuck out at
  • the world more and more; the obliquity of his mouth, I think, increased.
  • From the face that returns to my memory projects a long cigar that is
  • sometimes cocked jauntily up from the higher corner, that sometimes
  • droops from the lower;--it was as eloquent as a dog’s tail, and he
  • removed it only for the more emphatic modes of speech. He assumed a
  • broad black ribbon for his glasses, and wore them more and more askew as
  • time went on. His hair seemed to stiffen with success, but towards the
  • climax it thinned greatly over the crown, and he brushed it hard back
  • over his ears where, however, it stuck out fiercely. It always stuck out
  • fiercely over his forehead, up and forward.
  • He adopted an urban style of dressing with the onset of Tono-Bungay and
  • rarely abandoned it. He preferred silk hats with ample rich brims, often
  • a trifle large for him by modern ideas, and he wore them at various
  • angles to his axis; his taste in trouserings was towards fairly emphatic
  • stripes and his trouser cut was neat; he liked his frock-coat long and
  • full, although that seemed to shorten him. He displayed a number of
  • valuable rings, and I remember one upon his left little finger with a
  • large red stone bearing Gnostic symbols. “Clever chaps, those Gnostics,
  • George,” he told me. “Means a lot. Lucky!” He never had any but a black
  • mohair watch-chair. In the country he affected grey and a large
  • grey cloth top-hat, except when motoring; then he would have a brown
  • deer-stalker cap and a fur suit of esquimaux cut with a sort of boot-end
  • to the trousers. Of an evening he would wear white waistcoats and plain
  • gold studs. He hated diamonds. “Flashy,” he said they were. “Might as
  • well wear--an income tax-receipt. All very well for Park Lane. Unsold
  • stock. Not my style. Sober financier, George.”
  • So much for his visible presence. For a time it was very familiar to
  • the world, for at the crest of the boom he allowed quite a number
  • of photographs and at least one pencil sketch to be published in the
  • sixpenny papers.
  • His voice declined during those years from his early tenor to a flat
  • rich quality of sound that my knowledge of music is inadequate to
  • describe. His Zzz-ing inrush of air became less frequent as he ripened,
  • but returned in moments of excitement. Throughout his career, in spite
  • of his increasing and at last astounding opulence, his more intimate
  • habits remained as simple as they had been at Wimblehurst. He would
  • never avail himself of the services of a valet; at the very climax of
  • his greatness his trousers were folded by a housemaid and his shoulders
  • brushed as he left his house or hotel. He became wary about breakfast
  • as life advanced, and at one time talked much of Dr. Haig and uric acid.
  • But for other meals he remained reasonably omnivorous. He was something
  • of a gastronome, and would eat anything he particularly liked in an
  • audible manner, and perspire upon his forehead. He was a studiously
  • moderate drinker--except when the spirit of some public banquet or some
  • great occasion caught him and bore him beyond his wariness--there
  • he would, as it were, drink inadvertently and become flushed and
  • talkative--about everything but his business projects.
  • To make the portrait complete one wants to convey an effect of sudden,
  • quick bursts of movement like the jumps of a Chinese-cracker to indicate
  • that his pose whatever it is, has been preceded and will be followed
  • by a rush. If I were painting him, I should certainly give him for
  • a background that distressed, uneasy sky that was popular in the
  • eighteenth century, and at a convenient distance a throbbing motor-car,
  • very big and contemporary, a secretary hurrying with papers, and an
  • alert chauffeur.
  • Such was the figure that created and directed the great property of
  • Tono-Bungay, and from the successful reconstruction of that company
  • passed on to a slow crescendo of magnificent creations and promotions
  • until the whole world of investors marveled. I have already I think,
  • mentioned how, long before we offered Tono Bungay to the public, we took
  • over the English agency of certain American specialties. To this was
  • presently added our exploitation of Moggs’ Domestic Soap, and so he took
  • up the Domestic Convenience Campaign that, coupled with his equatorial
  • rotundity and a certain resolute convexity in his bearings won my uncle
  • his Napoleonic title.
  • II
  • It illustrates the romantic element in modern commerce that my uncle
  • met young Moggs at a city dinner--I think it was the Bottle-makers’
  • Company--when both were some way advanced beyond the initial sobriety
  • of the occasion. This was the grandson of the original Moggs, and a very
  • typical instance of an educated, cultivated, degenerate plutocrat. His
  • people had taken him about in his youth as the Ruskins took their John
  • and fostered a passion for history in him, and the actual management of
  • the Moggs’ industry had devolved upon a cousin and a junior partner.
  • Mr. Moggs, being of a studious and refined disposition, had just
  • decided--after a careful search for a congenial subject in which he
  • would not be constantly reminded of soap--to devote himself to the
  • History of the Thebaid, when this cousin died suddenly and precipitated
  • responsibilities upon him. In the frankness of conviviality, Moggs
  • bewailed the uncongenial task thus thrust into his hands, and my uncle
  • offered to lighten his burden by a partnership then and there. They even
  • got to terms--extremely muzzy terms, but terms nevertheless.
  • Each gentleman wrote the name and address of the other on his cuff, and
  • they separated in a mood of brotherly carelessness, and next morning
  • neither seems to have thought to rescue his shirt from the wash until
  • it was too late. My uncle made a painful struggle--it was one of my
  • business mornings--to recall name and particulars.
  • “He was an aquarium-faced, long, blond sort of chap, George, with
  • glasses and a genteel accent,” he said.
  • I was puzzled. “Aquarium-faced?”
  • “You know how they look at you. His stuff was soap, I’m pretty
  • nearly certain. And he had a name--And the thing was the straightest
  • Bit-of-All-right you ever. I was clear enough to spot that...”
  • We went out at last with knitted brows, and wandered up into Finsbury
  • seeking a good, well-stocked looking grocer. We called first on a
  • chemist for a pick-me-up for my uncle, and then we found the shop we
  • needed.
  • “I want,” said my uncle, “half a pound of every sort of soap you got.
  • Yes, I want to take them now. Wait a moment, George.... Now what sort of
  • soap d’you call THAT?”
  • At the third repetition of that question the young man said, “Moggs’
  • Domestic.”
  • “Right,” said my uncle. “You needn’t guess again. Come along, George,
  • let’s go to a telephone and get on to Moggs. Oh--the order? Certainly. I
  • confirm it. Send it all--send it all to the Bishop of London; he’ll have
  • some good use for it--(First-rate man, George, he is--charities and all
  • that)--and put it down to me, here’s a card--Ponderevo--Tono-Bungay.”
  • Then we went on to Moggs and found him in a camel-hair dressing-jacket
  • in a luxurious bed, drinking China tea, and got the shape of everything
  • but the figures fixed by lunch time.
  • Young Moggs enlarged my mind considerably; he was a sort of thing
  • I hadn’t met before; he seemed quite clean and well-informed and he
  • assured me to never read newspapers nor used soap in any form at all,
  • “Delicate skin,” he said.
  • “No objection to our advertising you wide and free?” said my uncle.
  • “I draw the line at railway stations,” said Moggs, “south-coast cliffs,
  • theatre programmes, books by me and poetry generally--scenery--oh!--and
  • the Mercure de France.”
  • “We’ll get along,” said my uncle.
  • “So long as you don’t annoy me,” said Moggs, lighting a cigarette, “you
  • can make me as rich as you like.”
  • We certainly made him no poorer. His was the first firm that was
  • advertised by a circumstantial history; we even got to illustrated
  • magazine articles telling of the quaint past of Moggs. We concocted
  • Moggsiana. Trusting to our partner’s preoccupation with the uncommercial
  • aspects of life, we gave graceful history--of Moggs the First, Moggs the
  • Second, Moggs the Third, and Moggs the Fourth. You must, unless you are
  • very young, remember some of them and our admirable block of a Georgian
  • shop window. My uncle brought early nineteenth-century memoirs, soaked
  • himself in the style, and devised stories about old Moggs the First and
  • the Duke of Wellington, George the Third and the soap dealer (“almost
  • certainly old Moggs”). Very soon we had added to the original Moggs’
  • Primrose several varieties of scented and superfatted, a “special
  • nurseries used in the household of the Duke of Kent and for the old
  • Queen in Infancy,” a plate powder, “the Paragon,” and a knife powder.
  • We roped in a good little second-rate black-lead firm, and carried their
  • origins back into the mists of antiquity. It was my uncle’s own unaided
  • idea that we should associate that commodity with the Black Prince. He
  • became industriously curious about the past of black-lead. I remember
  • his button-holing the president of the Pepys Society.
  • “I say, is there any black-lead in Pepys? You know--black-lead--for
  • grates! OR DOES HE PASS IT OVER AS A MATTER OF COURSE?”
  • He became in those days the terror of eminent historians. “Don’t want
  • your drum and trumpet history--no fear,” he used to say. “Don’t want
  • to know who was who’s mistress, and why so-and-so devastated such a
  • province; that’s bound to be all lies and upsy-down anyhow. Not my
  • affair. Nobody’s affair now. Chaps who did it didn’t clearly know....
  • What I want to know is, in the Middle Ages, did they do anything for
  • Housemaid’s Knee? What did they put in their hot baths after jousting,
  • and was the Black Prince--you know the Black Prince--was he enameled
  • or painted, or what? I think myself, black-leaded--very likely--like
  • pipe-clay--but DID they use blacking so early?”
  • So it came about that in designing and writing those Moggs’ Soap
  • Advertisements, that wrought a revolution in that department of
  • literature, my uncle was brought to realise not only the lost history,
  • but also the enormous field for invention and enterprise that lurked
  • among the little articles, the dustpans and mincers, the mousetraps
  • and carpet-sweepers that fringe the shops of the oilman and domestic
  • ironmonger. He was recalled to one of the dreams of his youth, to his
  • conception of the Ponderevo Patent Flat that had been in his mind so
  • early as the days before I went to serve him at Wimblehurst. “The Home,
  • George,” he said, “wants straightening up. Silly muddle! Things that get
  • in the way. Got to organise it.”
  • For a time he displayed something like the zeal of a genuine social
  • reformer in relation to these matters.
  • “We’ve got to bring the Home Up to Date? That’s my idee, George. We got
  • to make a civilised domestic machine out of these relics of barbarism.
  • I’m going to hunt up inventors, make a corner in d’mestic ideas.
  • Everything. Balls of string that won’t dissolve into a tangle, and gum
  • that won’t dry into horn. See? Then after conveniences--beauty. Beauty,
  • George! All these few things ought to be made fit to look at; it’s your
  • aunt’s idea, that. Beautiful jam-pots! Get one of those new art chaps
  • to design all the things they make ugly now. Patent carpet-sweepers by
  • these greenwood chaps, housemaid’s boxes it’ll be a pleasure to fall
  • over--rich coloured house-flannels. Zzzz. Pails, f’rinstance. Hang ‘em
  • up on the walls like warming-pans. All the polishes and things in such
  • tins--you’ll want to cuddle ‘em, George! See the notion? ‘Sted of all
  • the silly ugly things we got.”...
  • We had some magnificent visions; they so affected me that when I passed
  • ironmongers and oil-shops they seemed to me as full of promise as
  • trees in late winter, flushed with the effort to burst into leaf and
  • flower.... And really we did do much towards that very brightness these
  • shops display. They were dingy things in the eighties compared to what
  • our efforts have made them now, grey quiet displays.
  • Well, I don’t intend to write down here the tortuous financial history
  • of Moggs’ Limited, which was our first development of Moggs and Sons;
  • nor will I tell very much of how from that we spread ourselves with
  • a larger and larger conception throughout the chandlery and minor
  • ironmongery, how we became agents for this little commodity, partners in
  • that, got a tentacle round the neck of a specialised manufacturer or so,
  • secured a pull upon this or that supply of raw material, and so prepared
  • the way for our second flotation, Domestic Utilities; “Do it,”
  • they reordered it in the city. And then came the reconstruction of
  • Tono-Bungay, and then “Household services” and the Boom!
  • That sort of development is not to be told in detail in a novel. I have,
  • indeed, told much of it elsewhere. It is to be found set out at
  • length, painfully at length, in my uncle’s examination and mine in
  • the bankruptcy proceedings, and in my own various statements after his
  • death. Some people know everything in that story, some know it all
  • too well, most do not want the details, it is the story of a man of
  • imagination among figures, and unless you are prepared to collate
  • columns of pounds, shillings and pence, compare dates and check
  • additions, you will find it very unmeaning and perplexing. And after
  • all, you wouldn’t find the early figures so much wrong as STRAINED. In
  • the matter of Moggs and Do Ut, as in the first Tono-Bungay promotion
  • and in its reconstruction, we left the court by city standards without
  • a stain on our characters. The great amalgamation of Household Services
  • was my uncle’s first really big-scale enterprise and his first display
  • of bolder methods: for this we bought back Do Ut, Moggs (going strong
  • with a seven per cent. dividend) and acquired Skinnerton’s polishes, the
  • Riffleshaw properties and the Runcorn’s mincer and coffee-mill business.
  • To that Amalgamation I was really not a party; I left it to my uncle
  • because I was then beginning to get keen upon the soaring experiments
  • I had taken on from the results then to hand of Lilienthal, Pilcher and
  • the Wright brothers. I was developing a glider into a flyer. I meant
  • to apply power to this glider as soon as I could work out one or two
  • residual problems affecting the longitudinal stability. I knew that I
  • had a sufficiently light motor in my own modification of Bridger’s
  • light turbine, but I knew too that until I had cured my aeroplane of a
  • tendency demanding constant alertness from me, a tendency to jerk up its
  • nose at unexpected moments and slide back upon me, the application of an
  • engine would be little short of suicide.
  • But that I will tell about later. The point I was coming to was that I
  • did not realise until after the crash how recklessly my uncle had kept
  • his promise of paying a dividend of over eight per cent. on the ordinary
  • shares of that hugely over-capitalised enterprise, Household Services.
  • I drifted out of business affairs into my research much more than either
  • I or my uncle had contemplated. Finance was much less to my taste
  • than the organisation of the Tono-Bungay factory. In the new field of
  • enterprise there was a great deal of bluffing and gambling, of taking
  • chances and concealing material facts--and these are hateful things to
  • the scientific type of mind. It wasn’t fear I felt so much as an uneasy
  • inaccuracy. I didn’t realise dangers, I simply disliked the sloppy,
  • relaxing quality of this new sort of work. I was at last constantly
  • making excuses not to come up to him in London. The latter part of his
  • business career recedes therefore beyond the circle of any particular
  • life. I lived more or less with him; I talked, I advised, I helped him
  • at times to fight his Sunday crowd at Crest Hill, but I did not follow
  • nor guide him. From the Do Ut time onward he rushed up the financial
  • world like a bubble in water and left me like some busy water-thing down
  • below in the deeps.
  • Anyhow, he was an immense success. The public was, I think, particularly
  • attracted by the homely familiarity of his field of work--you never lost
  • sight of your investment they felt, with the name on the house-flannel
  • and shaving-strop--and its allegiance was secured by the Egyptian
  • solidity of his apparent results. Tono-Bungay, after its reconstruction,
  • paid thirteen, Moggs seven, Domestic Utilities had been a safe-looking
  • nine; here was Household Services with eight; on such a showing he had
  • merely to buy and sell Roeburn’s Antiseptic fluid, Razor soaks and Bath
  • crystals in three weeks to clear twenty thousand pounds.
  • I do think that as a matter of fact Roeburn’s was good value at the
  • price at which he gave it to the public, at least until it was strained
  • by ill-conserved advertisement. It was a period of expansion and
  • confidence; much money was seeking investment and “Industrials” were the
  • fashion. Prices were rising all round. There remained little more for
  • my uncle to do therefore, in his climb to the high unstable crest
  • of Financial Greatness but, as he said, to “grasp the cosmic oyster,
  • George, while it gaped,” which, being translated, meant for him to buy
  • respectable businesses confidently and courageously at the vendor’s
  • estimate, add thirty or forty thousand to the price and sell them again.
  • His sole difficulty indeed was the tactful management of the load
  • of shares that each of these transactions left upon his hands. But I
  • thought so little of these later things that I never fully appreciated
  • the peculiar inconveniences of that until it was too late to help him.
  • III
  • When I think of my uncle near the days of his Great Boom and in
  • connection with the actualities of his enterprises, I think of him as
  • I used to see him in the suite of rooms he occupied in the Hardingham
  • Hotel, seated at a great old oak writing-table, smoking, drinking, and
  • incoherently busy; that was his typical financial aspect--our evenings,
  • our mornings, our holidays, our motor-car expeditions, Lady Grove and
  • Crest Hill belong to an altogether different set of memories.
  • These rooms in the Hardingham were a string of apartments along one
  • handsome thick-carpeted corridor. All the doors upon the corridor were
  • locked except the first; and my uncle’s bedroom, breakfast-room and
  • private sanctum were the least accessible and served by an entrance from
  • the adjacent passage, which he also used at times as a means of
  • escape from importunate callers. The most eternal room was a general
  • waiting-room and very business-like in quality; it had one or two uneasy
  • sofas, a number of chairs, a green baize table, and a collection of the
  • very best Moggs and Tone posters: and the plush carpets normal to the
  • Hardingham had been replaced by a grey-green cork linoleum; Here I
  • would always find a remarkable miscellany of people presided over by
  • a peculiarly faithful and ferocious looking commissioner, Ropper, who
  • guarded the door that led a step nearer my uncle. Usually there would
  • be a parson or so, and one or two widows; hairy, eyeglassy, middle-aged
  • gentlemen, some of them looking singularly like Edward Ponderevos
  • who hadn’t come off, a variety of young and youngish men more or less
  • attractively dressed, some with papers protruding from their pockets,
  • others with their papers decently concealed. And wonderful, incidental,
  • frowsy people.
  • All these persons maintained a practically hopeless siege--sometimes for
  • weeks together; they had better have stayed at home. Next came a room
  • full of people who had some sort of appointment, and here one would find
  • smart-looking people, brilliantly dressed, nervous women hiding behind
  • magazines, nonconformist divines, clergy in gaiters, real business men,
  • these latter for the most part gentlemen in admirable morning dress who
  • stood up and scrutinised my uncle’s taste in water colours manfully and
  • sometimes by the hour together. Young men again were here of various
  • social origins, young Americans, treasonable clerks from other concerns,
  • university young men, keen-looking, most of them, resolute, reserved,
  • but on a sort of hair trigger, ready at any moment to be most voluble,
  • most persuasive.
  • This room had a window, too, looking out into the hotel courtyard with
  • its fern-set fountains and mosaic pavement, and the young men would
  • stand against this and sometimes even mutter. One day I heard one
  • repeating in all urgent whisper as I passed “But you don’t quite see,
  • Mr. Ponderevo, the full advantages, the FULL advantages--” I met his eye
  • and he was embarrassed.
  • Then came a room with a couple of secretaries--no typewriters, because
  • my uncle hated the clatter--and a casual person or two sitting about,
  • projectors whose projects were being entertained. Here and in a further
  • room nearer the private apartments, my uncle’s correspondence underwent
  • an exhaustive process of pruning and digestion before it reached him.
  • Then the two little rooms in which my uncle talked; my magic uncle who
  • had got the investing public--to whom all things were possible. As one
  • came in we would find him squatting with his cigar up and an expression
  • of dubious beatitude upon his face, while some one urged him to grow
  • still richer by this or that.
  • “That’ju, George?” he used to say. “Come in. Here’s a thing. Tell
  • him--Mister--over again. Have a drink, George? No! Wise man! Liss’n.”
  • I was always ready to listen. All sorts of financial marvels came out of
  • the Hardingham, more particularly during my uncle’s last great flurry,
  • but they were nothing to the projects that passed in. It was the little
  • brown and gold room he sat in usually. He had had it redecorated by
  • Bordingly and half a dozen Sussex pictures by Webster hung about it.
  • Latterly he wore a velveteen jacket of a golden-brown colour in this
  • apartment that I think over-emphasised its esthetic intention, and he
  • also added some gross Chinese bronzes.
  • He was, on the whole, a very happy man throughout all that wildly
  • enterprising time. He made and, as I shall tell in its place, spent
  • great sums of money. He was constantly in violent motion, constantly
  • stimulated mentally and physically and rarely tired. About him was an
  • atmosphere of immense deference much of his waking life was triumphal
  • and all his dreams. I doubt if he had any dissatisfaction with himself
  • at all until the crash bore him down. Things must have gone very rapidly
  • with him.... I think he must have been very happy.
  • As I sit here writing about all these things, jerking down notes and
  • throwing them aside in my attempt to give some literary form to the tale
  • of our promotions, the marvel of it all comes to me as if it came for
  • the first time the supreme unreason of it. At the climax of his Boom, my
  • uncle at the most sparing estimate must have possessed in substance and
  • credit about two million pounds’-worth of property to set off against
  • his vague colossal liabilities, and from first to last he must have had
  • a controlling influence in the direction of nearly thirty millions.
  • This irrational muddle of a community in which we live gave him that,
  • paid him at that rate for sitting in a room and scheming and telling
  • it lies. For he created nothing, he invented nothing, he economised
  • nothing. I cannot claim that a single one of the great businesses
  • we organised added any real value to human life at all. Several like
  • Tono-Bungay were unmitigated frauds by any honest standard, the giving
  • of nothing coated in advertisements for money. And the things the
  • Hardingham gave out, I repeat, were nothing to the things that came
  • in. I think of the long procession of people who sat down before us and
  • propounded this and that. Now it was a device for selling bread under
  • a fancy name and so escaping the laws as to weight--this was afterwards
  • floated as the Decorticated Health-Bread Company and bumped against the
  • law--now it was a new scheme for still more strident advertisement,
  • now it was a story of unsuspected deposits of minerals, now a cheap and
  • nasty substitute for this or that common necessity, now the treachery of
  • a too well-informed employee, anxious to become our partner. It was
  • all put to us tentatively, persuasively. Sometimes one had a large pink
  • blusterous person trying to carry us off our feet by his pseudo-boyish
  • frankness, now some dyspeptically yellow whisperer, now some earnest,
  • specially dressed youth with an eye-glass and a buttonhole, now some
  • homely-speaking, shrewd Manchester man or some Scotchman eager to be
  • very clear and full.
  • Many came in couples or trios, often in tow of an explanatory solicitor.
  • Some were white and earnest, some flustered beyond measure at their
  • opportunity. Some of them begged and prayed to be taken up. My uncle
  • chose what he wanted and left the rest. He became very autocratic to
  • these applicants.
  • He felt he could make them, and they felt so too. He had but to say
  • “No!” and they faded out of existence.... He had become a sort of vortex
  • to which wealth flowed of its own accord. His possessions increased by
  • heaps; his shares, his leaseholds and mortgages and debentures.
  • Behind his first-line things he found it necessary at last, and
  • sanctioned by all the precincts, to set up three general trading
  • companies, the London and African Investment Company, the British
  • Traders’ Loan Company, and Business Organisations Limited. This was in
  • the culminating time when I had least to do with affairs. I don’t say
  • that with any desire to exculpate myself; I admit I was a director
  • of all three, and I will confess I was willfully incurious in that
  • capacity. Each of these companies ended its financial year solvent by
  • selling great holdings of shares to one or other of its sisters, and
  • paying a dividend out of the proceeds. I sat at the table and agreed.
  • That was our method of equilibrium at the iridescent climax of the
  • bubble.
  • You perceive now, however, the nature of the services for which this
  • fantastic community have him unmanageable wealth and power and real
  • respect. It was all a monstrous payment for courageous fiction, a
  • gratuity in return for the one reality of human life--illusion. We gave
  • them a feeling of hope and profit; we sent a tidal wave of water and
  • confidence into their stranded affairs. “We mint Faith, George,” said my
  • uncle one day. “That’s what we do. And by Jove we got to keep minting!
  • We been making human confidence ever since I drove the first cork of
  • Tono-Bungay.”
  • “Coining” would have been a better word than minting! And yet, you
  • know, in a sense he was right. Civilisation is possible only through
  • confidence, so that we can bank our money and go unarmed about the
  • streets. The bank reserve or a policeman keeping order in a jostling
  • multitude of people, are only slightly less impudent bluffs than my
  • uncle’s prospectuses. They couldn’t for a moment “make good” if the
  • quarter of what they guarantee was demanded of them. The whole of this
  • modern mercantile investing civilisation is indeed such stuff as dreams
  • are made of. A mass of people swelters and toils, great railway systems
  • grow, cities arise to the skies and spread wide and far, mines are
  • opened, factories hum, foundries roar, ships plough the seas, countries
  • are settled; about this busy striving world the rich owners go,
  • controlling all, enjoying all, confident and creating the confidence
  • that draws us all together into a reluctant, nearly unconscious
  • brotherhood. I wonder and plan my engines. The flags flutter, the crowds
  • cheer, the legislatures meet. Yet it seems to me indeed at times that
  • all this present commercial civilisation is no more than my poor uncle’s
  • career writ large, a swelling, thinning bubble of assurances; that
  • its arithmetic is just as unsound, its dividends as ill-advised, its
  • ultimate aim as vague and forgotten; that it all drifts on perhaps to
  • some tremendous parallel to his individual disaster...
  • Well, so it was we Boomed, and for four years and a half we lived a life
  • of mingled substance and moonshine. Until our particular unsoundness
  • overtook us we went about in the most magnificent of motor-cars upon
  • tangible high roads, made ourselves conspicuous and stately in splendid
  • houses, ate sumptuously and had a perpetual stream of notes and money
  • trickling into our pockets; hundreds of thousands of men and women
  • respected us, saluted us and gave us toil and honour; I asked, and my
  • worksheets rose, my aeroplanes swooped out of nothingness to scare the
  • downland pe-wits; my uncle waved his hand and Lady Grove and all its
  • associations of chivalry and ancient peace were his; waved again, and
  • architects were busy planning the great palace he never finished at
  • Crest Hill and an army of folkmen gathered to do his bidding, blue
  • marble came from Canada, and timber from New Zealand; and beneath it
  • all, you know, there was nothing but fictitious values as evanescent as
  • rainbow gold.
  • IV
  • I pass the Hardingham ever and again and glance aside through the great
  • archway at the fountain and the ferns, and think of those receding days
  • when I was so near the centre of our eddy of greed and enterprise. I see
  • again my uncle’s face, white and intent, and hear him discourse, hear
  • him make consciously Napoleonic decisions, “grip” his nettles, put
  • his “finger on the spot,” “bluff,” say “snap.” He became particularly
  • addicted to the last idiom. Towards the end every conceivable act took
  • the form of saying “snap!”
  • The odd fish that came to us! And among others came Gordon-Nasmyth, that
  • queer blend of romance and illegality who was destined to drag me into
  • the most irrelevant adventure in my life the Mordet Island affair; and
  • leave me, as they say, with blood upon my hands. It is remarkable how
  • little it troubles my conscience and how much it stirs my imagination,
  • that particular memory of the life I took. The story of Mordet Island
  • has been told in a government report and told all wrong; there are still
  • excellent reasons for leaving it wrong in places, but the liveliest
  • appeals of discretion forbid my leaving it out altogether.
  • I’ve still the vividest memory of Gordon-Nasmyth’s appearance in the
  • inner sanctum, a lank, sunburnt person in tweeds with a yellow-brown
  • hatchet face and one faded blue eye--the other was a closed and sunken
  • lid--and how he told us with a stiff affectation of ease his incredible
  • story of this great heap of quap that lay abandoned or undiscovered
  • on the beach behind Mordet’s Island among white dead mangroves and the
  • black ooze of brackish water.
  • “What’s quap?” said my uncle on the fourth repetition of the word.
  • “They call it quap, or quab, or quabb,” said Gordon-Nasmyth; “but our
  • relations weren’t friendly enough to get the accent right....
  • “But there the stuff is for the taking. They don’t know about it.
  • Nobody knows about it. I got down to the damned place in a canoe alone.
  • The boys wouldn’t come. I pretended to be botanising.” ...
  • To begin with, Gordon-Nasmyth was inclined to be dramatic.
  • “Look here,” he said when he first came in, shutting the door rather
  • carefully behind him as he spoke, “do you two men--yes or no--want to
  • put up six thousand--for--a clear good chance of fifteen hundred per
  • cent. on your money in a year?”
  • “We’re always getting chances like that,” said my uncle, cocking his
  • cigar offensively, wiping his glasses and tilting his chair back. “We
  • stick to a safe twenty.”
  • Gordon-Nasmyth’s quick temper showed in a slight stiffening of his
  • attitude.
  • “Don’t you believe him,” said I, getting up before he could reply.
  • “You’re different, and I know your books. We’re very glad you’ve come
  • to us. Confound it, uncle! Its Gordon-Nasmyth! Sit down. What is it?
  • Minerals?”
  • “Quap,” said Gordon-Nasmyth, fixing his eye on me, “in heaps.”
  • “In heaps,” said my uncle softly, with his glasses very oblique.
  • “You’re only fit for the grocery,” said Gordon-Nasmyth scornfully,
  • sitting down and helping himself to one of my uncle’s cigars. “I’m sorry
  • I came. But, still, now I’m here.... And first as to quap; quap, sir, is
  • the most radio-active stuff in the world. That’s quap! It’s a festering
  • mass of earths and heavy metals, polonium, radium, ythorium, thorium,
  • carium, and new things, too. There’s a stuff called Xk--provisionally.
  • There they are, mucked up together in a sort of rotting sand. What it
  • is, how it got made, I don’t know. It’s like as if some young creator
  • had been playing about there. There it lies in two heaps, one small,
  • one great, and the world for miles about it is blasted and scorched and
  • dead. You can have it for the getting. You’ve got to take it--that’s
  • all!”
  • “That sounds all right,” said I. “Have you samples?”
  • “Well--should I? You can have anything--up to two ounces.”
  • “Where is it?”...
  • His blue eye smiled at me and scrutinised me. He smoked and was
  • fragmentary for a time, fending off my questions; then his story began
  • to piece itself together. He conjured up a vision of this strange
  • forgotten kink in the world’s littoral, of the long meandering channels
  • that spread and divaricate and spend their burden of mud and silt within
  • the thunderbelt of Atlantic surf, of the dense tangled vegetation that
  • creeps into the shimmering water with root and sucker. He gave a sense
  • of heat and a perpetual reek of vegetable decay, and told how at last
  • comes a break among these things, an arena fringed with bone-white dead
  • trees, a sight of the hard-blue sea line beyond the dazzling surf and
  • a wide desolation of dirty shingle and mud, bleached and scarred....
  • A little way off among charred dead weeds stands the abandoned
  • station,--abandoned because every man who stayed two months at that
  • station stayed to die, eaten up mysteriously like a leper with its
  • dismantled sheds and its decaying pier of wormrotten and oblique piles
  • and planks, still insecurely possible.
  • And in the midst, two clumsy heaps shaped like the backs of hogs, one
  • small, one great, sticking out under a rib of rock that cuts the space
  • across,--quap!
  • “There it is,” said Gordon-Nasmyth, “worth three pounds an ounce, if
  • it’s worth a penny; two great heaps of it, rotten stuff and soft, ready
  • to shovel and wheel, and you may get it by the ton!”
  • “How did it get there?”
  • “God knows! ... There it is--for the taking! In a country where you
  • mustn’t trade. In a country where the company waits for good kind men
  • to find it riches and then take ‘em away from ‘em. There you have
  • it--derelict.”
  • “Can’t you do any sort of deal?”
  • “They’re too damned stupid. You’ve got to go and take it. That’s all.”
  • “They might catch you.”
  • “They might, of course. But they’re not great at catching.”
  • We went into the particulars of that difficulty. “They wouldn’t catch
  • me, because I’d sink first. Give me a yacht,” said Gordon-Nasmyth;
  • “that’s all I need.”
  • “But if you get caught,” said my uncle.
  • I am inclined to think Gordon-Nasmyth imagined we would give him a
  • cheque for six thousand pounds on the strength of his talk. It was very
  • good talk, but we didn’t do that. I stipulated for samples of his stuff
  • for analysis, and he consented--reluctantly.
  • I think, on the whole, he would rather I didn’t examine samples. He made
  • a motion pocketwards, that gave us an invincible persuasion that he
  • had a sample upon him, and that at the last instant he decided not to
  • produce it prematurely.
  • There was evidently a curious strain of secretiveness in him. He didn’t
  • like to give us samples, and he wouldn’t indicate within three hundred
  • miles the position of this Mordet Island of his. He had it clear in his
  • mind that he had a secret of immense value, and he had no idea at all of
  • just how far he ought to go with business people. And so presently,
  • to gain time for these hesitations of his, he began to talk of other
  • things. He talked very well. He talked of the Dutch East Indies and of
  • the Congo, of Portuguese East Africa and Paraguay, of Malays and rich
  • Chinese merchants, Dyaks and negroes and the spread of the Mahometan
  • world in Africa to-day. And all this time he was trying to judge if
  • we were good enough to trust with his adventure. Our cosy inner office
  • became a little place, and all our business cold and lifeless exploits
  • beside his glimpses of strange minglings of men, of slayings unavenged
  • and curious customs, of trade where no writs run, and the dark
  • treacheries of eastern ports and uncharted channels.
  • We had neither of us gone abroad except for a few vulgar raids on Paris;
  • our world was England, are the places of origin of half the raw material
  • of the goods we sold had seemed to us as remote as fairyland or the
  • forest of Arden. But Gordon-Nasmyth made it so real and intimate for us
  • that afternoon--for me, at any rate--that it seemed like something seen
  • and forgotten and now again remembered.
  • And in the end he produced his sample, a little lump of muddy clay
  • speckled with brownish grains, in a glass bottle wrapped about with lead
  • and flannel--red flannel it was, I remember--a hue which is, I know,
  • popularly supposed to double all the mystical efficacies of flannel.
  • “Don’t carry it about on you,” said Gordon-Nasmyth. “It makes a sore.”
  • I took the stuff to Thorold, and Thorold had the exquisite agony of
  • discovering two new elements in what was then a confidential
  • analysis. He has christened them and published since, but at the time
  • Gordon-Nasmyth wouldn’t hear for a moment of our publication of any
  • facts at all; indeed, he flew into a violent passion and abused me
  • mercilessly even for showing the stuff to Thorold. “I thought you were
  • going to analyse it yourself,” he said with the touching persuasion of
  • the layman that a scientific man knows and practises at the sciences.
  • I made some commercial inquiries, and there seemed even then much truth
  • in Gordon-Nasmyth’s estimate of the value of the stuff. It was before
  • the days of Capern’s discovery of the value of canadium and his use of
  • it in the Capern filament, but the cerium and thorium alone were worth
  • the money he extracted for the gas-mantles then in vogue. There were,
  • however, doubts. Indeed, there were numerous doubts. What were the
  • limits of the gas-mantle trade? How much thorium, not to speak of
  • cerium, could they take at a maximum. Suppose that quantity was high
  • enough to justify our shipload, came doubts in another quarter. Were
  • the heaps up to sample? Were they as big as he said? Was
  • Gordon-Nasmyth--imaginative? And if these values held, could we after
  • all get the stuff? It wasn’t ours. It was on forbidden ground. You see,
  • there were doubts of every grade and class in the way of this adventure.
  • We went some way, nevertheless, in the discussion of his project, though
  • I think we tried his patience. Then suddenly he vanished from London,
  • and I saw no more of him for a year and a half.
  • My uncle said that was what he had expected, and when at last
  • Gordon-Nasmyth reappeared and mentioned in an incidental way that he
  • had been to Paraguay on private (and we guessed passionate) affairs,
  • the business of the “quap” expedition had to be begun again at the
  • beginning. My uncle was disposed to be altogether sceptical, but I
  • wasn’t so decided. I think I was drawn by its picturesque aspects.
  • But we neither of us dreamt of touching it seriously until Capern’s
  • discovery.
  • Nasmyth’s story had laid hold of my imagination like one small, intense
  • picture of tropical sunshine hung on a wall of grey business affairs.
  • I kept it going during Gordon-Nasmyth’s intermittent appearances in
  • England. Every now and then he and I would meet and reinforce its
  • effect. We would lunch in London, or he would cone to see my gliders at
  • Crest Hill, and make new projects for getting at those heaps again now
  • with me, now alone.
  • At times they became a sort of fairy-story with us, an imaginative
  • exercise. And there came Capern’s discovery of what he called the ideal
  • filament and with it an altogether less problematical quality about the
  • business side of quap. For the ideal filament needed five per cent. of
  • canadium, and canadium was known to the world only as a newly separated
  • constituent of a variety of the rare mineral rutile. But to Thorold it
  • was better known as an element in a mysterious sample brought to him
  • by me, and to me it was known as one of the elements in quap. I told
  • my uncle, and we jumped on to the process at once. We found that
  • Gordon-Nasmyth, still unaware of the altered value of the stuff, and
  • still thinking of the experimental prices of radium and the rarity
  • value of cerium, had got hold of a cousin named Pollack, made some
  • extraordinary transaction about his life insurance policy, and was
  • buying a brig. We put in, put down three thousand pounds, and forthwith
  • the life insurance transaction and the Pollack side of this finance
  • vanished into thin air, leaving Pollack, I regret to say, in the brig
  • and in the secret--except so far as canadium and the filament went--as
  • residuum. We discussed earnestly whether we should charter a steamer or
  • go on with the brig, but we decided on the brig as a less conspicuous
  • instrument for an enterprise that was after all, to put it plainly,
  • stealing.
  • But that was one of our last enterprises before our great crisis, and I
  • will tell of it in its place.
  • So it was quap came into our affairs, came in as a fairy-tale and became
  • real. More and more real it grew until at last it was real, until at
  • last I saw with my eyes the heaps my imagination had seen for so long,
  • and felt between my fingers again that half-gritty, half soft texture
  • of quap, like sanded moist-sugar mixed with clay in which there stirs
  • something--
  • One must feel it to understand.
  • V
  • All sorts of things came to the Hardingham and offered themselves to my
  • uncle. Gordon-Nasmyth stands but only because he played a part at last
  • in the crisis of our fortunes. So much came to us that it seemed to
  • me at times as though the whole world of human affairs was ready to
  • prostitute itself to our real and imaginary millions. As I look back,
  • I am still dazzled and incredulous to think of the quality of our
  • opportunities.
  • We did the most extraordinary things; things that it seems absurd to
  • me to leave to any casual man of wealth and enterprise who cares to do
  • them. I had some amazing perceptions of just how modern thought and the
  • supply of fact to the general mind may be controlled by money. Among
  • other things that my uncle offered for, he tried very hard to buy the
  • British Medical Journal and the Lancet, and run them on what he called
  • modern lines, and when they resisted him he talked very vigorously for a
  • time of organising a rival enterprise. That was a very magnificent idea
  • indeed in its way; it would have given a tremendous advantage in the
  • handling of innumerable specialties and indeed I scarcely know how
  • far it would not have put the medical profession in our grip. It still
  • amazes me--I shall die amazed--that such a thing can be possible in the
  • modern state. If my uncle failed to bring the thing off, some one
  • else may succeed. But I doubt, even if he had got both these weeklies,
  • whether his peculiar style would have suited them. The change of purpose
  • would have shown. He would have found it difficult to keep up their
  • dignity.
  • He certainly did not keep up the dignity of the Sacred Grove,
  • an important critical organ which he acquired one day--by saying
  • “snap”--for eight hundred pounds. He got it “lock, stock and
  • barrel”--under one or other of which three aspects the editor was
  • included. Even at that price it didn’t pay. If you are a literary person
  • you will remember the bright new cover he gave that representative organ
  • of British intellectual culture, and how his sound business instincts
  • jarred with the exalted pretensions of a vanishing age. One old wrapper
  • I discovered the other day runs:--
  • “THE SACRED GROVE.”
  • Weekly Magazine of Art, Philosophy, Science and
  • Belles Lettres.
  • ----------------------------------------------
  • HAVE YOU A NASTY TASTE IN YOUR MOUTH?
  • IT IS LIVER.
  • YOU NEED ONE TWENTY-THREE PILL.
  • (JUST ONE.)
  • NOT A DRUG BUT A LIVE AMERICAN REMEDY.
  • -----------------------------------------------
  • CONTENTS.
  • A Hitherto Unpublished Letter from Walter Pater.
  • Charlotte Bronte’s Maternal Great Aunt.
  • A New Catholic History of England.
  • The Genius of Shakespeare.
  • Correspondence:--The Mendelian Hypothesis; The Split Infinitive;
  • “Commence,” or “Begin;” Claverhouse; Socialism and the
  • Individual; The Dignity of Letters.
  • Folk-lore Gossip.
  • The Stage; the Paradox of Acting.
  • Travel Biography, Verse, Fiction, etc.
  • ----------------------------------------------------
  • THE BEST PILL IN THE WORLD FOR AN IRREGULAR LIVER
  • I suppose it is some lingering traces of the Bladesover tradition to me
  • that makes this combination of letters and pills seem so incongruous,
  • just as I suppose it is a lingering trace of Plutarch and my
  • ineradicable boyish imagination that at bottom our State should be
  • wise, sane and dignified, that makes me think a country which leaves
  • its medical and literary criticism, or indeed any such vitally important
  • criticism, entirely to private enterprise and open to the advances of
  • any purchaser must be in a frankly hopeless condition. These are ideal
  • conceptions of mine.
  • As a matter of fact, nothing would be more entirely natural and
  • representative of the relations of learning, thought and the economic
  • situation in the world at the present time than this cover of the
  • Sacred Grove--the quiet conservatism of the one element embedded in
  • the aggressive brilliance of the other; the contrasted notes of bold
  • physiological experiment and extreme mental immobility.
  • VI
  • There comes back, too, among these Hardingham memories, an impression
  • of a drizzling November day, and how we looked out of the windows upon a
  • procession of the London unemployed.
  • It was like looking down a well into some momentarily revealed nether
  • world. Some thousands of needy ineffectual men had been raked together
  • to trail their spiritless misery through the West Eire with an appeal
  • that was also in its way a weak and insubstantial threat: “It is Work we
  • need, not Charity.”
  • There they were, half-phantom through the fog, a silent, foot-dragging,
  • interminable, grey procession. They carried wet, dirty banners, they
  • rattled boxes for pence; these men who had not said “snap” in the right
  • place, the men who had “snapped” too eagerly, the men who had never
  • said “snap,” the men who had never had a chance of saying “snap.” A
  • shambling, shameful stream they made, oozing along the street, the
  • gutter waste of competitive civilisation. And we stood high out of it
  • all, as high as if we looked godlike from another world, standing in
  • a room beautifully lit and furnished, skillfully warmed, filled with
  • costly things.
  • “There,” thought I, “but for the grace of God, go George and Edward
  • Ponderevo.”
  • But my uncle’s thoughts ran in a different channel, and he made that
  • vision the test of a spirited but inconclusive harangue upon Tariff
  • Reform.
  • CHAPTER THE SECOND
  • OUR PROGRESS FROM CAMDEN TOWN TO CREST HILL
  • I
  • So far my history of my aunt and uncle has dealt chiefly with his
  • industrial and financial exploits. But side by side with that history of
  • inflation from the infinitesimal to the immense is another development,
  • the change year by year from the shabby impecuniosity of the Camden Town
  • lodging to the lavish munificence of the Crest Hill marble staircase and
  • my aunt’s golden bed, the bed that was facsimiled from Fontainebleau.
  • And the odd thing is that as I come to this nearer part of my story I
  • find it much more difficult to tell than the clear little perspective
  • memories of the earlier days. Impressions crowd upon one another and
  • overlap one another; I was presently to fall in love again, to be seized
  • by a passion to which I still faintly respond, a passion that still
  • clouds my mind. I came and went between Ealing and my aunt and uncle,
  • and presently between Effie and clubland, and then between business
  • and a life of research that became far more continuous, infinitely more
  • consecutive and memorable than any of these other sets of experiences.
  • I didn’t witness a regular social progress therefore; my aunt and
  • uncle went up in the world, so far as I was concerned, as if they were
  • displayed by an early cinematograph, with little jumps and flickers.
  • As I recall this side of our life, the figure of my round-eyes,
  • button-nosed, pink-and-white Aunt Susan tends always to the central
  • position. We drove the car and sustained the car, she sat in it with
  • a magnificent variety of headgear poised upon her delicate neck,
  • and always with that faint ghost of a lisp no misspelling can
  • render--commented on and illuminated the new aspects.
  • I’ve already sketched the little home behind the Wimblehurst chemist’s
  • shop, the lodging near the Cobden statue, and the apartments in Gower
  • Street. Thence my aunt and uncle went into a flat in Redgauntlet
  • Mansions. There they lived when I married. It was a compact flat, with
  • very little for a woman to do in it In those days my aunt, I think,
  • used to find the time heavy upon her hands, and so she took to books and
  • reading, and after a time even to going to lectures in the afternoon.
  • I began to find unexpected books upon her table: sociological books,
  • travels, Shaw’s plays. “Hullo!” I said, at the sight of some volume of
  • the latter.
  • “I’m keeping a mind, George,” she explained.
  • “Eh?”
  • “Keeping a mind. Dogs I never cared for. It’s been a toss-up between
  • setting up a mind and setting up a soul. It’s jolly lucky for Him and
  • you it’s a mind. I’ve joined the London Library, and I’m going in for
  • the Royal Institution and every blessed lecture that comes along next
  • winter. You’d better look out.”...
  • And I remember her coming in late one evening with a note-book in her
  • hand.
  • “Where ya been, Susan?” said my uncle.
  • “Birkbeck--Physiology. I’m getting on.” She sat down and took off her
  • gloves. “You’re just glass to me,” she sighed, and then in a note of
  • grave reproach: “You old PACKAGE! I had no idea! The Things you’ve kept
  • from me!”
  • Presently they were setting; up the house at Beckengham, and my aunt
  • intermitted her intellectual activities. The house at Beckengham was
  • something of an enterprise for them at that time, a reasonably large
  • place by the standards of the early years of Tono-Bungay. It was a big,
  • rather gaunt villa, with a conservatory and a shrubbery, a tennis-lawn,
  • a quite considerable vegetable garden, and a small disused coach-house.
  • I had some glimpses of the excitements of its inauguration, but not many
  • because of the estrangement between my aunt and Marion.
  • My aunt went into that house with considerable zest, and my uncle
  • distinguished himself by the thoroughness with which he did the
  • repainting and replumbing. He had all the drains up and most of the
  • garden with them, and stood administrative on heaps--administrating
  • whisky to the workmen. I found him there one day, most Napoleonic, on
  • a little Elba of dirt, in an atmosphere that defies print. He also, I
  • remember, chose what he considered cheerful contrasts of colours for the
  • painting of the woodwork. This exasperated my aunt extremely--she
  • called him a “Pestilential old Splosher” with an unusual note of
  • earnestness--and he also enraged her into novelties of abuse by giving
  • each bedroom the name of some favourite hero--Cliff, Napoleon, Caesar,
  • and so forth--and having it painted on the door in gilt letters on
  • a black label. “Martin Luther” was kept for me. Only her respect for
  • domestic discipline, she said, prevented her retaliating with “Old
  • Pondo” on the housemaid’s cupboard.
  • Also he went and ordered one of the completest sets of garden requisites
  • I have ever seen--and had them all painted a hard clear blue. My aunt
  • got herself large tins of a kindlier hued enamel and had everything
  • secretly recoated, and this done, she found great joy in the garden and
  • became an ardent rose grower and herbaceous borderer, leaving her Mind,
  • indeed, to damp evenings and the winter months. When I think of her at
  • Beckenham, I always think first of her as dressed in that blue cotton
  • stuff she affected, with her arms in huge gauntleted gardening gloves, a
  • trowel in one hand and a small but no doubt hardy and promising annual,
  • limp and very young-looking and sheepish, in the other.
  • Beckenham, in the persons of a vicar, a doctor’s wife, and a large proud
  • lady called Hogberry, “called” on my uncle and aunt almost at once, so
  • soon in fact as the lawn was down again, and afterwards my aunt made
  • friends with a quiet gentlewoman next door, a propos of an overhanging
  • cherry tree and the need of repairing the party fence. So she resumed
  • her place in society from which she had fallen with the disaster of
  • Wimblehurst. She made a partially facetious study of the etiquette of
  • her position, had cards engraved and retaliated calls. And then she
  • received a card for one of Mrs. Hogberry’s At Homes, gave an old garden
  • party herself, participated in a bazaar and sale of work, and was really
  • becoming quite cheerfully entangled in Beckenham society when she was
  • suddenly taken up by the roots again by my uncle and transplanted to
  • Chiselhurst.
  • “Old Trek, George,” she said compactly, “Onward and Up,” when I found
  • her superintending the loading of two big furniture vans. “Go up and say
  • good-bye to ‘Martin Luther,’ and then I’ll see what you can do to help
  • me.”
  • II
  • I look into the jumbled stores of the middle distance of memory, and
  • Beckenham seems to me a quite transitory phase. But really they were
  • there several years; through nearly all my married life, in fact,
  • and far longer than the year and odd months we lived together at
  • Wimblehurst. But the Wimblehurst time with them is fuller in my memory
  • by far then the Beckenham period. There comes back to me with a quite
  • considerable amount of detail the effect of that garden party of my
  • aunt’s and of a little social misbehaviour of which I was guilty on that
  • occasion. It’s like a scrap from another life. It’s all set in what is
  • for me a kind of cutaneous feeling, the feeling of rather ill-cut city
  • clothes, frock coat and grey trousers, and of a high collar and tie
  • worn in sunshine among flowers. I have still a quite vivid memory of the
  • little trapezoidal lawn, of the gathering, and particularly of the
  • hats and feathers of the gathering, of the parlour-maid and the blue
  • tea-cups, and of the magnificent presence of Mrs. Hogberry and of her
  • clear, resonant voice. It was a voice that would have gone with a garden
  • party on a larger scale; it went into adjacent premises; it included the
  • gardener who was far up the vegetable patch and technically out of play.
  • The only other men were my aunt’s doctor, two of the clergy, amiable
  • contrasted men, and Mrs. Hogberry’s imperfectly grown-up son, a youth
  • just bursting into collar. The rest were women, except for a young girl
  • or so in a state of speechless good behaviour. Marion also was there.
  • Marion and I had arrived a little estranged, and I remember her as
  • a silent presence, a shadow across all that sunlit emptiness of
  • intercourse. We had embittered each other with one of those miserable
  • little disputes that seemed so unavoidable between us. She had, with the
  • help of Smithie, dressed rather elaborately for the occasion, and when
  • she saw me prepared to accompany her in, I think it was a grey suit,
  • she protested that silk hat and frock coat were imperative. I was
  • recalcitrant, she quoted an illustrated paper showing a garden party
  • with the King present, and finally I capitulated--but after my evil
  • habit, resentfully.... Eh, dear! those old quarrels, how pitiful they
  • were, how trivial! And how sorrowful they are to recall! I think they
  • grow more sorrowful as I grow older, and all the small passionate
  • reasons for our mutual anger fade and fade out of memory.
  • The impression that Beckenham company has left on my mind is one of
  • a modest unreality; they were all maintaining a front of unspecified
  • social pretension, and evading the display of the economic facts of the
  • case. Most of the husbands were “in business” off stage, it would have
  • been outrageous to ask what the business was--and the wives were
  • giving their energies to produce, with the assistance of novels and the
  • illustrated magazines, a moralised version of the afternoon life of the
  • aristocratic class. They hadn’t the intellectual or moral enterprise
  • of the upper-class woman, they had no political interests, they had no
  • views about anything, and consequently they were, I remember, extremely
  • difficult to talk to. They all sat about in the summer-house and in
  • garden-chairs, and were very hatty and ruffley and sunshady. Three
  • ladies and the curate played croquet with a general immense gravity,
  • broken by occasional loud cries of feigned distress from the curate.
  • “Oh! Whacking me about again! Augh!”
  • The dominant social fact that afternoon was Mrs. Hogberry; she took up a
  • certain position commanding the croquet and went on, as my aunt said to
  • me in an incidental aside, “like an old Roundabout.” She talked of the
  • way in which Beckenham society was getting mixed, and turned on to
  • a touching letter she had recently received from her former nurse at
  • Little Gossdean. Followed a loud account of Little Gossdean and how much
  • she and her eight sisters had been looked up to there. “My poor mother
  • was quite a little Queen there,” she said. “And such NICE Common people!
  • People say the country labourers are getting disrespectful nowadays. It
  • isn’t so--not if they’re properly treated. Here of course in Beckenham
  • it’s different. I won’t call the people we get here a Poor--they’re
  • certainly not a proper Poor. They’re Masses. I always tell Mr. Bugshoot
  • they’re Masses, and ought to be treated as such.”...
  • Dim memories of Mrs. Mackridge floated through my mind as I listened to
  • her....
  • I was whirled on this roundabout for a bit, and then had the fortune to
  • fall off into a tete-a-tete with a lady whom my aunt introduced as
  • Mrs. Mumble--but then she introduced everybody to me as Mumble that
  • afternoon, either by way of humour or necessity.
  • That must have been one of my earliest essays in the art of polite
  • conversation, and I remember that I began by criticising the local
  • railway service, and that at the third sentence or thereabouts Mrs.
  • Mumble said in a distinctly bright and encouraging way that she feared I
  • was a very “frivolous” person.
  • I wonder now what it was I said that was “frivolous.”
  • I don’t know what happened to end that conversation, or if it had
  • an end. I remember talking to one of the clergy for a time rather
  • awkwardly, and being given a sort of topographical history of Beckenham,
  • which he assured me time after time was “Quite an old place. Quite an
  • old place.” As though I had treated it as new and he meant to be very
  • patient but very convincing. Then we hung up in a distinct pause, and my
  • aunt rescued me. “George,” she said in a confidential undertone, “keep
  • the pot a-boiling.” And then audibly, “I say, will you both old trot
  • about with tea a bit?”
  • “Only too delighted to TROT for you, Mrs. Ponderevo,” said the
  • clergyman, becoming fearfully expert and in his elements; “only too
  • delighted.”
  • I found we were near a rustic table, and that the housemaid was behind
  • us in a suitable position to catch us on the rebound with the tea
  • things.
  • “Trot!” repeated the clergyman to me, much amused; “excellent
  • expression!” And I just saved him from the tray as he turned about.
  • We handed tea for a while....
  • “Give ‘em cakes,” said my aunt, flushed, but well in hand. “Helps ‘em to
  • talk, George. Always talk best after a little nourishment. Like throwing
  • a bit of turf down an old geyser.”
  • She surveyed the gathering with a predominant blue eye and helped
  • herself to tea.
  • “They keep on going stiff,” she said in an undertone.... “I’ve done my
  • best.”
  • “It’s been a huge success,” I said encouragingly.
  • “That boy has had his legs crossed in that position and hasn’t spoken
  • for ten minutes. Stiffer and stiffer. Brittle. He’s beginning a dry
  • cough--always a bad sign, George.... Walk ‘em about, shall I?--rub their
  • noses with snow?”
  • Happily she didn’t. I got myself involved with the gentlewoman from next
  • door, a pensive, languid-looking little woman with a low voice, and fell
  • talking; our topic, Cats and Dogs, and which it was we liked best.
  • “I always feel,” said the pensive little woman, “that there’s something
  • about a dog--A cat hasn’t got it.”
  • “Yes,” I found myself admitting with great enthusiasm, “there is
  • something. And yet again--”
  • “Oh! I know there’s something about a cat, too. But it isn’t the same.”
  • “Not quite the same,” I admitted; “but still it’s something.”
  • “Ah! But such a different something!”
  • “More sinuous.”
  • “Much more.”
  • “Ever so much more.”
  • “It makes all the difference, don’t you think?”
  • “Yes,” I said, “ALL.”
  • She glanced at me gravely and sighed a long, deeply felt “Yes.” A long
  • pause.
  • The thing seemed to me to amount to a stale-mate. Fear came into my
  • heart and much perplexity.
  • “The--er--Roses,” I said. I felt like a drowning man. “Those
  • roses--don’t you think they are--very beautiful flowers?”
  • “Aren’t they!” she agreed gently. “There seems to be something in
  • roses--something--I don’t know how to express it.”
  • “Something,” I said helpfully.
  • “Yes,” she said, “something. Isn’t there?”
  • “So few people see it,” I said; “more’s the pity!”
  • She sighed and said again very softly, “Yes.”...
  • There was another long pause. I looked at her and she was thinking
  • dreamily. The drowning sensation returned, the fear and enfeeblement. I
  • perceived by a sort of inspiration that her tea-cup was empty.
  • “Let me take your cup,” I said abruptly, and, that secured, made for the
  • table by the summer-house. I had no intention then of deserting my
  • aunt. But close at hand the big French window of the drawing-room
  • yawned inviting and suggestive. I can feel all that temptation now, and
  • particularly the provocation of my collar. In an instant I was lost. I
  • would--Just for a moment!
  • I dashed in, put down the cup on the keys of the grand piano and fled
  • upstairs, softly, swiftly, three steps at a time, to the sanctuary of my
  • uncle’s study, his snuggery. I arrived there breathless, convinced
  • there was no return for me. I was very glad and ashamed of myself, and
  • desperate. By means of a penknife I contrived to break open his cabinet
  • of cigars, drew a chair to the window, took off my coat, collar and tie,
  • and remained smoking guiltily and rebelliously, and peeping through the
  • blind at the assembly on the lawn until it was altogether gone....
  • The clergymen, I thought, were wonderful.
  • III
  • A few such pictures of those early days at Beckenham stand out, and then
  • I find myself among the Chiselhurst memories. The Chiselhurst mansion
  • had “grounds” rather than a mere garden, and there was a gardener’s
  • cottage and a little lodge at the gate. The ascendant movement was
  • always far more in evidence there than at Beckenham. The velocity was
  • increasing.
  • One night picks itself out as typical, as, in its way, marking an epoch.
  • I was there, I think, about some advertisement stuff, on some sort of
  • business anyhow, and my uncle and aunt had come back in a fly from a
  • dinner at the Runcorns. (Even there he was nibbling at Runcorn with the
  • idea of our great Amalgamation budding in his mind.) I got down there, I
  • suppose, about eleven. I found the two of them sitting in the study, my
  • aunt on a chair-arm with a whimsical pensiveness on her face, regarding
  • my uncle, and he, much extended and very rotund, in the low arm-chair
  • drawn up to the fender.
  • “Look here, George,” said my uncle, after my first greetings. “I just
  • been saying: We aren’t Oh Fay!”
  • “Eh?”
  • “Not Oh Fay! Socially!”
  • “Old FLY, he means, George--French!”
  • “Oh! Didn’t think of French. One never knows where to have him. What’s
  • gone wrong to-night?”
  • “I been thinking. It isn’t any particular thing. I ate too much of that
  • fishy stuff at first, like salt frog spawn, and was a bit confused by
  • olives; and--well, I didn’t know which wine was which. Had to say THAT
  • each time. It puts your talk all wrong. And she wasn’t in evening dress,
  • not like the others. We can’t go on in that style, George--not a proper
  • ad.”
  • “I’m not sure you were right,” I said, “in having a fly.”
  • “We got to do it all better,” said my uncle, “we got to do it in Style.
  • Smart business, smart men. She tries to pass it off as humorous”--my
  • aunt pulled a grimace--“it isn’t humorous! See! We’re on the up-grade
  • now, fair and square. We’re going to be big. We aren’t going to be
  • laughed at as Poovenoos, see!”
  • “Nobody laughed at you,” said my aunt. “Old Bladder!”
  • “Nobody isn’t going to laugh at me,” said my uncle, glancing at his
  • contours and suddenly sitting up.
  • My aunt raised her eyebrows slightly, swung her foot, and said nothing.
  • “We aren’t keeping pace with our own progress, George. We got to. We’re
  • bumping against new people, and they set up to be gentlefolks--etiquette
  • dinners and all the rest of it. They give themselves airs and expect
  • us to be fish-out-of-water. We aren’t going to be. They think we’ve no
  • Style. Well, we give them Style for our advertisements, and we’re going
  • to give ‘em Style all through.... You needn’t be born to it to dance
  • well on the wires of the Bond Street tradesmen. See?”
  • I handed him the cigar-box.
  • “Runcorn hadn’t cigars like these,” he said, truncating one lovingly.
  • “We beat him at cigars. We’ll beat him all round.”
  • My aunt and I regarded him, full of apprehensions.
  • “I got idees,” he said darkly to the cigar, deepening our dread.
  • He pocketed his cigar-cutter and spoke again.
  • “We got to learn all the rotten little game first. See, F’rinstance, we
  • got to get samples of all the blessed wines there are--and learn ‘em up.
  • Stern, Smoor, Burgundy, all of ‘em! She took Stern to-night--and when
  • she tasted it first--you pulled a face, Susan, you did. I saw you. It
  • surprised you. You bunched your nose. We got to get used to wine and not
  • do that. We got to get used to wearing evening dress--YOU, Susan, too.”
  • “Always have had a tendency to stick out of my clothes,” said my aunt.
  • “However--Who cares?” She shrugged her shoulders.
  • I had never seen my uncle so immensely serious.
  • “Got to get the hang of etiquette,” he went on to the fire. “Horses
  • even. Practise everything. Dine every night in evening dress.... Get
  • a brougham or something. Learn up golf and tennis and things. Country
  • gentleman. Oh Fay. It isn’t only freedom from Goochery.”
  • “Eh?” I said.
  • “Oh!--Gawshery, if you like!”
  • “French, George,” said my aunt. “But I’M not ol’ Gooch. I made that face
  • for fun.”
  • “It isn’t only freedom from Gawshery. We got to have Style. See! Style!
  • Just all right and one better. That’s what I call Style. We can do it,
  • and we will.”
  • He mumbled his cigar and smoked for a space, leaning forward and looking
  • into the fire.
  • “What is it,” he asked, “after all? What is it? Tips about eating; tips
  • about drinking. Clothes. How to hold yourself, and not say jes’ the
  • few little things they know for certain are wrong--jes’ the shibboleth
  • things.”
  • He was silent again, and the cigar crept up from the horizontal towards
  • the zenith as the confidence of his mouth increased.
  • “Learn the whole bag of tricks in six months.” he said, becoming more
  • cheerful. “Ah, Susan? Beat it out! George, you in particular ought to
  • get hold of it. Ought to get into a good club, and all that.”
  • “Always ready to learn!” I said. “Ever since you gave me the chance of
  • Latin. So far we don’t seem to have hit upon any Latin-speaking stratum
  • in the population.”
  • “We’ve come to French,” said my aunt, “anyhow.”
  • “It’s a very useful language,” said my uncle. “Put a point on things.
  • Zzzz. As for accent, no Englishman has an accent. No Englishman
  • pronounces French properly. Don’t you tell ME. It’s a Bluff.--It’s all a
  • Bluff. Life’s a Bluff--practically. That’s why it’s so important, Susan,
  • for us to attend to Style. Le Steel Say Lum. The Style it’s the man.
  • Whad you laughing at, Susan? George, you’re not smoking. These cigars
  • are good for the mind.... What do YOU think of it all? We got to adapt
  • ourselves. We have--so far.... Not going to be beat by these silly
  • things.”
  • IV
  • “What do you think of it, George?” he insisted.
  • What I said I thought of it I don’t now recall. Only I have very
  • distinctly the impression of meeting for a moment my aunt’s impenetrable
  • eye. And anyhow he started in with his accustomed energy to rape the
  • mysteries of the Costly Life, and become the calmest of its lords. On
  • the whole, I think he did it--thoroughly. I have crowded memories,
  • a little difficult to disentangle, of his experimental stages, his
  • experimental proceedings. It’s hard at times to say which memory comes
  • in front of which. I recall him as presenting on the whole a series of
  • small surprises, as being again and again, unexpectedly, a little more
  • self-confident, a little more polished, a little richer and finer, a
  • little more aware of the positions and values of things and men.
  • There was a time--it must have been very early--when I saw him deeply
  • impressed by the splendours of the dining-room of the National Liberal
  • Club. Heaven knows who our host was or what that particular little
  • “feed” was about now!--all that sticks is the impression of our
  • straggling entry, a string of six or seven guests, and my uncle looking
  • about him at the numerous bright red-shaded tables, at the exotics in
  • great Majolica jars, at the shining ceramic columns and pilasters, at
  • the impressive portraits of Liberal statesmen and heroes, and all that
  • contributes to the ensemble of that palatial spectacle. He was betrayed
  • into a whisper to me, “This is all Right, George!” he said. That artless
  • comment seems almost incredible as I set it down; there came a time
  • so speedily when not even the clubs of New York could have overawed my
  • uncle, and when he could walk through the bowing magnificence of the
  • Royal Grand Hotel to his chosen table in that aggressively exquisite
  • gallery upon the river, with all the easy calm of one of earth’s
  • legitimate kings.
  • The two of them learnt the new game rapidly and well; they experimented
  • abroad, they experimented at home. At Chiselhurst, with the aid of
  • a new, very costly, but highly instructive cook, they tried over
  • everything they heard of that roused their curiosity and had any
  • reputation for difficulty, from asparagus to plover’s eggs. They
  • afterwards got a gardener who could wait at table--and he brought the
  • soil home to one. Then there came a butler.
  • I remember my aunt’s first dinner-gown very brightly, and how she stood
  • before the fire in the drawing-room confessing once unsuspected pretty
  • arms with all the courage she possessed, and looking over her shoulder
  • at herself in a mirror.
  • “A ham,” she remarked reflectively, “must feel like this. Just a
  • necklace.”...
  • I attempted, I think, some commonplace compliment.
  • My uncle appeared at the door in a white waistcoat and with his hands in
  • his trouser pockets; he halted and surveyed her critically.
  • “Couldn’t tell you from a duchess, Susan,” he remarked. “I’d like
  • to have you painted, standin’ at the fire like that. Sargent! You
  • look--spirited, somehow. Lord!--I wish some of those damned tradesmen at
  • Wimblehurst could see you.”...
  • They did a lot of week-ending at hotels, and sometimes I went down with
  • them. We seemed to fall into a vast drifting crowd of social learners. I
  • don’t know whether it is due simply to my changed circumstances, but it
  • seems to me there have been immensely disproportionate developments of
  • the hotel-frequenting and restaurant-using population during the last
  • twenty years. It is not only, I think, that there are crowds of people
  • who, like we were, are in the economically ascendant phase, but whole
  • masses of the prosperous section of the population must be altering its
  • habits, giving up high-tea for dinner and taking to evening dress, using
  • the week-end hotels as a practise-ground for these new social arts. A
  • swift and systematic conversion to gentility has been going on, I am
  • convinced, throughout the whole commercial upper-middle class since I
  • was twenty-one. Curiously mixed was the personal quality of the
  • people one saw in these raids. There were conscientiously refined
  • and low-voiced people reeking with proud bashfulness; there were
  • aggressively smart people using pet diminutives for each other loudly
  • and seeking fresh occasions for brilliant rudeness; there were awkward
  • husbands and wives quarrelling furtively about their manners and ill
  • at ease under the eye of the winter; cheerfully amiable and often
  • discrepant couples with a disposition to inconspicuous corners, and the
  • jolly sort, affecting an unaffected ease; plump happy ladies who laughed
  • too loud, and gentlemen in evening dress who subsequently “got their
  • pipes.” And nobody, you knew, was anybody, however expensively they
  • dressed and whatever rooms they took.
  • I look back now with a curious remoteness of spirit to those crowded
  • dining-rooms with their dispersed tables and their inevitable red-shaded
  • lights and the unsympathetic, unskillful waiters, and the choice of
  • “Thig or Glear, Sir?” I’ve not dined in that way, in that sort of place,
  • now for five years--it must be quite five years, so specialised and
  • narrow is my life becoming.
  • My uncle’s earlier motor-car phases work in with these associations,
  • and there stands out a little bright vignette of the hall of the
  • Magnificent, Bexhill-on-Sea, and people dressed for dinner and sitting
  • about amidst the scarlet furniture--satin and white-enameled woodwork
  • until the gong should gather them; and my aunt is there, very
  • marvelously wrapped about in a dust cloak and a cage-like veil, and
  • there are hotel porters and under-porters very alert, and an obsequious
  • manager; and the tall young lady in black from the office is surprised
  • into admiration, and in the middle of the picture is my uncle, making
  • his first appearance in that Esquimaux costume I have already mentioned,
  • a short figure, compactly immense, hugely goggled, wearing a sort of
  • brown rubber proboscis, and surmounted by a table-land of motoring cap.
  • V
  • So it was we recognised our new needs as fresh invaders of the upper
  • levels of the social system, and set ourselves quite consciously to
  • the acquisition of Style and Savoir Faire. We became part of what is
  • nowadays quite an important element in the confusion of our world, that
  • multitude of economically ascendant people who are learning how to spend
  • money. It is made up of financial people, the owners of the businesses
  • that are eating up their competitors, inventors of new sources of
  • wealth, such as ourselves; it includes nearly all America as one sees
  • it on the European stage. It is a various multitude having only this
  • in common: they are all moving, and particularly their womankind are
  • moving, from conditions in which means were insistently finite, things
  • were few, and customs simple, towards a limitless expenditure and the
  • sphere of attraction of Bond Street, Fifth Avenue, and Paris. Their
  • general effect is one of progressive revolution, of limitless rope.
  • They discover suddenly indulgences their moral code never foresaw and
  • has no provision for, elaborations, ornaments, possessions beyond their
  • wildest dreams. With an immense astonished zest they begin shopping
  • begin a systematic adaptation to a new life crowded and brilliant
  • with things shopped, with jewels, maids, butlers, coachmen, electric
  • broughams, hired town and country houses. They plunge into it as
  • one plunges into a career; as a class, they talk, think, and dream
  • possessions. Their literature, their Press, turns all on that; immense
  • illustrated weeklies of unsurpassed magnificence guide them in domestic
  • architecture, in the art of owning a garden, in the achievement of the
  • sumptuous in motor-cars, in an elaborate sporting equipment, in the
  • purchase and control of their estates, in travel and stupendous hotels.
  • Once they begin to move they go far and fast. Acquisition becomes the
  • substance of their lives. They find a world organised to gratify that
  • passion. In a brief year or so they are connoisseurs. They join in
  • the plunder of the eighteenth century, buy rare old books, fine old
  • pictures, good old furniture. Their first crude conception of dazzling
  • suites of the newly perfect is replaced almost from the outset by a
  • jackdaw dream of accumulating costly discrepant old things.
  • I seem to remember my uncle taking to shopping quite suddenly. In
  • the Beckenham days and in the early Chiselhurst days he was chiefly
  • interested in getting money, and except for his onslaught on the
  • Beckenham house, bothered very little about his personal surroundings
  • and possessions. I forget now when the change came and he began to
  • spend. Some accident must have revealed to him this new source of power,
  • or some subtle shifting occurred in the tissues of his brain. He began
  • to spend and “shop.” So soon as he began to shop, he began to shop
  • violently. He began buying pictures, and then, oddly enough, old clocks.
  • For the Chiselhurst house he bought nearly a dozen grandfather clocks
  • and three copper warming pans. After that he bought much furniture. Then
  • he plunged into art patronage, and began to commission pictures and to
  • make presents to churches and institutions. His buying increased with a
  • regular acceleration. Its development was a part of the mental changes
  • that came to him in the wild excitements of the last four years of his
  • ascent. Towards the climax he was a furious spender; he shopped with
  • large unexpected purchases, he shopped like a mind seeking expression,
  • he shopped to astonish and dismay; shopped crescendo, shopped
  • fortissimo, con molto espressione until the magnificent smash of Crest
  • Hill eroded his shopping for ever. Always it was he who shopped. My aunt
  • did not shine as a purchaser. It is a curious thing, due to I know not
  • what fine strain in her composition, that my aunt never set any great
  • store upon possessions. She plunged through that crowded bazaar of
  • Vanity Fair during those feverish years, spending no doubt freely and
  • largely, but spending with detachment and a touch of humorous contempt
  • for the things, even the “old” things, that money can buy. It came to
  • me suddenly one afternoon just how detached she was, as I saw her going
  • towards the Hardingham, sitting up, as she always did, rather stiffly
  • in her electric brougham, regarding the glittering world with interested
  • and ironically innocent blue eyes from under the brim of a hat that
  • defied comment. “No one,” I thought, “would sit so apart if she hadn’t
  • dreams--and what are her dreams?”
  • I’d never thought.
  • And I remember, too, an outburst of scornful description after she had
  • lunched with a party of women at the Imperial Cosmic Club. She came
  • round to my rooms on the chance of finding me there, and I gave her
  • tea. She professed herself tired and cross, and flung herself into my
  • chair....
  • “George,” she cried, “the Things women are! Do _I_ stink of money?”
  • “Lunching?” I asked.
  • She nodded.
  • “Plutocratic ladies?”
  • “Yes.”
  • “Oriental type?”
  • “Oh! Like a burst hareem!... Bragging of possessions.... They feel you.
  • They feel your clothes, George, to see if they are good!”
  • I soothed her as well as I could. “They ARE Good aren’t they?” I said.
  • “It’s the old pawnshop in their blood,” she said, drinking tea; and then
  • in infinite disgust, “They run their hands over your clothes--they paw
  • you.”
  • I had a moment of doubt whether perhaps she had not been discovered in
  • possession of unsuspected forgeries. I don’t know. After that my eyes
  • were quickened, and I began to see for myself women running their hands
  • over other women’s furs, scrutinising their lace, even demanding to
  • handle jewelry, appraising, envying, testing. They have a kind of
  • etiquette. The woman who feels says, “What beautiful sables?” “What
  • lovely lace?” The woman felt admits proudly: “It’s Real, you know,”
  • or disavows pretension modestly and hastily, “It’s Rot Good.” In
  • each other’s houses they peer at the pictures, handle the selvage of
  • hangings, look at the bottoms of china....
  • I wonder if it IS the old pawnshop in the blood.
  • I doubt if Lady Drew and the Olympians did that sort of thing, but
  • here I may be only clinging to another of my former illusions about
  • aristocracy and the State. Perhaps always possessions have been Booty,
  • and never anywhere has there been such a thing as house and furnishings
  • native and natural to the women and men who made use of them....
  • VI
  • For me, at least, it marked an epoch in my uncle’s career when I learnt
  • one day that he had “shopped” Lady Grove. I realised a fresh, wide,
  • unpreluded step. He took me by surprise with the sudden change of scale
  • from such portable possessions as jewels and motor-cars to a stretch of
  • countryside. The transaction was Napoleonic; he was told of the place;
  • he said “snap”; there were no preliminary desirings or searchings. Then
  • he came home and said what he had done. Even my aunt was for a day or
  • so measurably awestricken by this exploit in purchase, and we both went
  • down with him to see the house in a mood near consternation. It struck
  • us then as a very lordly place indeed. I remember the three of
  • us standing on the terrace that looked westward, surveying the
  • sky-reflecting windows of the house, and a feeling of unwarrantable
  • intrusion comes back to me.
  • Lady Grove, you know, is a very beautiful house indeed, a still and
  • gracious place, whose age-long seclusion was only effectively broken
  • with the toot of the coming of the motor-car. An old Catholic family
  • had died out in it, century by century, and was now altogether
  • dead. Portions of the fabric are thirteenth century, and its last
  • architectural revision was Tudor; within, it is for the most part dark
  • and chilly, save for two or three favoured rooms and its tall-windowed,
  • oak-galleried hall. Its terrace is its noblest feature; a very wide,
  • broad lawn it is, bordered by a low stone battlement, and there is
  • a great cedar in one corner under whose level branches one looks out
  • across the blue distances of the Weald, blue distances that are made
  • extraordinarily Italian in quality by virtue of the dark masses of that
  • single tree. It is a very high terrace; southward one looks down upon
  • the tops of wayfaring trees and spruces, and westward on a steep slope
  • of beechwood, through which the road comes. One turns back to the still
  • old house, and sees a grey and lichenous facade with a very finely
  • arched entrance. It was warmed by the afternoon light and touched with
  • the colour of a few neglected roses and a pyracanthus. It seemed to me
  • that the most modern owner conceivable in this serene fine place
  • was some bearded scholarly man in a black cassock, gentle-voiced and
  • white-handed, or some very soft-robed, grey gentlewoman. And there was
  • my uncle holding his goggles in a sealskin glove, wiping the glass with
  • a pocket-handkerchief, and asking my aunt if Lady Grove wasn’t a “Bit of
  • all Right.”
  • My aunt made him no answer.
  • “The man who built this,” I speculated, “wore armour and carried a
  • sword.”
  • “There’s some of it inside still,” said my uncle.
  • We went inside. An old woman with very white hair was in charge of the
  • place and cringed rather obviously to the new master. She evidently
  • found him a very strange and frightful apparition indeed, and was
  • dreadfully afraid of him. But if the surviving present bowed down to
  • us, the past did not. We stood up to the dark, long portraits of the
  • extinguished race--one was a Holbein--and looked them in their sidelong
  • eyes. They looked back at us. We all, I know, felt the enigmatical
  • quality in them. Even my uncle was momentarily embarrassed, I think, by
  • that invincibly self-complacent expression. It was just as though, after
  • all, he had not bought them up and replaced them altogether; as though
  • that, secretly, they knew better and could smile at him.
  • The spirit of the place was akin to Bladesover, but touched with
  • something older and remoter. That armour that stood about had once
  • served in tilt-yards, if indeed it had not served in battle, and this
  • family had sent its blood and treasure, time after time, upon the most
  • romantic quest in history, to Palestine. Dreams, loyalties, place and
  • honour, how utterly had it all evaporated, leaving, at last, the final
  • expression of its spirit, these quaint painted smiles, these smiles
  • of triumphant completion! It had evaporated, indeed, long before the
  • ultimate Durgan had died, and in his old age he had cumbered the place
  • with Early Victorian cushions and carpets and tapestry table-cloths and
  • invalid appliances of a type even more extinct, it seemed to us, than
  • the crusades.... Yes, it was different from Bladesover.
  • “Bit stuffy, George,” said my uncle. “They hadn’t much idea of
  • ventilation when this was built.”
  • One of the panelled rooms was half-filled with presses and a four-poster
  • bed. “Might be the ghost room,” said my uncle; but it did not seem to
  • me that so retiring a family as the Durgans, so old and completely
  • exhausted a family as the Durgans, was likely to haunt anybody. What
  • living thing now had any concern with their honour and judgments and
  • good and evil deeds? Ghosts and witchcraft were a later innovation--that
  • fashion came from Scotland with the Stuarts.
  • Afterwards, prying for epitaphs, we found a marble crusader with a
  • broken nose, under a battered canopy of fretted stone, outside the
  • restricted limits of the present Duffield church, and half buried in
  • nettles. “Ichabod,” said my uncle. “Eh? We shall be like that, Susan,
  • some day.... I’m going to clean him up a bit and put a railing to keep
  • off the children.”
  • “Old saved at the eleventh hour,” said my aunt, quoting one of the less
  • successful advertisements of Tono-Bungay.
  • But I don’t think my uncle heard her.
  • It was by our captured crusader that the vicar found us. He came round
  • the corner at us briskly, a little out of breath. He had an air of
  • having been running after us since the first toot of our horn had warned
  • the village of our presence. He was an Oxford man, clean-shaven, with
  • a cadaverous complexion and a guardedly respectful manner, a cultivated
  • intonation, and a general air of accommodation to the new order of
  • things. These Oxford men are the Greeks of our plutocratic empire. He
  • was a Tory in spirit, and what one may call an adapted Tory by stress
  • of circumstances; that is to say, he was no longer a legitimist; he was
  • prepared for the substitution of new lords for old. We were pill vendors
  • he knew, and no doubt horribly vulgar in soul; but then it might have
  • been some polygamous Indian rajah, a great strain on a good man’s tact,
  • or some Jew with an inherited expression of contempt. Anyhow, we were
  • English, and neither Dissenters nor Socialists, and he was cheerfully
  • prepared to do what he could to make gentlemen of both of us. He might
  • have preferred Americans for some reasons; they are not so obviously
  • taken from one part of the social system and dumped down in another, and
  • they are more teachable; but in this world we cannot always be choosers.
  • So he was very bright and pleasant with us, showed us the church,
  • gossiped informingly about our neighbours on the countryside--Tux, the
  • banker; Lord Boom, the magazine and newspaper proprietor; Lord Carnaby,
  • that great sportsman, and old Lady Osprey. And finally he took us by
  • way of a village lane--three children bobbed convulsively with eyes
  • of terror for my uncle--through a meticulous garden to a big, slovenly
  • Vicarage with faded Victorian furniture and a faded Victorian wife, who
  • gave us tea and introduced us to a confusing family dispersed among a
  • lot of disintegrating basket chairs upon the edge of a well-used tennis
  • lawn.
  • These people interested me. They were a common type, no doubt, but they
  • were new to me. There were two lank sons who had been playing singles
  • at tennis, red-eared youths growing black moustaches, and dressed in
  • conscientiously untidy tweeds and unbuttoned and ungirt Norfolk jackets.
  • There were a number of ill-nourished-looking daughters, sensible
  • and economical in their costume, the younger still with long,
  • brown-stockinged legs, and the eldest present--there were, we
  • discovered, one or two hidden away--displaying a large gold cross
  • and other aggressive ecclesiastical symbols; there were two or three
  • fox-terriers, a retrieverish mongrel, and an old, bloody-eyed and very
  • evil-smelling St. Bernard. There was a jackdaw. There was, moreover, an
  • ambiguous, silent lady that my aunt subsequently decided must be a very
  • deaf paying guest. Two or three other people had concealed themselves at
  • our coming and left unfinished teas behind them. Rugs and cushions lay
  • among the chairs, and two of the latter were, I noted, covered with
  • Union Jacks.
  • The vicar introduced us sketchily, and the faded Victorian wife regarded
  • my aunt with a mixture of conventional scorn and abject respect,
  • and talked to her in a languid, persistent voice about people in the
  • neighbourhood whom my aunt could not possibly know.
  • My aunt received these personalia cheerfully, with her blue eyes
  • flitting from point to point, and coming back again and again to the
  • pinched faces of the daughters and the cross upon the eldest’s breast.
  • Encouraged by my aunt’s manner, the vicar’s wife grew patronising and
  • kindly, and made it evident that she could do much to bridge the social
  • gulf between ourselves and the people of family about us.
  • I had just snatches of that conversation. “Mrs. Merridew brought him
  • quite a lot of money. Her father, I believe, had been in the Spanish
  • wine trade--quite a lady though. And after that he fell off his horse
  • and cracked his brain pan and took to fishing and farming. I’m sure
  • you’ll like to know them. He’s most amusing.... The daughter had a
  • disappointment and went to China as a missionary and got mixed up in a
  • massacre.”...
  • “The most beautiful silks and things she brought back, you’d hardly
  • believe!”
  • “Yes, they gave them to propitiate her. You see, they didn’t understand
  • the difference, and they thought that as they’d been massacring people,
  • THEY’D be massacred. They didn’t understand the difference Christianity
  • makes.”...
  • “Seven bishops they’ve had in the family!”
  • “Married a Papist and was quite lost to them.”...
  • “He failed some dreadful examination and had to go into the militia.”...
  • “So she bit his leg as hard as ever she could and he let go.”...
  • “Had four of his ribs amputated.”...
  • “Caught meningitis and was carried off in a week.”
  • “Had to have a large piece of silver tube let into his throat, and if he
  • wants to talk he puts his finger on it. It makes him so interesting, I
  • think. You feel he’s sincere somehow. A most charming man in every way.”
  • “Preserved them both in spirits very luckily, and there they are in his
  • study, though of course he doesn’t show them to everybody.”
  • The silent lady, unperturbed by these apparently exciting topics,
  • scrutinised my aunt’s costume with a singular intensity, and was visibly
  • moved when she unbuttoned her dust cloak and flung it wide. Meanwhile we
  • men conversed, one of the more spirited daughters listened brightly, and
  • the youths lay on the grass at our feet. My uncle offered them cigars,
  • but they both declined,--out of bashfulness, it seemed to me, whereas
  • the vicar, I think, accepted out of tact. When we were not looking at
  • them directly, these young men would kick each other furtively.
  • Under the influence of my uncle’s cigar, the vicar’s mind had soared
  • beyond the limits of the district. “This Socialism,” he said, “seems
  • making great headway.”
  • My uncle shook his head. “We’re too individualistic in this country
  • for that sort of nonsense,” he said “Everybody’s business is nobody’s
  • business. That’s where they go wrong.”
  • “They have some intelligent people in their ranks, I am told,” said
  • the vicar, “writers and so forth. Quite a distinguished playwright, my
  • eldest daughter was telling me--I forget his name.
  • “Milly, dear! Oh! she’s not here. Painters, too, they have. This
  • Socialist, it seems to me, is part of the Unrest of the Age.... But, as
  • you say, the spirit of the people is against it. In the country, at any
  • rate. The people down here are too sturdily independent in their small
  • way--and too sensible altogether.”...
  • “It’s a great thing for Duffield to have Lady Grove occupied again,” he
  • was saying when my wandering attention came back from some attractive
  • casualty in his wife’s discourse. “People have always looked up to
  • the house and considering all things, old Mr. Durgan really was
  • extraordinarily good--extraordinarily good. You intend to give us a good
  • deal of your time here, I hope.”
  • “I mean to do my duty by the Parish,” said my uncle.
  • “I’m sincerely glad to hear it--sincerely. We’ve missed--the house
  • influence. An English village isn’t complete--People get out of hand.
  • Life grows dull. The young people drift away to London.”
  • He enjoyed his cigar gingerly for a moment.
  • “We shall look to you to liven things up,” he said, poor man!
  • My uncle cocked his cigar and removed it from his mouth.
  • “What you think the place wants?” he asked.
  • He did not wait for an answer. “I been thinking while you been
  • talking--things one might do. Cricket--a good English game--sports.
  • Build the chaps a pavilion perhaps. Then every village ought to have a
  • miniature rifle range.”
  • “Ye-ees,” said the vicar. “Provided, of course, there isn’t a constant
  • popping.”...
  • “Manage that all right,” said my uncle. “Thing’d be a sort of long shed.
  • Paint it red. British colour. Then there’s a Union Jack for the church
  • and the village school. Paint the school red, too, p’raps. Not enough
  • colour about now. Too grey. Then a maypole.”
  • “How far our people would take up that sort of thing--” began the vicar.
  • “I’m all for getting that good old English spirit back again,” said
  • my uncle. “Merrymakings. Lads and lasses dancing on the village green.
  • Harvest home. Fairings. Yule Log--all the rest of it.”
  • “How would old Sally Glue do for a May Queen?” asked one of the sons in
  • the slight pause that followed.
  • “Or Annie Glassbound?” said the other, with the huge virile guffaw of a
  • young man whose voice has only recently broken.
  • “Sally Glue is eighty-five,” explained the vicar, “and Annie Glassbound
  • is well--a young lady of extremely generous proportions. And not quite
  • right, you know. Not quite right--here.” He tapped his brow.
  • “Generous proportions!” said the eldest son, and the guffaws were
  • renewed.
  • “You see,” said the vicar, “all the brisker girls go into service in
  • or near London. The life of excitement attracts them. And no doubt
  • the higher wages have something to do with it. And the liberty to wear
  • finery. And generally--freedom from restraint. So that there might be
  • a little difficulty perhaps to find a May Queen here just at present who
  • was really young and er--pretty.... Of course I couldn’t think of any of
  • my girls--or anything of that sort.”
  • “We got to attract ‘em back,” said my uncle. “That’s what I feel about
  • it. We got to Buck-Up the country. The English country is a going
  • concern still; just as the Established Church--if you’ll excuse me
  • saying it, is a going concern. Just as Oxford is--or Cambridge. Or any
  • of those old, fine old things. Only it wants fresh capital, fresh
  • idees and fresh methods. Light railways, f’rinstance--scientific use of
  • drainage. Wire fencing machinery--all that.”
  • The vicar’s face for one moment betrayed dismay. Perhaps he was thinking
  • of his country walks amids the hawthorns and honeysuckle.
  • “There’s great things,” said my uncle, “to be done on Mod’un lines with
  • Village Jam and Pickles--boiled in the country.”
  • It was the reverberation of this last sentence in my mind, I think,
  • that sharpened my sentimental sympathy as we went through the straggling
  • village street and across the trim green on our way back to London.
  • It seemed that afternoon the most tranquil and idyllic collection of
  • creeper-sheltered homes you can imagine; thatch still lingered on a
  • whitewashed cottage or two, pyracanthus, wall-flowers, and daffodils
  • abounded, and an unsystematic orchard or so was white with blossom
  • above and gay with bulbs below. I noted a row of straw beehives,
  • beehive-shaped, beehives of the type long since condemned as inefficient
  • by all progressive minds, and in the doctor’s acre of grass a flock of
  • two whole sheep was grazing,--no doubt he’d taken them on account. Two
  • men and one old woman made gestures of abject vassalage, and my uncle
  • replied with a lordly gesture of his great motoring glove....
  • “England’s full of Bits like this,” said my uncle, leaning over the
  • front seat and looking back with great satisfaction. The black glare of
  • his goggles rested for a time on the receding turrets of Lady Grove just
  • peeping over the trees.
  • “I shall have a flagstaff, I think,” he considered. “Then one could show
  • when one is in residence. The villagers will like to know.”...
  • I reflected. “They will” I said. “They’re used to liking to know.”...
  • My aunt had been unusually silent. Suddenly she spoke. “He says Snap,”
  • she remarked; “he buys that place. And a nice old job of Housekeeping he
  • gives me! He sails through the village swelling like an old turkey. And
  • who’ll have to scoot the butler? Me! Who’s got to forget all she ever
  • knew and start again? Me! Who’s got to trek from Chiselhurst and be a
  • great lady? Me! ... You old Bother! Just when I was settling down and
  • beginning to feel at home.”
  • My uncle turned his goggles to her. “Ah! THIS time it is home, Susan....
  • We got there.”
  • VII
  • It seems to me now but a step from the buying of Lady Grove to the
  • beginning of Crest Hill, from the days when the former was a stupendous
  • achievement to the days when it was too small and dark and inconvenient
  • altogether for a great financier’s use. For me that was a period of
  • increasing detachment from our business and the great world of London; I
  • saw it more and more in broken glimpses, and sometimes I was working in
  • my little pavilion above Lady Grove for a fortnight together; even when
  • I came up it was often solely for a meeting of the aeronautical society
  • or for one of the learned societies or to consult literature or employ
  • searchers or some such special business. For my uncle it was a period
  • of stupendous inflation. Each time I met him I found him more confident,
  • more comprehensive, more consciously a factor in great affairs. Soon he
  • was no longer an associate of merely business men; he was big enough for
  • the attentions of greater powers.
  • I grew used to discovering some item of personal news about him in
  • my evening paper, or to the sight of a full-page portrait of him in a
  • sixpenny magazine. Usually the news was of some munificent act,
  • some romantic piece of buying or giving or some fresh rumour of
  • reconstruction. He saved, you will remember, the Parbury Reynolds
  • for the country. Or at times, it would be an interview or my uncle’s
  • contribution to some symposium on the “Secret of Success,” or such-like
  • topic. Or wonderful tales of his power of work, of his wonderful
  • organisation to get things done, of his instant decisions and remarkable
  • power of judging his fellow-men. They repeated his great mot: “Eight
  • hour working day--I want eighty hours!”
  • He became modestly but resolutely “public.” They cartooned him in Vanity
  • Fair. One year my aunt, looking indeed a very gracious, slender lady,
  • faced the portrait of the King in the great room at Burlington House,
  • and the next year saw a medallion of my uncle by Ewart, looking out upon
  • the world, proud and imperial, but on the whole a trifle too prominently
  • convex, from the walls of the New Gallery.
  • I shared only intermittently in his social experiences. People knew of
  • me, it is true, and many of them sought to make through me a sort of
  • flank attack upon him, and there was a legend, owing, very unreasonably,
  • partly to my growing scientific reputation and partly to an element of
  • reserve in my manner, that I played a much larger share in planning
  • his operations than was actually the case. This led to one or two very
  • intimate private dinners, to my inclusion in one or two house parties
  • and various odd offers of introductions and services that I didn’t for
  • the most part accept. Among other people who sought me in this way
  • was Archie Garvell, now a smart, impecunious soldier of no particular
  • distinction, who would, I think, have been quite prepared to develop any
  • sporting instincts I possessed, and who was beautifully unaware of our
  • former contact. He was always offering me winners; no doubt in a
  • spirit of anticipatory exchange for some really good thing in our more
  • scientific and certain method of getting something for nothing....
  • In spite of my preoccupation with my experiments, work, I did, I find
  • now that I come to ransack my impressions, see a great deal of the great
  • world during those eventful years; I had a near view of the machinery
  • by which an astounding Empire is run, rubbed shoulders and exchanged
  • experiences with bishops and statesmen, political women and women who
  • were not political, physicians and soldiers, artists and authors, the
  • directors of great journals, philanthropists and all sorts of eminent,
  • significant people. I saw the statesmen without their orders and the
  • bishops with but a little purple silk left over from their canonicals,
  • inhaling, not incensen but cigar smoke. I could look at them all the
  • better because, for the most part, they were not looking at me but at my
  • uncle, and calculating consciously or unconsciously how they might use
  • him and assimilate him to their system, the most unpremeditated, subtle,
  • successful and aimless plutocracy that ever encumbered the destinies of
  • mankind. Not one of them, so far as I could see, until disaster overtook
  • him, resented his lies, his almost naked dishonesty of method, the
  • disorderly disturbance of this trade and that, caused by his spasmodic
  • operations. I can see them now about him, see them polite, watchful,
  • various; his stiff compact little figure always a centre of
  • attention, his wiry hair, his brief nose, his under-lip, electric with
  • self-confidence. Wandering marginally through distinguished gatherings,
  • I would catch the whispers: “That’s Mr. Ponderevo!”
  • “The little man?”
  • “Yes, the little bounder with the glasses.”
  • “They say he’s made--”...
  • Or I would see him on some parterre of a platform beside my aunt’s
  • hurraying hat, amidst titles and costumes, “holding his end up,” as
  • he would say, subscribing heavily to obvious charities, even at times
  • making brief convulsive speeches in some good cause before the most
  • exalted audiences. “Mr. Chairman, your Royal Highness, my Lords, Ladies
  • and Gentlemen,B he would begin amidst subsiding applause and adjust
  • those obstinate glasses and thrust back the wings of his frock-coat and
  • rest his hands upon his hips and speak his fragment with ever and again
  • an incidental Zzzz. His hands would fret about him as he spoke, fiddle
  • his glasses, feel in his waistcoat pockets; ever and again he would rise
  • slowly to his toes as a sentence unwound jerkily like a clockwork snake,
  • and drop back on his heels at the end. They were the very gestures of
  • our first encounter when he had stood before the empty fireplace in his
  • minute draped parlour and talked of my future to my mother.
  • In those measurelessly long hot afternoons in the little shop at
  • Wimblehurst he had talked and dreamt of the Romance of Modern Commerce.
  • Here, surely, was his romance come true.
  • VIII
  • People say that my uncle lost his head at the crest of his fortunes,
  • but if one may tell so much truth of a man one has in a manner loved,
  • he never had very much head to lose. He was always imaginative, erratic,
  • inconsistent, recklessly inexact, and his inundation of wealth merely
  • gave him scope for these qualities. It is true, indeed, that towards
  • the climax he became intensely irritable at times and impatient of
  • contradiction, but that, I think, was rather the gnawing uneasiness of
  • sanity than any mental disturbance. But I find it hard either to judge
  • him or convey the full development of him to the reader. I saw too much
  • of him; my memory is choked with disarranged moods and aspects. Now
  • he is distended with megalomania, now he is deflated, now he is
  • quarrelsome, now impenetrably self-satisfied, but always he is sudden,
  • jerky, fragmentary, energetic, and--in some subtle fundamental way that
  • I find difficult to define--absurd.
  • There stands out--because of the tranquil beauty of its setting
  • perhaps--a talk we had in the veranda of the little pavilion near
  • my worksheds behind Crest Hill in which my aeroplanes and navigable
  • balloons were housed. It was one of many similar conversations, and I do
  • not know why it in particular should survive its fellows. It happens
  • so. He had come up to me after his coffee to consult me about a certain
  • chalice which in a moment of splendour and under the importunity of
  • a countess he had determined to give to a deserving church in the
  • east-end. I, in a moment of even rasher generosity, had suggested Ewart
  • as a possible artist. Ewart had produced at once an admirable sketch for
  • the sacred vessel surrounded by a sort of wreath of Millies with open
  • arms and wings and had drawn fifty pounds on the strength of it. After
  • that came a series of vexatious delays. The chalice became less and
  • less of a commercial man’s chalice, acquired more and more the elusive
  • quality of the Holy Grail, and at last even the drawing receded.
  • My uncle grew restive.... “You see, George, they’ll begin to want the
  • blasted thing!”
  • “What blasted thing?”
  • “That chalice, damn it! They’re beginning to ask questions. It isn’t
  • Business, George.”
  • “It’s art,” I protested, “and religion.”
  • “That’s all very well. But it’s not a good ad for us, George, to make a
  • promise and not deliver the goods.... I’ll have to write off your
  • friend Ewart as a bad debt, that’s what it comes to, and go to a decent
  • firm.”...
  • We sat outside on deck chairs in the veranda of the pavilion, smoked,
  • drank whisky, and, the chalice disposed of, meditated. His temporary
  • annoyance passed. It was an altogether splendid summer night, following
  • a blazing, indolent day. Full moonlight brought out dimly the lines
  • of the receding hills, one wave beyond another; far beyond were the
  • pin-point lights of Leatherhead, and in the foreground the little stage
  • from which I used to start upon my gliders gleamed like wet steel. The
  • season must have been high June, for down in the woods that hid the
  • lights of the Lady Grove windows, I remember the nightingales thrilled
  • and gurgled....
  • “We got here, George,” said my uncle, ending a long pause. “Didn’t I
  • say?”
  • “Say!--when?” I asked.
  • “In that hole in the To’nem Court Road, eh? It’s been a Straight Square
  • Fight, and here we are!”
  • I nodded.
  • “‘Member me telling you--Tono-Bungay?.... Well.... I’d just that
  • afternoon thought of it!”
  • “I’ve fancied at times;” I admitted.
  • “It’s a great world, George, nowadays, with a fair chance for every
  • one who lays hold of things. The career ouvert to the Talons--eh?
  • Tono-Bungay. Think of it! It’s a great world and a growing world, and
  • I’m glad we’re in it--and getting a pull. We’re getting big people,
  • George. Things come to us. Eh? This Palestine thing.”...
  • He meditated for a time and Zzzzed softly. Then he became still.
  • His theme was taken up by a cricket in the grass until he himself was
  • ready to resume it. The cricket too seemed to fancy that in some scheme
  • of its own it had got there. “Chirrrrrrup” it said; “chirrrrrrup.”
  • “Lord, what a place that was at Wimblehurst!” he broke out. “If ever
  • I get a day off we’ll motor there, George, and run over that dog that
  • sleeps in the High Street. Always was a dog asleep there--always.
  • Always... I’d like to see the old shop again. I daresay old Ruck still
  • stands between the sheep at his door, grinning with all his teeth, and
  • Marbel, silly beggar! comes out with his white apron on and a pencil
  • stuck behind his ear, trying to look awake... Wonder if they know it’s
  • me? I’d like ‘em somehow to know it’s me.”
  • “They’ll have had the International Tea Company and all sorts of people
  • cutting them up,” I said. “And that dog’s been on the pavement this six
  • years--can’t sleep even there, poor dear, because of the motor-horns and
  • its shattered nerves.”
  • “Movin’ everywhere,” said my uncle. “I expect you’re right.... It’s a
  • big time we’re in, George. It’s a big Progressive On-coming Imperial
  • Time. This Palestine business--the daring of it.... It’s, it’s a
  • Process, George. And we got our hands on it. Here we sit--with our hands
  • on it, George. Entrusted.
  • “It seems quiet to--night. But if we could see and hear.” He waved his
  • cigar towards Leatherhead and London.
  • “There they are, millions, George. Jes’ think of what they’ve been up to
  • to-day--those ten millions--each one doing his own particular job. You
  • can’t grasp it. It’s like old Whitman says--what is it he says? Well,
  • anyway it’s like old Whitman. Fine chap, Whitman! Fine old chap! Queer,
  • you can’t quote him. ... And these millions aren’t anything. There’s
  • the millions over seas, hundreds of millions, Chinese, M’rocco, Africa
  • generally, ‘Merica.... Well, here we are, with power, with leisure,
  • picked out--because we’ve been energetic, because we’ve seized
  • opportunities, because we’ve made things hum when other people have
  • waited for them to hum. See? Here we are--with our hands on it. Big
  • people. Big growing people. In a sort of way,--Forces.”
  • He paused. “It’s wonderful, George,” he said.
  • “Anglo-Saxon energy,” I said softly to the night.
  • “That’s it, George--energy. It’s put things in our grip--threads, wires,
  • stretching out and out, George, from that little office of ours, out to
  • West Africa, out to Egypt, out to Inja, out east, west, north and south.
  • Running the world practically. Running it faster and faster. Creative.
  • There’s that Palestine canal affair. Marvellous idee! Suppose we take
  • that up, suppose we let ourselves in for it, us and the others, and run
  • that water sluice from the Mediterranean into the Dead Sea Valley--think
  • of the difference it will make! All the desert blooming like a rose,
  • Jericho lost for ever, all the Holy Places under water.... Very likely
  • destroy Christianity.”...
  • He mused for a space. “Cuttin’ canals,” murmured my uncle. “Making
  • tunnels.... New countries.... New centres.... Zzzz.... Finance.... Not
  • only Palestine.
  • “I wonder where we shall get before we done, George? We got a lot of big
  • things going. We got the investing public sound and sure. I don’t see
  • why in the end we shouldn’t be very big. There’s difficulties but I’m
  • equal to them. We’re still a bit soft in our bones, but they’ll harden
  • all right.... I suppose, after all, I’m worth something like a million,
  • George, cleared up and settled. If I got out of things now. It’s a great
  • time, George, a wonderful time!”...
  • I glanced through the twilight at his convexity and I must confess it
  • struck me that on the whole he wasn’t particularly good value.
  • “We got our hands on things, George, us big people. We got to hang
  • together, George run the show. Join up with the old order like that
  • mill-wheel of Kipling’s. (Finest thing he ever wrote, George; I jes’
  • been reading it again. Made me buy Lady Grove.) Well, we got to run
  • the country, George. It’s ours. Make it a Scientific Organised Business
  • Enterprise. Put idees into it. ‘Lectrify it. Run the Press. Run all
  • sorts of developments. All sorts of developments. I been talking to Lord
  • Boom. I been talking to all sorts of people. Great things. Progress. The
  • world on business lines. Only jes’ beginning.”...
  • He fell into a deep meditation.
  • He Zzzzed for a time and ceased.
  • “YES,” he said at last in the tone of a man who has at last emerged with
  • ultimate solutions to the profoundest problems.
  • “What?” I said after a seemly pause.
  • My uncle hung fire for a moment and it seemed to me the fate of nations
  • trembled in the balance. Then he spoke as one who speaks from the very
  • bottom of his heart--and I think it was the very bottom of his heart.
  • “I’d jes’ like to drop into the Eastry Arms, jes’ when all those beggars
  • in the parlour are sittin’ down to whist, Ruck and Marbel and all, and
  • give ‘em ten minutes of my mind, George. Straight from the shoulder.
  • Jes’ exactly what I think of them. It’s a little thing, but I’d like to
  • do it jes’ once before I die.”...
  • He rested on that for some time Zzzz-ing.
  • Then he broke out at a new place in a tone of detached criticism.
  • “There’s Boom,” he reflected.
  • “It’s a wonderful system this old British system, George. It’s staid
  • and stable and yet it has a place for new men. We come up and take our
  • places. It’s almost expected. We take a hand. That’s where our Democracy
  • differs from America. Over there a man succeeds; all he gets is money.
  • Here there’s a system open to every one--practically.... Chaps like
  • Boom--come from nowhere.”
  • His voice ceased. I reflected upon the spirit of his words. Suddenly I
  • kicked my feet in the air, rolled on my side and sat up suddenly on my
  • deck chair with my legs down.
  • “You don’t mean it!” I said.
  • “Mean what, George?”
  • “Subscription to the party funds. Reciprocal advantage. Have we got to
  • that?”
  • “Whad you driving at, George?”
  • “You know. They’d never do it, man!”
  • “Do what?” he said feebly; and, “Why shouldn’t they?”
  • “They’d not even go to a baronetcy. NO!.... And yet, of course, there’s
  • Boom! And Collingshead and Gorver. They’ve done beer, they’ve done
  • snippets! After all Tono-Bungay--it’s not like a turf commission
  • agent or anything like that!... There have of course been some very
  • gentlemanly commission agents. It isn’t like a fool of a scientific man
  • who can’t make money!”
  • My uncle grunted; we’d differed on that issue before.
  • A malignant humour took possession of me. “What would they call you?”
  • I speculated. “The vicar would like Duffield. Too much like Duffer!
  • Difficult thing, a title.” I ran my mind over various possibilities.
  • “Why not take a leaf from a socialist tract I came upon yesterday. Chap
  • says we’re all getting delocalised. Beautiful word--delocalised! Why not
  • be the first delocalised peer? That gives you--Tono-Bungay! There is a
  • Bungay, you know. Lord Tono of Bungay--in bottles everywhere. Eh?”
  • My uncle astonished me by losing his temper.
  • “Damn it. George, you don’t seem to see I’m serious! You’re always
  • sneering at Tono-Bungay! As though it was some sort of swindle. It was
  • perfec’ly legitimate trade, perfec’ly legitimate. Good value and a
  • good article.... When I come up here and tell you plans and exchange
  • idees--you sneer at me. You do. You don’t see--it’s a big thing. It’s
  • a big thing. You got to get used to new circumstances. You got to face
  • what lies before us. You got to drop that tone.”
  • IX
  • My uncle was not altogether swallowed up in business and ambition. He
  • kept in touch with modern thought. For example, he was, I know, greatly
  • swayed by what he called “This Overman idee, Nietzsche--all that stuff.”
  • He mingled those comforting suggestions of a potent and exceptional
  • human being emancipated from the pettier limitations of integrity with
  • the Napoleonic legend. It gave his imagination a considerable outlet.
  • That Napoleonic legend! The real mischief of Napoleon’s immensely
  • disastrous and accidental career began only when he was dead and the
  • romantic type of mind was free to elaborate his character. I do believe
  • that my uncle would have made a far less egregious smash if there had
  • been no Napoleonic legend to misguide him. He was in many ways better
  • and infinitely kinder than his career. But when in doubt between
  • decent conduct and a base advantage, that cult came in more and more
  • influentially: “think of Napoleon; think what the inflexibly-wilful
  • Napoleon would have done with such scruples as yours;” that was the
  • rule, and the end was invariably a new step in dishonour.
  • My uncle was in an unsystematic way a collector of Napoleonic relics;
  • the bigger the book about his hero the more readily he bought it; he
  • purchased letters and tinsel and weapons that bore however remotely
  • upon the Man of Destiny, and he even secured in Geneva, though he never
  • brought home, an old coach in which Buonaparte might have ridden; he
  • crowded the quiet walls of Lady Grove with engravings and figures of
  • him, preferring, my aunt remarked, the more convex portraits with the
  • white vest and those statuettes with the hands behind the back which
  • threw forward the figure. The Durgans watched him through it all,
  • sardonically.
  • And he would stand after breakfast at times in the light of the window
  • at Lady Grove, a little apart, with two fingers of one hand stuck
  • between his waistcoat-buttons and his chin sunken, thinking,--the most
  • preposterous little fat man in the world. It made my aunt feel, she
  • said, “like an old Field Marshal--knocks me into a cocked hat, George!”
  • Perhaps this Napoleonic bias made him a little less frequent with his
  • cigars than he would otherwise have been, but of that I cannot be sure,
  • and it certainly caused my aunt a considerable amount of vexation after
  • he had read Napoleon and the Fair Sex, because for a time that roused
  • him to a sense of a side of life he had in his commercial preoccupations
  • very largely forgotten. Suggestion plays so great a part in this field.
  • My uncle took the next opportunity and had an “affair”!
  • It was not a very impassioned affair, and the exact particulars never of
  • course reached me. It is quite by chance I know anything of it at
  • all. One evening I was surprised to come upon my uncle in a mixture of
  • Bohemia and smart people at an At Home in the flat of Robbert, the R.A.
  • who painted my aunt, and he was standing a little apart in a recess,
  • talking or rather being talked to in undertones by a plump, blond
  • little woman in pale blue, a Helen Scrymgeour who wrote novels and was
  • organising a weekly magazine. I elbowed a large lady who was saying
  • something about them, but I didn’t need to hear the thing she said to
  • perceive the relationship of the two. It hit me like a placard on a
  • hoarding. I was amazed the whole gathering did not see it. Perhaps they
  • did. She was wearing a remarkably fine diamond necklace, much too fine
  • for journalism, and regarding him with that quality of questionable
  • proprietorship, of leashed but straining intimacy, that seems
  • inseparable from this sort of affair. It is so much more palpable than
  • matrimony. If anything was wanted to complete my conviction it was
  • my uncles’s eyes when presently he became aware of mine, a certain
  • embarrassment and a certain pride and defiance. And the next day he made
  • an opportunity to praise the lady’s intelligence to me concisely, lest I
  • should miss the point of it all.
  • After that I heard some gossip--from a friend of the lady’s. I was
  • much too curious to do anything but listen. I had never in all my life
  • imagined my uncle in an amorous attitude. It would appear that she
  • called him her “God in the Car”--after the hero in a novel of Anthony
  • Hope’s. It was essential to the convention of their relations that he
  • should go relentlessly whenever business called, and it was generally
  • arranged that it did call. To him women were an incident, it was
  • understood between them; Ambition was the master-passion. A great world
  • called him and the noble hunger for Power. I have never been able to
  • discover just how honest Mrs. Scrymgeour was in all this, but it is
  • quite possible the immense glamour of his financial largeness prevailed
  • with her and that she did bring a really romantic feeling to their
  • encounters. There must have been some extraordinary moments....
  • I was a good deal exercised and distressed about my aunt when I realised
  • what was afoot. I thought it would prove a terrible humiliation to her.
  • I suspected her of keeping up a brave front with the loss of my uncle’s
  • affections fretting at her heart, but there I simply underestimated her.
  • She didn’t hear for some time and when she did hear she was extremely
  • angry and energetic. The sentimental situation didn’t trouble her for
  • a moment. She decided that my uncle “wanted smacking.” She accentuated
  • herself with an unexpected new hat, went and gave him an inconceivable
  • talking-to at the Hardingham, and then came round to “blow-up” me for
  • not telling her what was going on before....
  • I tried to bring her to a proper sense of the accepted values in this
  • affair, but my aunt’s originality of outlook was never so invincible.
  • “Men don’t tell on one another in affairs of passion,” I protested, and
  • such-like worldly excuses.
  • “Women!” she said in high indignation, “and men! It isn’t women and
  • men--it’s him and me, George! Why don’t you talk sense?
  • “Old passion’s all very well, George, in its way, and I’m the last
  • person to be jealous. But this is old nonsense.... I’m not going to let
  • him show off what a silly old lobster he is to other women....
  • I’ll mark every scrap of his underclothes with red letters,
  • ‘Ponderevo-Private’--every scrap.
  • “Going about making love indeed,--in abdominal belts!--at his time of
  • life!”
  • I cannot imagine what passed between her and my uncle. But I have no
  • doubt that for once her customary badinage was laid aside. How they
  • talked then I do not know, for I who knew them so well had never heard
  • that much of intimacy between them. At any rate it was a concerned and
  • preoccupied “God in the Car” I had to deal with in the next few days,
  • unusually Zzzz-y and given to slight impatient gestures that had nothing
  • to do with the current conversation. And it was evident that in all
  • directions he was finding things unusually difficult to explain.
  • All the intimate moments in this affair were hidden from me, but in
  • the end my aunt triumphed. He did not so much throw as jerk over Mrs.
  • Scrymgeour, and she did not so much make a novel of it as upset a huge
  • pailful of attenuated and adulterated female soul upon this occasion.
  • My aunt did not appear in that, even remotely. So that it is doubtful
  • if the lady knew the real causes of her abandonment. The Napoleonic hero
  • was practically unmarried, and he threw over his lady as Napoleon threw
  • over Josephine for a great alliance.
  • It was a triumph for my aunt, but it had its price. For some time it was
  • evident things were strained between them. He gave up the lady, but he
  • resented having to do so, deeply. She had meant more to his imagination
  • than one could have supposed. He wouldn’t for a long time “come round.”
  • He became touchy and impatient and secretive towards my aunt, and she, I
  • noted, after an amazing check or so, stopped that stream of kindly abuse
  • that had flowed for so long and had been so great a refreshment in their
  • lives. They were both the poorer for its cessation, both less happy.
  • She devoted herself more and more to Lady Grove and the humours and
  • complications of its management. The servants took to her--as they
  • say--she god-mothered three Susans during her rule, the coachman’s, the
  • gardener’s, and the Up Hill gamekeeper’s. She got together a library of
  • old household books that were in the vein of the place. She revived the
  • still-room, and became a great artist in jellies and elder and cowslip
  • wine.
  • X
  • And while I neglected the development of my uncle’s finances--and
  • my own, in my scientific work and my absorbing conflict with the
  • difficulties of flying,--his schemes grew more and more expansive and
  • hazardous, and his spending wilder and laxer. I believe that a haunting
  • sense of the intensifying unsoundness of his position accounts largely
  • for his increasing irritability and his increasing secretiveness with my
  • aunt and myself during these crowning years. He dreaded, I think, having
  • to explain, he feared our jests might pierce unwittingly to the truth.
  • Even in the privacy of his mind he would not face the truth. He was
  • accumulating unrealisable securities in his safes until they hung a
  • potential avalanche over the economic world. But his buying became a
  • fever, and his restless desire to keep it up with himself that he was
  • making a triumphant progress to limitless wealth gnawed deeper and
  • deeper. A curious feature of this time with him was his buying over and
  • over again of similar things. His ideas seemed to run in series. Within
  • a twelve-month he bought five new motor-cars, each more swift and
  • powerful than its predecessor, and only the repeated prompt resignation
  • of his chief chauffeur at each moment of danger, prevented his driving
  • them himself. He used them more and more. He developed a passion for
  • locomotion for its own sake.
  • Then he began to chafe at Lady Grove, fretted by a chance jest he had
  • overheard at a dinner. “This house, George,” he said. “It’s a misfit.
  • There’s no elbow-room in it; it’s choked with old memories. And I can’t
  • stand all these damned Durgans!
  • “That chap in the corner, George. No! the other corner! The man in a
  • cherry-coloured coat. He watched you! He’d look silly if I stuck a poker
  • through his Gizzard!”
  • “He’d look,” I reflected, “much as he does now. As though he was
  • amused.”
  • He replaced his glasses, which had fallen at his emotion, and glared at
  • his antagonists. “What are they? What are they all, the lot of ‘em?
  • Dead as Mutton! They just stuck in the mud. They didn’t even rise to the
  • Reformation. The old out-of-date Reformation! Move with the times!--they
  • moved against the times.
  • “Just a Family of Failure,--they never even tried!
  • “They’re jes’, George, exactly what I’m not. Exactly. It isn’t
  • suitable.... All this living in the Past.
  • “And I want a bigger place too, George. I want air and sunlight and
  • room to move about and more service. A house where you can get a Move
  • on things! Zzzz. Why! it’s like a discord--it jars--even to have the
  • telephone.... There’s nothing, nothing except the terrace, that’s worth
  • a Rap. It’s all dark and old and dried up and full of old-fashioned
  • things--musty old idees--fitter for a silver-fish than a modern man....
  • I don’t know how I got here.”
  • He broke out into a new grievance. “That damned vicar,” he complained,
  • “thinks I ought to think myself lucky to get this place! Every time I
  • meet him I can see him think it.... One of these days, George I’ll show
  • him what a Mod’un house is like!”
  • And he did.
  • I remember the day when he declared, as Americans say, for Crest
  • Hill. He had come up to see my new gas plant, for I was then only just
  • beginning to experiment with auxiliary collapsible balloons, and all
  • the time the shine of his glasses was wandering away to the open down
  • beyond. “Let’s go back to Lady Grove over the hill,” he said. “Something
  • I want to show you. Something fine!”
  • It was an empty sunlit place that summer evening, sky and earth
  • warm with sundown, and a pe-wit or so just accentuating the pleasant
  • stillness that ends a long clear day. A beautiful peace, it was, to
  • wreck for ever. And there was my uncle, the modern man of power, in his
  • grey top-hat and his grey suit and his black-ribboned glasses, short,
  • thin-legged, large-stomached, pointing and gesticulating, threatening
  • this calm.
  • He began with a wave of his arm. “That’s the place, George,” he said.
  • “See?”
  • “Eh!” I cried--for I had been thinking of remote things.
  • “I got it.”
  • “Got what?”
  • “For a house!--a Twentieth Century house! That’s the place for it!”
  • One of his characteristic phrases was begotten in him.
  • “Four-square to the winds of heaven, George!” he said. “Eh? Four-square
  • to the winds of heaven!”
  • “You’ll get the winds up here,” I said.
  • “A mammoth house it ought to be, George--to suit these hills.”
  • “Quite,” I said.
  • “Great galleries and things--running out there and there--See? I been
  • thinking of it, George! Looking out all this way--across the Weald. With
  • its back to Lady Grove.”
  • “And the morning sun in its eye.”
  • “Like an eagle, George,--like an eagle!”
  • So he broached to me what speedily became the leading occupation of
  • his culminating years, Crest Hill. But all the world has heard of that
  • extravagant place which grew and changed its plans as it grew, and
  • bubbled like a salted snail, and burgeoned and bulged and evermore
  • grew. I know not what delirium of pinnacles and terraces and arcades and
  • corridors glittered at last upon the uplands of his mind; the place,
  • for all that its expansion was terminated abruptly by our collapse, is
  • wonderful enough as it stands,--that empty instinctive building of a
  • childless man. His chief architect was a young man named Westminster,
  • whose work he had picked out in the architecture room of the Royal
  • Academy on account of a certain grandiose courage in it, but with him
  • he associated from time to time a number of fellow professionals,
  • stonemasons, sanitary engineers, painters, sculptors, scribes, metal
  • workers, wood carvers, furniture designers, ceramic specialists,
  • landscape gardeners, and the man who designs the arrangement and
  • ventilation of the various new houses in the London Zoological Gardens.
  • In addition he had his own ideas. The thing occupied his mind at all
  • times, but it held it completely from Friday night to Monday morning.
  • He would come down to Lady Grove on Friday night in a crowded motor-car
  • that almost dripped architects. He didn’t, however, confine himself to
  • architects; every one was liable to an invitation to week-end and view
  • Crest Hill, and many an eager promoter, unaware of how Napoleonically
  • and completely my uncle had departmentalised his mind, tried to creep up
  • to him by way of tiles and ventilators and new electric fittings. Always
  • on Sunday mornings, unless the weather was vile, he would, so soon as
  • breakfast and his secretaries were disposed of, visit the site with a
  • considerable retinue, and alter and develop plans, making modifications,
  • Zzzz-ing, giving immense new orders verbally--an unsatisfactory way, as
  • Westminster and the contractors ultimately found.
  • There he stands in my memory, the symbol of this age for me, the man of
  • luck and advertisement, the current master of the world. There he
  • stands upon the great outward sweep of the terrace before the huge
  • main entrance, a little figure, ridiculously disproportionate to that
  • forty-foot arch, with the granite ball behind him--the astronomical
  • ball, brass coopered, that represented the world, with a little
  • adjustable tube of lenses on a gun-metal arm that focussed the sun
  • upon just that point of the earth on which it chanced to be shining
  • vertically. There he stands, Napoleonically grouped with his retinue men
  • in tweeds and golfing-suits, a little solicitor, whose name I forget,
  • in grey trousers and a black jacket, and Westminster in Jaeger
  • underclothing, a floriferous tie, and peculiar brown cloth of his own.
  • The downland breeze flutters my uncle’s coat-tails, disarranges his
  • stiff hair, and insists on the evidence of undisciplined appetites in
  • face and form, as he points out this or that feature in the prospect to
  • his attentive collaborator.
  • Below are hundreds of feet of wheeling-planks, ditches, excavations,
  • heaps of earth, piles of garden stone from the Wealden ridges. On either
  • hand the walls of his irrelevant unmeaning palace rise at one time he
  • had working in that place--disturbing the economic balance of the whole
  • countryside by their presence--upwards of three thousand men....
  • So he poses for my picture amidst the raw beginnings that were never to
  • be completed. He did the strangest things about that place, things more
  • and more detached from any conception of financial scale, things more
  • and more apart from sober humanity. He seemed to think himself, at last,
  • released from any such limitations. He moved a quite considerable hill,
  • and nearly sixty mature trees were moved with it to open his prospect
  • eastward, moved it about two hundred feet to the south. At another
  • time he caught a suggestion from some city restaurant and made a
  • billiard-room roofed with plate glass beneath the waters of his
  • ornamental lake. He furnished one wing while its roof still awaited
  • completion. He had a swimming bath thirty feet square next to his
  • bedroom upstairs, and to crown it all he commenced a great wall to hold
  • all his dominions together, free from the invasion of common men. It
  • was a ten-foot wall, glass surmounted, and had it been completed as he
  • intended it, it would have had a total length of nearly eleven miles.
  • Some of it towards the last was so dishonestly built that it collapsed
  • within a year upon its foundations, but some miles of it still stand. I
  • never think of it now but what I think of the hundreds of eager little
  • investors who followed his “star,” whose hopes and lives, whose wives’
  • security and children’s prospects are all mixed up beyond redemption
  • with that flaking mortar....
  • It is curious how many of these modern financiers of chance and bluff
  • have ended their careers by building. It was not merely my uncle. Sooner
  • or later they all seem to bring their luck to the test of realisation,
  • try to make their fluid opulence coagulate out as bricks and mortar,
  • bring moonshine into relations with a weekly wages-sheet. Then the whole
  • fabric of confidence and imagination totters--and down they come....
  • When I think of that despoiled hillside, that colossal litter of bricks
  • and mortar, and crude roads and paths, the scaffolding and sheds, the
  • general quality of unforeseeing outrage upon the peace of nature, I
  • am reminded of a chat I had with the vicar one bleak day after he had
  • witnessed a glide. He talked to me of aeronautics as I stood in jersey
  • and shorts beside my machine, fresh from alighting, and his cadaverous
  • face failed to conceal a peculiar desolation that possessed him.
  • “Almost you convince me,” he said, coming up to me, “against my will....
  • A marvellous invention! But it will take you a long time, sir, before
  • you can emulate that perfect mechanism--the wing of a bird.”
  • He looked at my sheds.
  • “You’ve changed the look of this valley, too,” he said.
  • “Temporary defilements,” I remarked, guessing what was in his mind.
  • “Of course. Things come and go. Things come and go. But--H’m. I’ve
  • just been up over the hill to look at Mr. Edward Ponderevo’s new house.
  • That--that is something more permanent. A magnificent place!--in many
  • ways. Imposing. I’ve never somehow brought myself to go that way before.
  • Things are greatly advanced.... We find--the great number of strangers
  • introduced into the villages about here by these operations, working-men
  • chiefly, a little embarrassing. It put us out. They bring a new
  • spirit into the place; betting--ideas--all sorts of queer notions.
  • Our publicans like it, of course. And they come and sleep in one’s
  • outhouses--and make the place a little unsafe at nights. The other
  • morning I couldn’t sleep--a slight dyspepsia--and I looked out of
  • the window. I was amazed to see people going by on bicycles. A silent
  • procession. I counted ninety-seven--in the dawn. All going up to the new
  • road for Crest Hill. Remarkable I thought it. And so I’ve been up to see
  • what they were doing.”
  • “They would have been more than remarkable thirty years ago,” I said.
  • “Yes, indeed. Things change. We think nothing of it now at
  • all--comparatively. And that big house--”
  • He raised his eyebrows. “Really stupendous! Stupendous.
  • “All the hillside--the old turf--cut to ribbons!”
  • His eye searched my face. “We’ve grown so accustomed to look up to Lady
  • Grove,” he said, and smiled in search of sympathy. “It shifts our centre
  • of gravity.”
  • “Things will readjust themselves,” I lied.
  • He snatched at the phrase. “Of course,” he said.
  • “They’ll readjust themselves--settle down again. Must. In the old way.
  • It’s bound to come right again--a comforting thought. Yes. After all,
  • Lady Grove itself had to be built once upon a time--was--to begin
  • with--artificial.”
  • His eye returned to my aeroplane. He sought to dismiss his graver
  • preoccupations. “I should think twice,” he remarked, “before I trusted
  • myself to that concern.... But I suppose one grows accustomed to the
  • motion.”
  • He bade me good morning and went his way, bowed and thoughtful....
  • He had kept the truth from his mind a long time, but that morning it had
  • forced its way to him with an aspect that brooked no denial that this
  • time it was not just changes that were coming in his world, but that all
  • his world lay open and defenceless, conquered and surrendered, doomed so
  • far as he could see, root and branch, scale and form alike, to change.
  • CHAPTER THE THIRD
  • SOARING
  • I
  • For nearly all the time that my uncle was incubating and hatching
  • Crest Hill I was busy in a little transverse valley between that
  • great beginning and Lady Grove with more and more costly and ambitious
  • experiments in aerial navigation. This work was indeed the main
  • substance of my life through all the great time of the Tono-Bungay
  • symphony.
  • I have told already how I came to devote myself to this system of
  • inquiries, how in a sort of disgust with the common adventure of life
  • I took up the dropped ends of my college studies, taking them up again
  • with a man’s resolution instead of a boy’s ambition. From the first
  • I did well at this work. It--was, I think, largely a case of special
  • aptitude, of a peculiar irrelevant vein of faculty running through my
  • mind. It is one of those things men seem to have by chance, that has
  • little or nothing to do with their general merit, and which it is
  • ridiculous to be either conceited or modest about. I did get through
  • a very big mass of work in those years, working for a time with a
  • concentrated fierceness that left little of such energy or capacity as
  • I possess unused. I worked out a series of problems connected with the
  • stability of bodies pitching in the air and the internal movements of
  • the wind, and I also revolutionised one leading part at last of the
  • theory of explosive engines. These things are to be found in the
  • Philosophical Transactions, the Mathematical Journal, and less
  • frequently in one or two other such publications, and they needn’t
  • detain us here. Indeed, I doubt if I could write about them here. One
  • acquires a sort of shorthand for one’s notes and mind in relation to
  • such special work. I have never taught; nor lectured, that is to say,
  • I have never had to express my thoughts about mechanical things in
  • ordinary everyday language, and I doubt very much if I could do so now
  • without extreme tedium.
  • My work was, to begin with, very largely theoretical. I was able to
  • attack such early necessities of verification as arose with quite little
  • models, using a turntable to get the motion through the air, and
  • cane, whalebone and silk as building material. But a time came when
  • incalculable factors crept in, factors of human capacity and factors of
  • insufficient experimental knowledge, when one must needs guess and
  • try. Then I had to enlarge the scale of my operations, and soon I had
  • enlarged them very greatly. I set to work almost concurrently on the
  • balance and stability of gliders and upon the steering of inflated bags,
  • the latter a particularly expensive branch of work. I was no doubt moved
  • by something of the same spirit of lavish expenditure that was running
  • away with my uncle in these developments. Presently my establishment
  • above Lady Grove had grown to a painted wood chalet big enough to
  • accommodate six men, and in which I would sometimes live for three
  • weeks together; to a gasometer, to a motor-house, to three big
  • corrugated-roofed sheds and lock-up houses, to a stage from which to
  • start gliders, to a workshop and so forth. A rough road was made. We
  • brought up gas from Cheaping and electricity from Woking, which place
  • I found also afforded a friendly workshop for larger operations than
  • I could manage. I had the luck also to find a man who seemed my
  • heaven-sent second-in-command--Cothope his name was. He was a
  • self-educated-man; he had formerly been a sapper and he was one of the
  • best and handiest working engineers alive. Without him I do not think I
  • could have achieved half what I have done. At times he has been not so
  • much my assistant as my collaborator, and has followed my fortunes to
  • this day. Other men came and went as I needed them.
  • I do not know how far it is possible to convey to any one who has not
  • experienced it, the peculiar interest, the peculiar satisfaction that
  • lies in a sustained research when one is not hampered by want of money.
  • It is a different thing from any other sort of human effort. You
  • are free from the exasperating conflict with your fellow-creatures
  • altogether--at least so far as the essential work goes; that for me is
  • its peculiar merit. Scientific truth is the remotest of mistresses;
  • she hides in strange places, she is attained by tortuous and laborious
  • roads, but SHE IS ALWAYS THERE! Win to her and she will not fail you;
  • she is yours and mankind’s for ever. She is reality, the one reality I
  • have found in this strange disorder of existence. She will not sulk with
  • you nor misunderstand you nor cheat you of your reward upon some petty
  • doubt. You cannot change her by advertisement or clamour, nor stifle her
  • in vulgarities. Things grow under your hands when you serve her, things
  • that are permanent as nothing else is permanent in the whole life of
  • man. That, I think, is the peculiar satisfaction of science and its
  • enduring reward....
  • The taking up of experimental work produced a great change in my
  • personal habits. I have told how already once in my life at Wimblehurst
  • I had a period of discipline and continuous effort, and how, when I
  • came to South Kensington, I became demoralised by the immense effect
  • of London, by its innumerable imperative demands upon my attention and
  • curiosity. And I parted with much of my personal pride when I gave
  • up science for the development of Tono-Bungay. But my poverty kept me
  • abstinent and my youthful romanticism kept me chaste until my married
  • life was well under way. Then in all directions I relaxed. I did a large
  • amount of work, but I never troubled to think whether it was my maximum
  • nor whether the moods and indolences that came to me at times were
  • avoidable things. With the coming of plenty I ate abundantly and
  • foolishly, drank freely and followed my impulses more and more
  • carelessly. I felt no reason why I should do anything else. Never at any
  • point did I use myself to the edge of my capacity. The emotional crisis
  • of my divorce did not produce any immediate change in these matters of
  • personal discipline. I found some difficulty at first in concentrating
  • my mind upon scientific work, it was so much more exacting than
  • business, but I got over that difficulty by smoking. I became an
  • inordinate cigar smoker; it gave me moods of profound depression, but
  • I treated these usually by the homeopathic method,--by lighting another
  • cigar. I didn’t realise at all how loose my moral and nervous fibre had
  • become until I reached the practical side of my investigations and was
  • face to face with the necessity of finding out just how it felt to use a
  • glider and just what a man could do with one.
  • I got into this relaxed habit of living in spite of very real
  • tendencies in my nature towards discipline. I’ve never been in love with
  • self-indulgence. That philosophy of the loose lip and the lax paunch
  • is one for which I’ve always had an instinctive distrust. I like bare
  • things, stripped things, plain, austere and continent things, fine lines
  • and cold colours. But in these plethoric times when there is too much
  • coarse stuff for everybody and the struggle for life takes the form of
  • competitive advertisement and the effort to fill your neighbour’s eye,
  • when there is no urgent demand either for personal courage, sound nerves
  • or stark beauty, we find ourselves by accident. Always before these
  • times the bulk of the people did not over-eat themselves, because they
  • couldn’t, whether they wanted to do so or not, and all but a very few
  • were kept “fit” by unavoidable exercise and personal danger. Now, if
  • only he pitch his standard low enough and keep free from pride, almost
  • any one can achieve a sort of excess. You can go through contemporary
  • life fudging and evading, indulging and slacking, never really hungry
  • nor frightened nor passionately stirred, your highest moment a mere
  • sentimental orgasm, and your first real contact with primary and
  • elemental necessities, the sweat of your death-bed. So I think it was
  • with my uncle; so, very nearly, it was with me.
  • But the glider brought me up smartly. I had to find out how these things
  • went down the air, and the only way to find out is to go down with one.
  • And for a time I wouldn’t face it.
  • There is something impersonal about a book, I suppose. At any rate I
  • find myself able to write down here just the confession I’ve never been
  • able to make to any one face to face, the frightful trouble it was to
  • me to bring myself to do what I suppose every other coloured boy in the
  • West Indies could do without turning a hair, and that is to fling myself
  • off for my first soar down the wind. The first trial was bound to be the
  • worst; it was an experiment I made with life, and the chance of death or
  • injury was, I supposed, about equal to the chance of success. I believed
  • that with a dawn-like lucidity. I had begun with a glider that I
  • imagined was on the lines of the Wright brothers’ aeroplane, but I could
  • not be sure. It might turn over. I might upset it. It might burrow its
  • nose at the end and smash itself and me. The conditions of the flight
  • necessitated alert attention; it wasn’t a thing to be done by jumping
  • off and shutting one’s eyes or getting angry or drunk to do it. One
  • had to use one’s weight to balance. And when at last I did it it was
  • horrible--for ten seconds. For ten seconds or so, as I swept down the
  • air flattened on my infernal framework and with the wind in my eyes, the
  • rush of the ground beneath me filled me with sick and helpless terror;
  • I felt as though some violent oscillatory current was throbbing in brain
  • and back bone, and I groaned aloud. I set my teeth and groaned. It was
  • a groan wrung out of me in spite of myself. My sensations of terror
  • swooped to a climax. And then, you know, they ended!
  • Suddenly my terror was over and done with. I was soaring through the air
  • right way up, steadily, and no mischance had happened. I felt intensely
  • alive and my nerves were strung like a bow. I shifted a limb, swerved
  • and shouted between fear and triumph as I recovered from the swerve and
  • heeled the other way and steadied myself.
  • I thought I was going to hit a rook that was flying athwart me,--it
  • was queer with what projectile silence that jumped upon me out of
  • nothingness, and I yelled helplessly, “Get out of the way!” The bird
  • doubled itself up like a partly inverted V, flapped, went up to the
  • right abruptly and vanished from my circle of interest. Then I saw
  • the shadow of my aeroplane keeping a fixed distance before me and very
  • steady, and the turf as it seemed streaming out behind it. The turf!--it
  • wasn’t after all streaming so impossibly fast.
  • When I came gliding down to the safe spread of level green I had chosen,
  • I was as cool and ready as a city clerk who drops off an omnibus in
  • motion, and I had learnt much more than soaring. I tilted up her nose
  • at the right moment, levelled again and grounded like a snowflake on a
  • windless day. I lay flat for an instant and then knelt up and got on my
  • feet atremble, but very satisfied with myself. Cothope was running down
  • the hill to me. ...
  • But from that day I went into training, and I kept myself in training
  • for many months. I had delayed my experiments for very nearly six weeks
  • on various excuses because of my dread of this first flight, because of
  • the slackness of body and spirit that had come to me with the business
  • life. The shame of that cowardice spurred me none the less because it
  • was probably altogether my own secret. I felt that Cothope at any rate
  • might suspect. Well,--he shouldn’t suspect again.
  • It is curious that I remember that shame and self accusation and its
  • consequences far more distinctly than I recall the weeks of vacillation
  • before I soared. For a time I went altogether without alcohol, I stopped
  • smoking altogether and ate very sparingly, and every day I did something
  • that called a little upon my nerves and muscles. I soared as frequently
  • as I could. I substituted a motor-bicycle for the London train and took
  • my chances in the southward traffic, and I even tried what thrills were
  • to be got upon a horse. But they put me on made horses, and I conceived
  • a perhaps unworthy contempt for the certitudes of equestrian exercise
  • in comparison with the adventures of mechanism. Also I walked along the
  • high wall at the back of Lady Grove garden, and at last brought myself
  • to stride the gap where the gate comes. If I didn’t altogether get rid
  • of a certain giddy instinct by such exercises, at least I trained my
  • will until it didn’t matter. And soon I no longer dreaded flight, but
  • was eager to go higher into the air, and I came to esteem soaring upon
  • a glider, that even over the deepest dip in the ground had barely forty
  • feet of fall beneath it, a mere mockery of what flight might be. I began
  • to dream of the keener freshness in the air high above the beechwoods,
  • and it was rather to satisfy that desire than as any legitimate
  • development of my proper work that presently I turned a part of my
  • energies and the bulk of my private income to the problem of the
  • navigable balloon.
  • II
  • I had gone far beyond that initial stage; I had had two smashes and a
  • broken rib which my aunt nursed with great energy, and was getting some
  • reputation in the aeronautic world when, suddenly, as though she had
  • never really left it, the Honourable Beatrice Normandy, dark-eyed, and
  • with the old disorderly wave of the hair from her brow, came back into
  • my life. She came riding down a grass path in the thickets below Lady
  • Grove, perched up on a huge black horse, and the old Earl of Carnaby
  • and Archie Garvell, her half-brother, were with her. My uncle had been
  • bothering me about the Crest Hill hot-water pipes, and we were returning
  • by a path transverse to theirs and came out upon them suddenly. Old
  • Carnaby was trespassing on our ground, and so he hailed us in a friendly
  • fashion and pulled up to talk to us.
  • I didn’t note Beatrice at all at first. I was interested in Lord
  • Carnaby, that remarkable vestige of his own brilliant youth. I had heard
  • of him, but never seen him. For a man of sixty-five who had sinned all
  • the sins, so they said, and laid waste the most magnificent political
  • debut of any man of his generation, he seemed to me to be looking
  • remarkably fit and fresh. He was a lean little man with grey-blue eyes
  • in his brown face, and his cracked voice was the worst thing in his
  • effect.
  • “Hope you don’t mind us coming this way, Ponderevo,” he cried; and my
  • uncle, who was sometimes a little too general and generous with titles,
  • answered, “Not at all, my lord, not at all! Glad you make use of it!”
  • “You’re building a great place over the hill,” said Carnaby.
  • “Thought I’d make a show for once,” said my uncle. “It looks big because
  • it’s spread out for the sun.”
  • “Air and sunlight,” said the earl. “You can’t have too much of them. But
  • before our time they used to build for shelter and water and the high
  • road.”
  • Then I discovered that the silent figure behind the earl was Beatrice.
  • I’d forgotten her sufficiently to think for a moment that she hadn’t
  • changed at all since she had watched me from behind the skirts of Lady
  • Drew. She was looking at me, and her dainty brow under her broad brimmed
  • hat--she was wearing a grey hat and loose unbuttoned coat--was knit with
  • perplexity, trying, I suppose, to remember where she had seen me before.
  • Her shaded eyes met mine with that mute question....
  • It seemed incredible to me she didn’t remember.
  • “Well,” said the earl and touched his horse.
  • Garvell was patting the neck of his horse, which was inclined to fidget,
  • and disregarding me. He nodded over his shoulder and followed. His
  • movement seemed to release a train of memories in her. She glanced
  • suddenly at him and then back at me with a flash of recognition that
  • warmed instantly to a faint smile. She hesitated as if to speak to me,
  • smiled broadly and understandingly and turned to follow the others.
  • All three broke into a canter and she did not look back. I stood for a
  • second or so at the crossing of the lanes, watching her recede, and then
  • became aware that my uncle was already some paces off and talking over
  • his shoulder in the belief that I was close behind. I turned about and
  • strode to overtake him. My mind was full of Beatrice and this surprise.
  • I remembered her simply as a Normandy. I’d clean forgotten that Garvell
  • was the son and she the step-daughter of our neighbour, Lady Osprey.
  • Indeed, I’d probably forgotten at that time that we had Lady Osprey as a
  • neighbour. There was no reason at all for remembering it. It was amazing
  • to find her in this Surrey countryside, when I’d never thought of her
  • as living anywhere in the world but at Bladesover Park, near forty miles
  • and twenty years away. She was so alive--so unchanged! The same quick
  • warm blood was in her cheeks. It seemed only yesterday that we had
  • kissed among the bracken stems....
  • “Eh?” I said.
  • “I say he’s good stuff,” said my uncle. “You can say what you like
  • against the aristocracy, George; Lord Carnaby’s rattling good stuff.
  • There’s a sort of Savoir Faire, something--it’s an old-fashioned phrase,
  • George, but a good one there’s a Bong-Tong.... It’s like the Oxford
  • turf, George, you can’t grow it in a year. I wonder how they do it.
  • It’s living always on a Scale, George. It’s being there from the
  • beginning.”...
  • “She might,” I said to myself, “be a picture by Romney come alive!”
  • “They tell all these stories about him,” said my uncle, “but what do
  • they all amount to?”
  • “Gods!” I said to myself; “but why have I forgotten for so long? Those
  • queer little brows of hers, the touch of mischief in her eyes--the way
  • she breaks into a smile!”
  • “I don’t blame him,” said my uncle. “Mostly it’s imagination. That and
  • leisure, George. When I was a young man I was kept pretty busy. So were
  • you. Even then--!”
  • What puzzled me more particularly was the queer trick of my memory
  • that had never recalled anything vital of Beatrice whatever when I
  • met Garvell again that had, indeed, recalled nothing except a boyish
  • antagonism and our fight. Now when my senses were full of her, it seemed
  • incredible that I could ever have forgotten....
  • III
  • “Oh, Crikey!” said my aunt, reading a letter behind her coffee-machine.
  • “HERE’S a young woman, George!”
  • We were breakfasting together in the big window bay at Lady Grove that
  • looks upon the iris beds; my uncle was in London.
  • I sounded an interrogative note and decapitated an egg.
  • “Who’s Beatrice Normandy?” asked my aunt. “I’ve not heard of her
  • before.”
  • “She the young woman?”
  • “Yes. Says she knows you. I’m no hand at old etiquette, George, but
  • her line is a bit unusual. Practically she says she’s going to make her
  • mother--”
  • “Eh? Step-mother, isn’t it?”
  • “You seem to know a lot about her. She says ‘mother’--Lady Osprey.
  • They’re to call on me, anyhow, next Wednesday week at four, and there’s
  • got to be you for tea.”
  • “Eh?”
  • “You--for tea.
  • “H’m. She had rather--force of character. When I knew her before.”
  • I became aware of my aunt’s head sticking out obliquely from behind the
  • coffee-machine and regarding me with wide blue curiosity. I met her gaze
  • for a moment, flinched, coloured, and laughed.
  • “I’ve known her longer than I’ve known you,” I said, and explained at
  • length.
  • My aunt kept her eye on me over and round the coffee-machine as I did
  • so. She was greatly interested, and asked several elucidatory questions.
  • “Why didn’t you tell me the day you saw her? You’ve had her on your mind
  • for a week,” she said.
  • “It IS odd I didn’t tell you,” I admitted.
  • “You thought I’d get a Down on her,” said my aunt conclusively. “That’s
  • what you thought” and opened the rest of her letters.
  • The two ladies came in a pony-carriage with conspicuous punctuality, and
  • I had the unusual experience of seeing my aunt entertaining callers. We
  • had tea upon the terrace under the cedar, but old Lady Osprey, being an
  • embittered Protestant, had never before seen the inside of the house,
  • and we made a sort of tour of inspection that reminded me of my first
  • visit to the place. In spite of my preoccupation with Beatrice, I stored
  • a queer little memory of the contrast between the two other women; my
  • aunt, tall, slender and awkward, in a simple blue homekeeping dress, an
  • omnivorous reader and a very authentic wit, and the lady of pedigree,
  • short and plump, dressed with Victorian fussiness, living at the
  • intellectual level of palmistry and genteel fiction, pink in the face
  • and generally flustered by a sense of my aunt’s social strangeness and
  • disposed under the circumstances to behave rather like an imitation
  • of the more queenly moments of her own cook. The one seemed made of
  • whalebone, the other of dough. My aunt was nervous, partly through the
  • intrinsic difficulty of handling the lady and partly because of her
  • passionate desire to watch Beatrice and me, and her nervousness took a
  • common form with her, a wider clumsiness of gesture and an exacerbation
  • of her habitual oddity of phrase which did much to deepen the pink
  • perplexity of the lady of title. For instance, I heard my aunt admit
  • that one of the Stuart Durgan ladies did look a bit “balmy on
  • the crumpet”; she described the knights of the age of chivalry as
  • “korvorting about on the off-chance of a dragon”; she explained she
  • was “always old mucking about the garden,” and instead of offering me a
  • Garibaldi biscuit, she asked me with that faint lisp of hers, to
  • “have some squashed flies, George.” I felt convinced Lady Osprey
  • would describe her as “a most eccentric person” on the very first
  • opportunity;--“a most eccentric person.” One could see her, as people
  • say, “shaping” for that.
  • Beatrice was dressed very quietly in brown, with a simple but courageous
  • broad-brimmed hat, and an unexpected quality of being grown-up and
  • responsible. She guided her step-mother through the first encounter,
  • scrutinised my aunt, and got us all well in movement through the house,
  • and then she turned her attention to me with a quick and half-confident
  • smile.
  • “We haven’t met,” she said, “since--”
  • “It was in the Warren.”
  • “Of course,” she said, “the Warren! I remembered it all except just the
  • name.... I was eight.”
  • Her smiling eyes insisted on my memories being thorough. I looked up and
  • met them squarely, a little at a loss for what I should say.
  • “I gave you away pretty completely,” she said, meditating upon my face.
  • “And afterwards I gave way Archie.”
  • She turned her face away from the others, and her voice fell ever so
  • little.
  • “They gave him a licking for telling lies!” she said, as though that was
  • a pleasant memory. “And when it was all over I went to our wigwam. You
  • remember the wigwam?”
  • “Out in the West Wood?”
  • “Yes--and cried--for all the evil I had done you, I suppose.... I’ve
  • often thought of it since.”...
  • Lady Osprey stopped for us to overtake her. “My dear!” she said to
  • Beatrice. “Such a beautiful gallery!” Then she stared very hard at me,
  • puzzled in the most naked fashion to understand who I might be.
  • “People say the oak staircase is rather good,” said my aunt, and led the
  • way.
  • Lady Osprey, with her skirts gathered for the ascent to the gallery
  • and her hand on the newel, turned and addressed a look full of meaning
  • overflowing indeed with meanings--at her charge. The chief meaning
  • no doubt was caution about myself, but much of it was just meaning at
  • large. I chanced to catch the response in a mirror and detected Beatrice
  • with her nose wrinkled into a swift and entirely diabolical grimace.
  • Lady Osprey became a deeper shade of pink and speechless with
  • indignation--it was evident she disavowed all further responsibility, as
  • she followed my aunt upstairs.
  • “It’s dark, but there’s a sort of dignity,” said Beatrice very
  • distinctly, regarding the hall with serene tranquillity, and allowing
  • the unwilling feet on the stairs to widen their distance from us. She
  • stood a step up, so that she looked down a little upon me and over me at
  • the old hall.
  • She turned upon me abruptly when she thought her step-mother was beyond
  • ear-shot.
  • “But how did you get here?” she asked.
  • “Here?”
  • “All this.” She indicated space and leisure by a wave of the hand at
  • hall and tall windows and sunlit terrace. “Weren’t you the housekeeper’s
  • son?”
  • “I’ve adventured. My uncle has become--a great financier. He used to
  • be a little chemist about twenty miles from Bladesover. We’re promoters
  • now, amalgamators, big people on the new model.”
  • “I understand.” She regarded me with interested eyes, visibly thinking
  • me out.
  • “And you recognised me?” I asked.
  • “After a second or so. I saw you recognised me. I couldn’t place you,
  • but I knew I knew you. Then Archie being there helped me to remember.”
  • “I’m glad to meet again,” I ventured. “I’d never forgotten you.”
  • “One doesn’t forget those childish things.”
  • We regarded one another for a moment with a curiously easy and confident
  • satisfaction in coming together again. I can’t explain our ready zest in
  • one another. The thing was so. We pleased each other, we had no doubt in
  • our minds that we pleased each other. From the first we were at our ease
  • with one another. “So picturesque, so very picturesque,” came a voice
  • from above, and then: “Bee-atrice!”
  • “I’ve a hundred things I want to know about you,” she said with an easy
  • intimacy, as we went up the winding steps....
  • As the four of us sat at tea together under the cedar on the terrace she
  • asked questions about my aeronautics. My aunt helped with a word or so
  • about my broken ribs. Lady Osprey evidently regarded flying as a most
  • indesirable and improper topic--a blasphemous intrusion upon the angels.
  • “It isn’t flying,” I explained. “We don’t fly yet.”
  • “You never will,” she said compactly. “You never will.”
  • “Well,” I said, “we do what we can.”
  • The little lady lifted a small gloved hand and indicated a height of
  • about four feet from the ground. “Thus far,” she said, “thus far--AND NO
  • FARTHER! No!”
  • She became emphatically pink. “NO,” she said again quite conclusively,
  • and coughed shortly. “Thank you,” she said to her ninth or tenth cake.
  • Beatrice burst into cheerful laughter with her eye on me. I was lying
  • on the turf, and this perhaps caused a slight confusion about the
  • primordial curse in Lady Osprey’s mind.
  • “Upon his belly shall he go,” she said with quiet distinctness, “all the
  • days of his life.”
  • After which we talked no more of aeronautics.
  • Beatrice sat bunched together in a chair and regarded me with exactly
  • the same scrutiny, I thought, the same adventurous aggression, that
  • I had faced long ago at the tea-table in my mother’s room. She was
  • amazingly like that little Princess of my Bladesover memories, the
  • wilful misbehaviours of her hair seemed the same--her voice; things one
  • would have expected to be changed altogether. She formed her plans in
  • the same quick way, and acted with the same irresponsible decision.
  • She stood up abruptly.
  • “What is there beyond the terrace?” she said, and found me promptly
  • beside her.
  • I invented a view for her.
  • At the further corner from the cedar she perched herself up upon the
  • parapet and achieved an air of comfort among the lichenous stones. “Now
  • tell me,” she said, “all about yourself. Tell me about yourself; I know
  • such duffers of men! They all do the same things. How did you get--here?
  • All my men WERE here. They couldn’t have got here if they hadn’t been
  • here always. They wouldn’t have thought it right. You’ve climbed.”
  • “If it’s climbing,” I said.
  • She went off at a tangent. “It’s--I don’t know if you’ll
  • understand--interesting to meet you again. I’ve remembered you. I don’t
  • know why, but I have. I’ve used you as a sort of lay figure--when I’ve
  • told myself stories. But you’ve always been rather stiff and difficult
  • in my stories--in ready-made clothes--a Labour Member or a Bradlaugh, or
  • something like that. You’re not like that a bit. And yet you ARE!”
  • She looked at me. “Was it much of a fight? They make out it is.”
  • “I don’t know why.”
  • “I was shot up here by an accident,” I said. “There was no fight at all.
  • Except to keep honest, perhaps and I made no great figure in that. I
  • and my uncle mixed a medicine and it blew us up. No merit in that! But
  • you’ve been here all the time. Tell me what you have done first.”
  • “One thing we didn’t do.” She meditated for a moment.
  • “What?” said I.
  • “Produce a little half-brother for Bladesover. So it went to the
  • Phillbrick gang. And they let it! And I and my step-mother--we let, too.
  • And live in a little house.”
  • She nodded her head vaguely over her shoulder and turned to me again.
  • “Well, suppose it was an accident. Here you are! Now you’re here, what
  • are you going to do? You’re young. Is it to be Parliament? heard some
  • men the other day talking about you. Before I knew you were you. They
  • said that was what you ought to do.”...
  • She put me through my intentions with a close and vital curiosity. It
  • was just as she had tried to imagine me a soldier and place me years
  • ago. She made me feel more planless and incidental than ever. “You want
  • to make a flying-machine,” she pursued, “and when you fly? What then?
  • Would it be for fighting?”
  • I told her something of my experimental work. She had never heard of
  • the soaring aeroplane, and was excited by the thought, and keen to hear
  • about it. She had thought all the work so far had been a mere projecting
  • of impossible machines. For her Pilcher and Lilienthal had died in vain.
  • She did not know such men had lived in the world.
  • “But that’s dangerous!” she said, with a note of discovery.
  • “Oh!--it’s dangerous.”
  • “Bee-atrice!” Lady Osprey called.
  • Beatrice dropped from the wall to her feet.
  • “Where do you do this soaring?”
  • “Beyond the high Barrows. East of Crest Hill and the wood.”
  • “Do you mind people coming to see?”
  • “Whenever you please. Only let me know”
  • “I’ll take my chance some day. Some day soon.” She looked at me
  • thoughtfully, smiled, and our talk was at an end.
  • IV
  • All my later work in aeronautics is associated in my memory with the
  • quality of Beatrice, with her incidental presence, with things she said
  • and did and things I thought of that had reference to her.
  • In the spring of that year I had got to a flying machine that lacked
  • nothing but longitudinal stability. My model flew like a bird for fifty
  • or a hundred yards or so, and then either dived and broke its nose or,
  • what was commoner, reared up, slid back and smashed its propeller. The
  • rhythm of the pitching puzzled me. I felt it must obey some laws not
  • yet quite clearly stated. I became therefore a student of theory and
  • literature for a time; I hit upon the string of considerations that led
  • me to what is called Ponderevo’s Principle and my F.R.S., and I worked
  • this out in three long papers. Meanwhile I made a lot of turn-table
  • and glider models and started in upon an idea of combining gas-bags and
  • gliders. Balloon work was new to me. I had made one or two ascents in
  • the balloons of the Aero Club before I started my gasometer and
  • the balloon shed and gave Cothope a couple of months with Sir Peter
  • Rumchase. My uncle found part of the money for these developments; he
  • was growing interested and competitive in this business because of
  • Lord Boom’s prize and the amount of reclame involved, and it was at his
  • request that I named my first navigable balloon Lord Roberts Alpha.
  • Lord Roberts A very nearly terminated all my investigations. My idea
  • both in this and its more successful and famous younger brother, Lord
  • Roberts B, was to utilise the idea of a contractile balloon with a rigid
  • flat base, a balloon shaped rather like an inverted boat that should
  • almost support the apparatus, but not quite. The gas-bag was of the
  • chambered sort used for these long forms, and not with an internal
  • balloonette. The trouble was to make the thing contractile. This I
  • sought to do by fixing a long, fine-meshed silk net over it that
  • was fastened to be rolled up on two longitudinal rods. Practically I
  • contracted my sausage gas-bag by netting it down. The ends were too
  • complex for me to describe here, but I thought them out elaborately and
  • they were very carefully planned. Lord Roberts A was furnished with a
  • single big screw forward, and there was a rudder aft. The engine was the
  • first one to be, so to speak, right in the plane of the gas-bag. I lay
  • immediately under the balloon on a sort of glider framework, far away
  • from either engine or rudder, controlling them by wire-pulls constructed
  • on the principle of the well-known Bowden brake of the cyclist.
  • But Lord Roberts A has been pretty exhaustively figured and described in
  • various aeronautical publications. The unforeseen defect was the badness
  • of the work in the silk netting. It tore aft as soon as I began to
  • contract the balloon, and the last two segments immediately bulged
  • through the hole, exactly as an inner tube will bulge through the
  • ruptured outer cover of a pneumatic tire, and then the sharp edge of the
  • torn net cut the oiled-silk of the distended last segment along a weak
  • seam and burst it with a loud report.
  • Up to that point the whole thing had been going on extremely well. As a
  • navigable balloon and before I contracted it, the Lord Roberts A was an
  • unqualified success. It had run out of the shed admirably at nine or
  • ten miles an hour or more, and although there was a gentle southwester
  • blowing, it had gone up and turned and faced it as well as any craft of
  • the sort I have ever seen.
  • I lay in my customary glider position, horizontal and face downward, and
  • the invisibility of all the machinery gave an extraordinary effect of
  • independent levitation. Only by looking up, as it were, and turning my
  • head back could I see the flat aeroplane bottom of the balloon and
  • the rapid successive passages, swish, swish, swish of the vans of the
  • propeller. I made a wide circle over Lady Grove and Duffield and
  • out towards Effingham and came back quite successfully to the
  • starting-point.
  • Down below in the October sunlight were my sheds and the little group
  • that had been summoned to witness the start, their faces craned upward
  • and most of them scrutinising my expression through field-glasses. I
  • could see Carnaby and Beatrice on horseback, and two girls I did not
  • know with them; Cothope and three or four workmen I employed; my aunt
  • and Mrs. Levinstein, who was staying with her, on foot, and Dimmock, the
  • veterinary surgeon, and one or two others. My shadow moved a little to
  • the north of them like the shadow of a fish. At Lady Grove the servants
  • were out on the lawn, and the Duffield school playground swarmed with
  • children too indifferent to aeronautics to cease their playing. But in
  • the Crest Hill direction--the place looked extraordinarily squat
  • and ugly from above--there were knots and strings of staring workmen
  • everywhere--not one of them working, but all agape. (But now I write it,
  • it occurs to me that perhaps it was their dinner hour; it was certainly
  • near twelve.) I hung for a moment or so enjoying the soar, then turned
  • about to face a clear stretch of open down, let the engine out to full
  • speed and set my rollers at work rolling in the net, and so tightening
  • the gas-bags. Instantly the pace quickened with the diminished
  • resistance...
  • In that moment before the bang I think I must have been really flying.
  • Before the net ripped, just in the instant when my balloon was at its
  • systole, the whole apparatus was, I am convinced, heavier than air.
  • That, however, is a claim that has been disputed, and in any case this
  • sort of priority is a very trivial thing.
  • Then came a sudden retardation, instantly followed by an inexpressibly
  • disconcerting tilt downward of the machine. That I still recall with
  • horror. I couldn’t see what was happening at all and I couldn’t imagine.
  • It was a mysterious, inexplicable dive. The thing, it seemed, without
  • rhyme or reason, was kicking up its heels in the air. The bang followed
  • immediately, and I perceived I was falling rapidly.
  • I was too much taken by surprise to think of the proper cause of the
  • report. I don’t even know what I made of it. I was obsessed, I suppose,
  • by that perpetual dread of the modern aeronaut, a flash between engine
  • and balloon. Yet obviously I wasn’t wrapped in flames. I ought to have
  • realised instantly it wasn’t that. I did, at any rate, whatever other
  • impressions there were, release the winding of the outer net and let the
  • balloon expand again, and that no doubt did something to break my fall.
  • I don’t remember doing that. Indeed, all I do remember is the giddy
  • effect upon the landscape of falling swiftly upon it down a flat spiral,
  • the hurried rush of fields and trees and cottages on my left shoulder
  • and the overhung feeling as if the whole apparatus was pressing down
  • the top of my head. I didn’t stop or attempt to stop the screw. That was
  • going on, swish, swish, swish all the time.
  • Cothope really knows more about the fall than I do. He describes the
  • easterly start, the tilt, and the appearance and bursting of a sort
  • of bladder aft. Then down I swooped, very swiftly, but not nearly so
  • steeply as I imagined I was doing. “Fifteen or twenty degrees,” said
  • Cothope, “to be exact.” From him it was that I learnt that I let the
  • nets loose again, and so arrested my fall. He thinks I was more in
  • control of myself than I remember.
  • But I do not see why I should have forgotten so excellent a resolution.
  • His impression is that I was really steering and trying to drop into
  • the Farthing Down beeches. “You hit the trees,” he said, “and the whole
  • affair stood on its nose among them, and then very slowly crumpled up.
  • I saw you’d been jerked out, as I thought, and I didn’t stay for more. I
  • rushed for my bicycle.”
  • As a matter of fact, it was purely accidental that I came down in the
  • woods. I am reasonably certain that I had no more control then than a
  • thing in a parcel. I remember I felt a sort of wincing, “Now it comes!”
  • as the trees rushed up to me. If I remember that, I should remember
  • steering. Then the propeller smashed, everything stopped with a jerk,
  • and I was falling into a mass of yellowing leaves, and Lord Roberts A,
  • so it seemed to me, was going back into the sky.
  • I felt twigs and things hit me in the face, but I didn’t feel injured
  • at the time; I clutched at things that broke, tumbled through a froth
  • of green and yellow into a shadowy world of great bark-covered arms, and
  • there, snatching wildly, got a grip on a fair round branch, and hung.
  • I became intensely alert and clear-headed. I held by that branch for a
  • moment and then looked about me, and caught at another, and then found
  • myself holding to a practicable fork. I swung forward to that and got a
  • leg around it below its junction, and so was able presently to clamber
  • down, climbing very coolly and deliberately. I dropped ten feet or so
  • from the lowest branch and fell on my feet. “That’s all right,” I said,
  • and stared up through the tree to see what I could of the deflated and
  • crumpled remains that had once been Lord Roberts A festooned on the
  • branches it had broken. “Gods!” I said, “what a tumble!”
  • I wiped something that trickled from my face and was shocked to see my
  • hand covered with blood. I looked at myself and saw what seemed to me
  • an astonishing quantity of blood running down my arm and shoulder.
  • I perceived my mouth was full of blood. It’s a queer moment when one
  • realises one is hurt, and perhaps badly hurt, and has still to discover
  • just how far one is hurt. I explored my face carefully and found
  • unfamiliar contours on the left side. The broken end of a branch had
  • driven right through my cheek, damaging my cheek and teeth and gums,
  • and left a splinter of itself stuck, like an explorer’s fartherest-point
  • flag, in the upper maxillary. That and a sprained wrist were all my
  • damage. But I bled as though I had been chopped to pieces, and it
  • seemed to me that my face had been driven in. I can’t describe just the
  • horrible disgust I felt at that.
  • “This blood must be stopped, anyhow,” I said, thickheadedly.
  • “I wonder where there’s a spider’s web”--an odd twist for my mind to
  • take. But it was the only treatment that occurred to me.
  • I must have conceived some idea of going home unaided, because I was
  • thirty yards from the tree before I dropped.
  • Then a kind of black disc appeared in the middle of the world and rushed
  • out to the edge of things and blotted them out. I don’t remember falling
  • down. I fainted from excitement, disgust at my injury and loss of blood,
  • and lay there until Cothope found me.
  • He was the first to find me, scorching as he did over the downland
  • turf, and making a wide course to get the Carnaby plantations at their
  • narrowest. Then presently, while he was trying to apply the methodical
  • teachings of the St. John’s Ambulance classes to a rather abnormal case,
  • Beatrice came galloping through the trees full-tilt, with Lord Carnaby
  • hard behind her, and she was hatless, muddy from a fall, and white as
  • death. “And cool as a cucumber, too,” said Cothope, turning it over in
  • his mind as he told me.
  • (“They never seem quite to have their heads, and never seem quite to
  • lose ‘em,” said Cothope, generalising about the sex.)
  • Also he witnessed she acted with remarkable decision. The question
  • was whether I should be taken to the house her step-mother occupied at
  • Bedley Corner, the Carnaby dower house, or down to Carnaby’s place at
  • Easting. Beatrice had no doubt in the matter, for she meant to nurse me.
  • Carnaby didn’t seem to want that to happen. “She WOULD have it wasn’t
  • half so far,” said Cothope. “She faced us out....
  • “I hate to be faced out of my opinion, so I’ve taken a pedometer over it
  • since. It’s exactly forty-three yards further.
  • “Lord Carnaby looked at her pretty straight,” said Cothope, finishing
  • the picture; “and then he give in.”
  • V
  • But my story has made a jump from June to October, and during that time
  • my relations with Beatrice and the countryside that was her setting had
  • developed in many directions. She came and went, moving in an orbit
  • for which I had no data, going to London and Paris, into Wales and
  • Northampton, while her stepmother, on some independent system of her
  • own, also vanished and recurred intermittently. At home they obeyed the
  • rule of an inflexible old maid, Charlotte, and Beatrice exercised
  • all the rights of proprietorship in Carnaby’s extensive stables. Her
  • interest in me was from the first undisguised. She found her way to my
  • worksheds and developed rapidly, in spite of the sincere discouragement
  • of Cothope, into a keen amateur of aeronautics. She would come sometimes
  • in the morning, sometimes in the afternoon, sometimes afoot with an
  • Irish terrier, sometimes riding. She would come for three or four days
  • every day, vanish for a fortnight or three weeks, return.
  • It was not long before I came to look for her. From the first I
  • found her immensely interesting. To me she was a new feminine type
  • altogether--I have made it plain, I think, how limited was my knowledge
  • of women. But she made me not simply interested in her, but in myself.
  • She became for me something that greatly changes a man’s world. How
  • shall I put it? She became an audience. Since I’ve emerged from the
  • emotional developments of the affair I have thought it out in a hundred
  • aspects, and it does seem to me that this way in which men and women
  • make audiences for one another is a curiously influential force in their
  • lives. For some it seems an audience is a vital necessity, they seek
  • audiences as creatures seek food; others again, my uncle among them,
  • can play to an imaginary audience. I, I think, have lived and can live
  • without one. In my adolescence I was my own audience and my own court
  • of honour. And to have an audience in one’s mind is to play a part,
  • to become self-conscious and dramatic. For many years I had been
  • self-forgetful and scientific. I had lived for work and impersonal
  • interests until I found scrutiny, applause and expectation in Beatrice’s
  • eyes. Then I began to live for the effect I imagined I made upon her, to
  • make that very soon the principal value in my life. I played to her.
  • I did things for the look of them. I began to dream more and more of
  • beautiful situations and fine poses and groupings with her and for her.
  • I put these things down because they puzzle me. I think I was in love
  • with Beatrice, as being in love is usually understood; but it was quite
  • a different state altogether from my passionate hunger for Marion, or
  • my keen, sensuous desire for and pleasure in Effie. These were selfish,
  • sincere things, fundamental and instinctive, as sincere as the leap of
  • a tiger. But until matters drew to a crisis with Beatrice, there was
  • an immense imaginative insurgence of a quite different quality. I am
  • setting down here very gravely, and perhaps absurdly, what are no doubt
  • elementary commonplaces for innumerable people. This love that grew up
  • between Beatrice and myself was, I think--I put it quite tentatively and
  • rather curiously--romantic love. That unfortunate and truncated affair
  • of my uncle and the Scrymgeour lady was really of the same stuff, if
  • a little different in quality. I have to admit that. The factor of
  • audience was of primary importance in either else.
  • Its effect upon me was to make me in many respects adolescent again.
  • It made me keener upon the point of honour, and anxious and eager to
  • do high and splendid things, and in particular, brave things. So far it
  • ennobled and upheld me. But it did also push me towards vulgar and showy
  • things. At bottom it was disingenuous; it gave my life the quality of
  • stage scenery, with one side to the audience, another side that wasn’t
  • meant to show, and an economy of substance. It certainly robbed my work
  • of high patience and quality. I cut down the toil of research in my
  • eagerness and her eagerness for fine flourishes in the air, flights that
  • would tell. I shirked the longer road.
  • And it robbed me, too, of any fine perception of absurdity.
  • Yet that was not everything in our relationship. The elemental thing was
  • there also. It came in very suddenly.
  • It was one day in the summer, though I do not now recall without
  • reference to my experimental memoranda whether it was in July or
  • August. I was working with a new and more bird-like aeroplane with wing
  • curvatures studied from Lilienthal, Pilcher and Phillips, that I
  • thought would give a different rhythm for the pitching oscillations than
  • anything I’d had before. I was soaring my long course from the framework
  • on the old barrow by my sheds down to Tinker’s Corner. It is a clear
  • stretch of downland, except for two or three thickets of box and thorn
  • to the right of my course; one transverse trough, in which there is bush
  • and a small rabbit warren, comes in from the east. I had started,
  • and was very intent on the peculiar long swoop with which any new
  • arrangement flew. Then, without any sort of notice, right ahead of me
  • appeared Beatrice, riding towards Tinker’s Corner to waylay and talk to
  • me. She looked round over her shoulder, saw me coming, touched her
  • horse to a gallop, and then the brute bolted right into the path of my
  • machine.
  • There was a queer moment of doubt whether we shouldn’t all smash
  • together. I had to make up my mind very quickly whether I would pitch-up
  • and drop backward at once and take my chance of falling undamaged--a
  • poor chance it would have been--in order to avoid any risk to her, or
  • whether I would lift against the wind and soar right over her. This
  • latter I did. She had already got her horse in hand when I came up to
  • her. Her woman’s body lay along his neck, and she glanced up as I, with
  • wings aspread, and every nerve in a state of tension, swept over her.
  • Then I had landed, and was going back to where her horse stood still and
  • trembling.
  • We exchanged no greetings. She slid from her saddle into my arms, and
  • for one instant I held her.
  • “Those great wings,” she said, and that was all.
  • She lay in my arms, and I thought for a moment she had fainted.
  • “Very near a nasty accident,” said Cothope, coming up and regarding
  • our grouping with disfavour. He took her horse by the bridle. “Very
  • dangerous thing coming across us like that.”
  • Beatrice disengaged herself from me, stood for a moment trembling, and
  • then sat down on the turf “I’ll just sit down for a moment,” she said.
  • “Oh!” she said.
  • She covered her face with her hands, while Cothope looked at her with an
  • expression between suspicion and impatience.
  • For some moments nobody moved. Then Cothope remarked that perhaps he’d
  • better get her water.
  • As for me, I was filled with a new outrageous idea, begotten I scarcely
  • know how from this incident, with its instant contacts and swift
  • emotions, and that was that I must make love to and possess Beatrice. I
  • see no particular reason why that thought should have come to me in that
  • moment, but it did. I do not believe that before then I had thought
  • of our relations in such terms at all. Suddenly, as I remember it, the
  • factor of passion came. She crouched there, and I stood over her, and
  • neither of us said a word. But it was just as though something had been
  • shouted from the sky.
  • Cothope had gone twenty paces perhaps when she uncovered her face. “I
  • shan’t want any water,” she said. “Call him back.”
  • VI
  • After that the spirit of our relations changed. The old ease had gone.
  • She came to me less frequently, and when she came she would have some
  • one with her, usually old Carnaby, and he would do the bulk of the
  • talking. All through September she was away. When we were alone together
  • there was a curious constraint. We became clouds of inexpressible
  • feeling towards one another; we could think of nothing that was not too
  • momentous for words.
  • Then came the smash of Lord Roberts A, and I found myself with a
  • bandaged face in a bedroom in the Bedley Corner dower-house with
  • Beatrice presiding over an inefficient nurse, Lady Osprey very pink and
  • shocked in the background, and my aunt jealously intervening.
  • My injuries were much more showy than serious, and I could have been
  • taken to Lady Grove next day, but Beatrice would not permit that, and
  • kept me at Bedley Corner three clear days. In the afternoon of the
  • second day she became extremely solicitous for the proper aeration of
  • the nurse, packed her off for an hour in a brisk rain, and sat by me
  • alone.
  • I asked her to marry me.
  • All the whole I must admit it was not a situation that lent itself to
  • eloquence. I lay on my back and talked through bandages, and with
  • some little difficulty, for my tongue and mouth had swollen. But I was
  • feverish and in pain, and the emotional suspense I had been in so long
  • with regard to her became now an unendurable impatience.
  • “Comfortable?” she asked.
  • “Yes.”
  • “Shall I read to you?”
  • “No. I want to talk.”
  • “You can’t. I’d better talk to you.”
  • “No,” I said, “I want to talk to you.”
  • She came and stood by my bedside and looked me in the eyes. “I don’t--I
  • don’t want you to talk to me,” she said. “I thought you couldn’t talk.”
  • “I get few chances--of you.”
  • “You’d better not talk. Don’t talk now. Let me chatter instead. You
  • ought not to talk.”
  • “It isn’t much,” I said.
  • “I’d rather you didn’t.”
  • “I’m not going to be disfigured,” I said. “Only a scar.”
  • “Oh!” she said, as if she had expected something quite different. “Did
  • you think you’d become a sort of gargoyle?”
  • “L’Homme qui Rit!--I didn’t know. But that’s all right. Jolly flowers
  • those are!”
  • “Michaelmas daisies,” she said. “I’m glad you’r not disfigured, and
  • those are perennial sunflowers. Do you know no flowers at all? When I
  • saw you on the ground I certainly thought you were dead. You ought to
  • have been, by all the rules of the game.”
  • She said some other things, but I was thinking of my next move.
  • “Are we social equals?” I said abruptly.
  • She stared at me. “Queer question,” she said.
  • “But are we?”
  • “H’m. Difficult to say. But why do you ask? Is the daughter of a
  • courtesy Baron who died--of general disreputableness, I believe--before
  • his father--? I give it up. Does it matter?”
  • “No. My mind is confused. I want to know if you will marry me.”
  • She whitened and said nothing. I suddenly felt I must plead with her.
  • “Damn these bandages!” I said, breaking into ineffectual febrile rage.
  • She roused herself to her duties as nurse. “What are you doing? Why are
  • you trying to sit up? Sit down! Don’t touch your bandages. I told you
  • not to talk.”
  • She stood helpless for a moment, then took me firmly by the shoulders
  • and pushed me back upon the pillow. She gripped the wrist of the hand I
  • had raised to my face.
  • “I told you not to talk,” she whispered close to my face. “I asked you
  • not to talk. Why couldn’t you do as I asked you?”
  • “You’ve been avoiding me for a month,” I said.
  • “I know. You might have known. Put your hand back--down by your side.”
  • I obeyed. She sat on the edge of the bed. A flush had come to her
  • cheeks, and her eyes were very bright. “I asked you,” she repeated, “not
  • to talk.”
  • My eyes questioned her mutely.
  • She put her hand on my chest. Her eyes were tormented.
  • “How can I answer you now?” she said.
  • “How can I say anything now?”
  • “What do you mean?” I asked.
  • She made no answer.
  • “Do you mean it must be ‘No’?”
  • She nodded.
  • “But” I said, and my whole soul was full of accusations.
  • “I know,” she said. “I can’t explain. I can’t. But it has to be ‘No!’ It
  • can’t be. It’s utterly, finally, for ever impossible.... Keep your hands
  • still!”
  • “But,” I said, “when we met again--”
  • “I can’t marry. I can’t and won’t.”
  • She stood up. “Why did you talk?” she cried, “couldn’t you SEE?”
  • She seemed to have something it was impossible to say.
  • She came to the table beside my bed and pulled the Michaelmas daisies
  • awry. “Why did you talk like that?” she said in a tone of infinite
  • bitterness. “To begin like that!”
  • “But what is it?” I said. “Is it some circumstance--my social position?”
  • “Oh, DAMN your social position!” she cried.
  • She went and stood at the further window, staring out at the rain. For
  • a long time we were absolutely still. The wind and rain came in little
  • gusts upon the pane. She turned to me abruptly.
  • “You didn’t ask me if I loved you,” she said.
  • “Oh, if it’s THAT!” said I.
  • “It’s not that,” she said. “But if you want to know--” She paused.
  • “I do,” she said.
  • We stared at one another.
  • “I do--with all my heart, if you want to know.”
  • “Then, why the devil--?” I asked.
  • She made no answer. She walked across the room to the piano and began
  • to play, rather noisily and rapidly, with odd gusts of emphasis,
  • the shepherd’s pipe music from the last act in “Tristan and Isolde.”
  • Presently she missed a note, failed again, ran her finger heavily up the
  • scale, struck the piano passionately with her fist, making a feeble jar
  • in the treble, jumped up, and went out of the room....
  • The nurse found me still wearing my helmet of bandages, partially
  • dressed, and pottering round the room to find the rest of my clothes.
  • I was in a state of exasperated hunger for Beatrice, and I was too
  • inflamed and weakened to conceal the state of my mind. I was feebly
  • angry because of the irritation of dressing, and particularly of the
  • struggle to put on my trousers without being able to see my legs. I was
  • staggering about, and once I had fallen over a chair and I had upset the
  • jar of Michaelmas daisies.
  • I must have been a detestable spectacle. “I’ll go back to bed,” said I,
  • “if I may have a word with Miss Beatrice. I’ve got something to say to
  • her. That’s why I’m dressing.”
  • My point was conceded, but there were long delays. Whether the household
  • had my ultimatum or whether she told Beatrice directly I do not know,
  • and what Lady Osprey can have made of it in the former case I don’t
  • imagine.
  • At last Beatrice came and stood by my bedside. “Well?” she said.
  • “All I want to say,” I said with the querulous note of a misunderstood
  • child, “is that I can’t take this as final. I want to see you and talk
  • when I’m better, and write. I can’t do anything now. I can’t argue.”
  • I was overtaken with self-pity and began to snivel, “I can’t rest. You
  • see? I can’t do anything.”
  • She sat down beside me again and spoke softly. “I promise I will talk
  • it all over with you again. When you are well. I promise I will meet you
  • somewhere so that we can talk. You can’t talk now.
  • “I asked you not to talk now. All you want to know you shall know... Will
  • that do?”
  • “I’d like to know”
  • She looked round to see the door was closed, stood up and went to it.
  • Then she crouched beside me and began whispering very softly and rapidly
  • with her face close to me.
  • “Dear,” she said, “I love you. If it will make you happy to marry me, I
  • will marry you. I was in a mood just now--a stupid, inconsiderate mood.
  • Of course I will marry you. You are my prince, my king. Women are such
  • things of mood--or I would have behaved differently. We say ‘No’ when we
  • mean ‘Yes’--and fly into crises. So now, Yes--yes--yes. I will. I can’t
  • even kiss you. Give me your hand to kiss that. Understand, I am yours.
  • Do you understand? I am yours just as if we had been married fifty
  • years. Your wife--Beatrice. Is that enough? Now--now will you rest?”
  • “Yes,” I said, “but why?”
  • “There are complications. There are difficulties. When you are better
  • you will be able to--understand them. But now they don’t matter. Only
  • you know this must be secret--for a time. Absolutely secret between us.
  • Will you promise that?”
  • “Yes,” I said, “I understand. I wish I could kiss you.”
  • She laid her head down beside mine for a moment and then she kissed my
  • hand.
  • “I don’t care what difficulties there are,” I said, and I shut my eyes.
  • VII
  • But I was only beginning to gauge the unaccountable elements in
  • Beatrice. For a week after my return to Lady Grove I had no sign of
  • her, and then she called with Lady Osprey and brought a huge bunch of
  • perennial sunflowers and Michaelmas daisies, “just the old flowers there
  • were in your room,” said my aunt, with a relentless eye on me. I didn’t
  • get any talk alone with Beatrice then, and she took occasion to tell us
  • she was going to London for some indefinite number of weeks. I couldn’t
  • even pledge her to write to me, and when she did it was a brief,
  • enigmatical, friendly letter with not a word of the reality between us.
  • I wrote back a love letter--my first love letter--and she made no reply
  • for eight days. Then came a scrawl: “I can’t write letters. Wait till we
  • can talk. Are you better?”
  • I think the reader would be amused if he could see the papers on my desk
  • as I write all this, the mangled and disfigured pages, the experimental
  • arrangements of notes, the sheets of suggestions balanced in
  • constellations, the blottesque intellectual battlegrounds over which
  • I have been fighting. I find this account of my relations to Beatrice
  • quite the most difficult part of my story to write. I happen to be a
  • very objective-minded person, I forget my moods, and this was so much an
  • affair of moods. And even such moods and emotions as I recall are very
  • difficult to convey. To me it is about as difficult as describing a
  • taste or a scent.
  • Then the objective story is made up of little things that are difficult
  • to set in a proper order. And love in an hysterical passion, now high,
  • now low, now exalted, and now intensely physical. No one has ever yet
  • dared to tell a love story completely, its alternations, its comings and
  • goings, its debased moments, its hate. The love stories we tell, tell
  • only the net consequence, the ruling effect....
  • How can I rescue from the past now the mystical quality of Beatrice; my
  • intense longing for her; the overwhelming, irrational, formless desire?
  • How can I explain how intimately that worship mingled with a high,
  • impatient resolve to make her mine, to take her by strength and courage,
  • to do my loving in a violent heroic manner? And then the doubts, the
  • puzzled arrest at the fact of her fluctuations, at her refusal to marry
  • me, at the fact that even when at last she returned to Bedley Corner she
  • seemed to evade me?
  • That exasperated me and perplexed me beyond measure.
  • I felt that it was treachery. I thought of every conceivable
  • explanation, and the most exalted and romantic confidence in her did not
  • simply alternate, but mingled with the basest misgivings.
  • And into the tangle of memories comes the figure of Carnaby, coming
  • out slowly from the background to a position of significance, as an
  • influence, as a predominant strand in the nets that kept us apart, as a
  • rival. What were the forces that pulled her away from me when it was
  • so clearly manifest she loved me? Did she think of marrying him? Had
  • I invaded some long-planned scheme? It was evident he did not like me,
  • that in some way I spoilt the world for him. She returned to Bedley
  • Corner, and for some weeks she was flitting about me, and never once
  • could I have talk with her alone. When she came to my sheds Carnaby was
  • always with her, jealously observant. (Why the devil couldn’t she send
  • him about his business?) The days slipped by and my anger gathered.
  • All this mingles with the making of Lord Roberts B. I had resolved upon
  • that one night as I lay awake at Bedley Corner; I got it planned out
  • before the bandages were off my face. I conceived this second navigable
  • balloon in a grandiose manner. It was to be a second Lord Roberts A,
  • only more so; it was to be three times as big, large enough to carry
  • three men, and it was to be an altogether triumphant vindication of my
  • claims upon the air. The framework was to be hollow like a bird’s bones,
  • airtight, and the air pumped in or out, and the weight of fuel I carried
  • changed. I talked much and boasted to Cothope--whom I suspected
  • of scepticisms about this new type--of what it would do, and it
  • progressed--slowly. It progressed slowly because I was restless and
  • uncertain. At times I would go away to London to snatch some chance of
  • seeing Beatrice there, at times nothing but a day of gliding and hard
  • and dangerous exercise would satisfy me. And now in the newspapers, in
  • conversation, in everything about me, arose a new invader of my mental
  • states. Something was happening to the great schemes of my uncle’s
  • affairs; people were beginning to doubt, to question. It was the first
  • quiver of his tremendous insecurity, the first wobble of that gigantic
  • credit top he had kept spinning so long.
  • There were comings and goings, November and December slipped by. I
  • had two unsatisfactory meetings with Beatrice, meetings that had no
  • privacy--in which we said things of the sort that need atmosphere,
  • baldly and furtively. I wrote to her several times and she wrote back
  • notes that I would sometimes respond to altogether, sometimes condemn as
  • insincere evasions. “You don’t understand. I can’t just now explain. Be
  • patient with me. Leave things a little while to me.” She wrote.
  • I would talk aloud to these notes and wrangle over them in my
  • workroom--while the plans of Lord Roberts B waited.
  • “You don’t give me a chance!” I would say. “Why don’t you let me
  • know the secret? That’s what I’m for--to settle difficulties! to tell
  • difficulties to!”
  • And at last I could hold out no longer against these accumulating
  • pressures.
  • I took an arrogant, outrageous line that left her no loopholes; I
  • behaved as though we were living in a melodrama.
  • “You must come and talk to me,” I wrote, “or I will come and take you. I
  • want you--and the time runs away.”
  • We met in a ride in the upper plantations. It must have been early in
  • January, for there was snow on the ground and on the branches of the
  • trees. We walked to and fro for an hour or more, and from the first I
  • pitched the key high in romance and made understandings impossible. It
  • was our worst time together. I boasted like an actor, and she, I know
  • not why, was tired and spiritless.
  • Now I think over that talk in the light of all that has happened since,
  • I can imagine how she came to me full of a human appeal I was too
  • foolish to let her make. I don’t know. I confess I have never completely
  • understood Beatrice. I confess I am still perplexed at many things she
  • said and did. That afternoon, anyhow, I was impossible. I posed and
  • scolded. I was--I said it--for “taking the Universe by the throat!”
  • “If it was only that,” she said, but though I heard, I did not heed her.
  • At last she gave way to me and talked no more. Instead she looked
  • at me--as a thing beyond her controlling, but none the less
  • interesting--much as she had looked at me from behind the skirts of Lady
  • Drew in the Warren when we were children together.
  • Once even I thought she smiled faintly.
  • “What are the difficulties” I cried, “there’s no difficulty I will not
  • overcome for you! Do your people think I’m no equal for you? Who says
  • it? My dear, tell me to win a title! I’ll do it in five years!...
  • “Here am I just grown a man at the sight of you. I have wanted something
  • to fight for. Let me fight for you!...
  • “I’m rich without intending it. Let me mean it, give me an honourable
  • excuse for it, and I’ll put all this rotten old Warren of England at
  • your feet!”
  • I said such things as that. I write them down here in all their
  • resounding base pride. I said these empty and foolish things, and they
  • are part of me. Why should I still cling to pride and be ashamed? I
  • shouted her down.
  • I passed from such megalomania to petty accusations.
  • “You think Carnaby is a better man than I?” I said.
  • “No!” she cried, stung to speech. “No!”
  • “You think we’re unsubstantial. You’ve listened to all these rumours
  • Boom has started because we talked of a newspaper of our own. When you
  • are with me you know I’m a man; when you get away from me you think I’m
  • a cheat and a cad.... There’s not a word of truth in the things they say
  • about us. I’ve been slack. I’ve left things. But we have only to exert
  • ourselves. You do not know how wide and far we have spread our nets.
  • Even now we have a coup--an expedition--in hand. It will put us on a
  • footing.”...
  • Her eyes asked mutely and asked in vain that I would cease to boast of
  • the very qualities she admired in me.
  • In the night I could not sleep for thinking of that talk and the vulgar
  • things I had said in it. I could not understand the drift my mind had
  • taken. I was acutely disgusted. And my unwonted doubts about myself
  • spread from a merely personal discontent to our financial position.
  • It was all very well to talk as I had done of wealth and power and
  • peerages, but what did I know nowadays of my uncle’s position? Suppose
  • in the midst of such boasting and confidence there came some turn I did
  • not suspect, some rottenness he had concealed from me? I resolved I had
  • been playing with aeronautics long enough; that next morning I would go
  • to him and have things clear between us.
  • I caught an early train and went up to the Hardingham.
  • I went up to the Hardingham through a dense London fog to see how things
  • really stood. Before I had talked to my uncle for ten minutes I felt
  • like a man who has just awakened in a bleak, inhospitable room out of a
  • grandiose dream.
  • CHAPTER THE FOURTH
  • HOW I STOLE THE HEAPS OF QUAP FROM MORDET ISLAND
  • I
  • “We got to make a fight for it,” said my uncle. “We got to face the
  • music!”
  • I remember that even at the sight of him I had a sense of impending
  • calamity. He sat under the electric light with the shadow of his hair
  • making bars down his face. He looked shrunken, and as though his skin
  • had suddenly got loose and yellow. The decorations of the room seemed
  • to have lost freshness, and outside the blinds were up--there was not so
  • much fog as a dun darkness. One saw the dingy outlines of the chimneys
  • opposite quite distinctly, and then a sky of such brown as only London
  • can display.
  • “I saw a placard,” I said: “‘More Ponderevity.’”
  • “That’s Boom,” he said. “Boom and his damned newspapers. He’s trying to
  • fight me down. Ever since I offered to buy the Daily Decorator he’s
  • been at me. And he thinks consolidating Do Ut cut down the ads. He wants
  • everything, damn him! He’s got no sense of dealing. I’d like to bash his
  • face!”
  • “Well,” I said, “what’s to be done?”
  • “Keep going,” said my uncle.
  • “I’ll smash Boom yet,” he said, with sudden savagery.
  • “Nothing else?” I asked.
  • “We got to keep going. There’s a scare on. Did you notice the rooms?
  • Half the people out there this morning are reporters. And if I talk they
  • touch it up!... They didn’t used to touch things up! Now they put in
  • character touches--insulting you. Don’t know what journalism’s coming
  • to. It’s all Boom’s doing.”
  • He cursed Lord Boom with considerable imaginative vigour.
  • “Well,” said I, “what can he do?”
  • “Shove us up against time, George; make money tight for us. We been
  • handling a lot of money--and he tightens us up.”
  • “We’re sound?”
  • “Oh, we’re sound, George. Trust me for that! But all the same--There’s
  • such a lot of imagination in these things.... We’re sound enough. That’s
  • not it.”
  • He blew. “Damn Boom!” he said, and his eyes over his glasses met mine
  • defiantly.
  • “We can’t, I suppose, run close hauled for a bitstop expenditure?”
  • “Where?”
  • “Well,--Crest Hill”
  • “What!” he shouted. “Me stop Crest Hill for Boom!” He waved a fist as if
  • to hit his inkpot, and controlled himself with difficulty. He spoke at
  • last in a reasonable voice. “If I did,” he said, “he’d kick up a fuss.
  • It’s no good, even if I wanted to. Everybody’s watching the place. If I
  • was to stop building we’d be down in a week.”
  • He had an idea. “I wish I could do something to start a strike or
  • something. No such luck. Treat those workmen a sight too well. No, sink
  • or swim, Crest Hill goes on until we’re under water.”
  • I began to ask questions and irritated him instantly.
  • “Oh, dash these explanations, George!” he cried; “You only make things
  • look rottener than they are. It’s your way. It isn’t a case of figures.
  • We’re all right--there’s only one thing we got to do.”
  • “Yes?”
  • “Show value, George. That’s where this quap comes in; that’s why I fell
  • in so readily with what you brought to me week before last. Here we are,
  • we got our option on the perfect filament, and all we want’s canadium.
  • Nobody knows there’s more canadium in the world than will go on the
  • edge of a sixpence except me and you. Nobody has an idee the perfect
  • filament’s more than just a bit of theorising. Fifty tons of quap and
  • we’d turn that bit of theorising into something. We’d make the lamp
  • trade sit on its tail and howl. We’d put Ediswan and all of ‘em into a
  • parcel without last year’s trousers and a hat, and swap ‘em off for a
  • pot of geraniums. See? We’d do it through Business Organisations, and
  • there you are! See? Capern’s Patent Filament!
  • “The Ideal and the Real! George, we’ll do it! We’ll bring it off! And
  • then we’ll give such a facer to Boom, he’ll think for fifty years. He’s
  • laying up for our London and African meeting. Let him. He can turn the
  • whole paper on to us. He says the Business Organisations shares aren’t
  • worth fifty-two and we quote ‘em at eighty-four. Well, here we are
  • gettin’ ready for him--loading our gun.”
  • His pose was triumphant.
  • “Yes,” I said, “that’s all right. But I can’t help thinking where should
  • we be if we hadn’t just by accident got Capern’s Perfect Filament.
  • Because, you know it was an accident--my buying up that.”
  • He crumpled up his nose into an expression of impatient distaste at my
  • unreasonableness.
  • “And after all, the meeting’s in June, and you haven’t begun to get the
  • quap! After all, we’ve still got to load our gun.”
  • “They start on Toosday.”
  • “Have they got the brig?”
  • “They’ve got a brig.”
  • “Gordon-Nasmyth!” I doubted.
  • “Safe as a bank,” he said. “More I see of that man the more I like him.
  • All I wish is we’d got a steamer instead of a sailing ship.”
  • “And,” I went on, “you seem to overlook what used to weigh with us a
  • bit. This canadium side of the business and the Capern chance has
  • rushed you off your legs. After all--it’s stealing, and in its way an
  • international outrage. They’ve got two gunboats on the coast.”
  • I jumped up and went and stared out at the fog.
  • “And, by Jove, it’s about our only chance! I didn’t dream.”
  • I turned on him. “I’ve been up in the air,” I said.
  • “Heaven knows where I haven’t been. And here’s our only chance--and you
  • give it to that adventurous lunatic to play in his own way--in a brig!”
  • “Well, you had a voice--”
  • “I wish I’d been in this before. We ought to have run out a steamer to
  • Lagos or one of those West Coast places and done it from there. Fancy a
  • brig in the channel at this time of year, if it blows southwest!”
  • “I dessay you’d have shoved it, George. Still you know, George.... I
  • believe in him.”
  • “Yes,” I said. “Yes, I believe in him, too. In a way. Still--”
  • We took up a telegram that was lying on his desk and opened it. His
  • face became a livid yellow. He put the flimsy paper down with a slow,
  • reluctant movement and took off his glasses.
  • “George,” he said, “the luck’s against us.”
  • “What?”
  • He grimaced with his mouth--in the queerest way at the telegram.
  • “That.”
  • I took it up and read:
  • “Motor smash compound fracture of the leg gordon nasmyth what price
  • mordet now”
  • For a moment neither of us spoke.
  • “That’s all right,” I said at last.
  • “Eh?” said my uncle.
  • “I’M going. I’ll get that quap or bust.”
  • II
  • I had a ridiculous persuasion that I was “saving the situation.”
  • “I’m going,” I said quite consciously and dramatically. I saw the whole
  • affair--how shall I put it?--in American colours.
  • I sat down beside him. “Give me all the data you’ve got,” I said, “and
  • I’ll pull this thing off.”
  • “But nobody knows exactly where--”
  • “Nasmyth does, and he’ll tell me.”
  • “He’s been very close,” said my uncle, and regarded me.
  • “He’ll tell me all right, now he’s smashed.”
  • He thought. “I believe he will.”
  • “George,” he said, “if you pull this thing off--Once or twice before
  • you’ve stepped in--with that sort of Woosh of yours--”
  • He left the sentence unfinished.
  • “Give me that note-book,” I said, “and tell me all you know. Where’s the
  • ship? Where’s Pollack? And where’s that telegram from? If that quap’s
  • to be got, I’ll get it or bust. If you’ll hold on here until I get back
  • with it.”...
  • And so it was I jumped into the wildest adventure of my life.
  • I requisitioned my uncle’s best car forthwith. I went down that night
  • to the place of despatch named on Nasmyth’s telegram, Bampton S.O. Oxon,
  • routed him out with a little trouble from that centre, made things right
  • with him and got his explicit directions; and I was inspecting the Maud
  • Mary with young Pollack, his cousin and aide, the following afternoon.
  • She was rather a shock to me and not at all in my style, a beast of a
  • brig inured to the potato trade, and she reeked from end to end with the
  • faint, subtle smell of raw potatoes so that it prevailed even over the
  • temporary smell of new paint. She was a beast of a brig, all hold and
  • dirty framework, and they had ballasted her with old iron and old
  • rails and iron sleepers, and got a miscellaneous lot of spades and iron
  • wheelbarrows against the loading of the quap. I thought her over with
  • Pollack, one of those tall blond young men who smoke pipes and don’t
  • help much, and then by myself, and as a result I did my best to sweep
  • Gravesend clean of wheeling planks, and got in as much cord and small
  • rope as I could for lashing. I had an idea we might need to run up a
  • jetty. In addition to much ballast she held, remotely hidden in a sort
  • of inadvertent way a certain number of ambiguous cases which I didn’t
  • examine, but which I gathered were a provision against the need of a
  • trade.
  • The captain was a most extraordinary creature, under the impression we
  • were after copper ore; he was a Roumanian Jew, with twitching, excitable
  • features, who had made his way to a certificate after some preliminary
  • naval experiences in the Black Sea. The mate was an Essex man of
  • impenetrable reserve. The crew were astoundingly ill-clad and destitute
  • and dirty; most of them youths, unwashed, out of colliers. One, the cook
  • was a mulatto; and one, the best-built fellow of them all, was a Breton.
  • There was some subterfuge about our position on board--I forget the
  • particulars now--I was called the supercargo and Pollack was the
  • steward. This added to the piratical flavour that insufficient funds and
  • Gordon-Nasmyth’s original genius had already given the enterprise.
  • Those two days of bustle at Gravesend, under dingy skies, in narrow,
  • dirty streets, were a new experience for me. It is like nothing else in
  • my life. I realised that I was a modern and a civilised man. I found
  • the food filthy and the coffee horrible; the whole town stank in my
  • nostrils, the landlord of the Good Intent on the quay had a stand-up
  • quarrel with us before I could get even a hot bath, and the bedroom
  • I slept in was infested by a quantity of exotic but voracious flat
  • parasites called locally “bugs,” in the walls, in the woodwork,
  • everywhere. I fought them with insect powder, and found them comatose
  • in the morning. I was dipping down into the dingy underworld of the
  • contemporary state, and I liked it no better than I did my first dip
  • into it when I stayed with my Uncle Nicodemus Frapp at the bakery at
  • Chatham--where, by-the-by, we had to deal with cockroaches of a smaller,
  • darker variety, and also with bugs of sorts.
  • Let me confess that through all this time before we started I was
  • immensely self-conscious, and that Beatrice played the part of audience
  • in my imagination throughout. I was, as I say, “saving the situation,”
  • and I was acutely aware of that. The evening before we sailed, instead
  • of revising our medicine-chest as I had intended, I took the car and
  • ran across country to Lady Grove to tell my aunt of the journey I was
  • making, dress, and astonish Lady Osprey by an after dinner call.
  • The two ladies were at home and alone beside a big fire that seemed
  • wonderfully cheerful after the winter night. I remember the effect of
  • the little parlour in which they sat as very bright and domestic. Lady
  • Osprey, in a costume of mauve and lace, sat on a chintz sofa and played
  • an elaborately spread-out patience by the light of a tall shaded lamp;
  • Beatrice, in a whiteness that showed her throat, smoked a cigarette
  • in an armchair and read with a lamp at her elbow. The room was
  • white-panelled and chintz-curtained. About those two bright centres of
  • light were warm dark shadow, in which a circular mirror shone like a
  • pool of brown water. I carried off my raid by behaving like a slave of
  • etiquette. There were moments when I think I really made Lady Osprey
  • believe that my call was an unavoidable necessity, that it would have
  • been negligent of me not to call just how and when I did. But at the
  • best those were transitory moments.
  • They received me with disciplined amazement. Lady Osprey was interested
  • in my face and scrutinised the scar. Beatrice stood behind
  • her solicitude. Our eyes met, and in hers I could see startled
  • interrogations.
  • “I’m going,” I said, “to the west coast of Africa.”
  • They asked questions, but it suited my mood to be vague.
  • “We’ve interests there. It is urgent I should go. I don’t know when I
  • may return.”
  • After that I perceived Beatrice surveyed me steadily.
  • The conversation was rather difficult. I embarked upon lengthy thanks
  • for their kindness to me after my accident. I tried to understand Lady
  • Osprey’s game of patience, but it didn’t appear that Lady Osprey was
  • anxious for me to understand her patience. I came to the verge of taking
  • my leave.
  • “You needn’t go yet,” said Beatrice, abruptly.
  • She walked across to the piano, took a pile of music from the cabinet
  • near, surveyed Lady Osprey’s back, and with a gesture to me dropped it
  • all deliberately on to the floor.
  • “Must talk,” she said, kneeling close to me as I helped her to pick it
  • up. “Turn my pages. At the piano.”
  • “I can’t read music.”
  • “Turn my pages.”
  • Presently we were at the piano, and Beatrice was playing with noisy
  • inaccuracy. She glanced over her shoulder and Lady Osprey had resumed
  • her patience. The old lady was very pink, and appeared to be absorbed in
  • some attempt to cheat herself without our observing it.
  • “Isn’t West Africa a vile climate?” “Are you going to live there?” “Why
  • are you going?”
  • Beatrice asked these questions in a low voice and gave me no chance to
  • answer. Then taking a rhythm from the music before her, she said--
  • “At the back of the house is a garden--a door in the wall--on the lane.
  • Understand?”
  • I turned over the pages without any effect on her playing.
  • “When?” I asked.
  • She dealt in chords. “I wish I COULD play this!” she said. “Midnight.”
  • She gave her attention to the music for a time.
  • “You may have to wait.”
  • “I’ll wait.”
  • She brought her playing to an end by--as school boys say--“stashing it
  • up.”
  • “I can’t play to-night,” she said, standing up and meeting my eyes. “I
  • wanted to give you a parting voluntary.”
  • “Was that Wagner, Beatrice?” asked Lady Osprey looking up from her
  • cards. “It sounded very confused.”
  • I took my leave. I had a curious twinge of conscience as I parted from
  • Lady Osprey. Either a first intimation of middle-age or my inexperience
  • in romantic affairs was to blame, but I felt a very distinct objection
  • to the prospect of invading this good lady’s premises from the garden
  • door. I motored up to the pavilion, found Cothope reading in bed,
  • told him for the first time of West Africa, spent an hour with him in
  • settling all the outstanding details of Lord Roberts B, and left that
  • in his hands to finish against my return. I sent the motor back to Lady
  • Grove, and still wearing my fur coat--for the January night was damp and
  • bitterly cold--walked to Bedley Corner. I found the lane to the back of
  • the Dower House without any difficulty, and was at the door in the wall
  • with ten minutes to spare. I lit a cigar and fell to walking up and
  • down. This queer flavour of intrigue, this nocturnal garden-door
  • business, had taken me by surprise and changed my mental altitudes.
  • I was startled out of my egotistical pose and thinking intently of
  • Beatrice, of that elfin quality in her that always pleased me, that
  • always took me by surprise, that had made her for example so instantly
  • conceive this meeting.
  • She came within a minute of midnight; the door opened softly and she
  • appeared, a short, grey figure in a motor-coat of sheepskin, bareheaded
  • to the cold drizzle. She flitted up to me, and her eyes were shadows in
  • her dusky face.
  • “Why are you going to West Africa?” she asked at once.
  • “Business crisis. I have to go.”
  • “You’re not going--? You’re coming back?”
  • “Three or four months,” I said, “at most.”
  • “Then, it’s nothing to do with me?”
  • “Nothing,” I said. “Why should it have?”
  • “Oh, that’s all right. One never knows what people think or what people
  • fancy.” She took me by the arm, “Let’s go for a walk,” she said.
  • I looked about me at darkness and rain.
  • “That’s all right,” she laughed. “We can go along the lane and into the
  • Old Woking Road. Do you mind? Of course you don’t. My head. It doesn’t
  • matter. One never meets anybody.”
  • “How do you know?”
  • “I’ve wandered like this before.... Of course. Did you think”--she
  • nodded her head back at her home--“that’s all?”
  • “No, by Jove!” I cried; “it’s manifest it isn’t.”
  • She took my arm and turned me down the lane. “Night’s my time,” she
  • said by my side. “There’s a touch of the werewolf in my blood. One never
  • knows in these old families.... I’ve wondered often.... Here we are,
  • anyhow, alone in the world. Just darkness and cold and a sky of clouds
  • and wet. And we--together.
  • “I like the wet on my face and hair, don’t you? When do you sail?”
  • I told her to-morrow.
  • “Oh, well, there’s no to-morrow now. You and I!” She stopped and
  • confronted me.
  • “You don’t say a word except to answer!”
  • “No,” I said.
  • “Last time you did all the talking.”
  • “Like a fool. Now--”
  • We looked at each other’s two dim faces. “You’re glad to be here?”
  • “I’m glad--I’m beginning to be--it’s more than glad.”
  • She put her hands on my shoulders and drew me down to kiss her.
  • “Ah!” she said, and for a moment or so we just clung to one another.
  • “That’s all,” she said, releasing herself. “What bundles of clothes we
  • are to-night. I felt we should kiss some day again. Always. The last
  • time was ages ago.”
  • “Among the fern stalks.”
  • “Among the bracken. You remember. And your lips were cold. Were mine?
  • The same lips--after so long--after so much!... And now let’s trudge
  • through this blotted-out world together for a time. Yes, let me take
  • your arm. Just trudge. See? Hold tight to me because I know the way--and
  • don’t talk--don’t talk. Unless you want to talk.... Let me tell you
  • things! You see, dear, the whole world is blotted out--it’s dead and
  • gone, and we’re in this place. This dark wild place.... We’re dead. Or
  • all the world is dead. No! We’re dead. No one can see us. We’re shadows.
  • We’ve got out of our positions, out of our bodies--and together. That’s
  • the good thing of it--together. But that’s why the world can’t see us
  • and why we hardly see the world. Sssh! Is it all right?”
  • “It’s all right,” I said.
  • We stumbled along for a time in a close silence. We passed a dim-lit,
  • rain-veiled window.
  • “The silly world,” she said, “the silly world! It eats and sleeps.
  • If the wet didn’t patter so from the trees we’d hear it snoring. It’s
  • dreaming such stupid things--stupid judgments. It doesn’t know we are
  • passing, we two--free of it--clear of it. You and I!”
  • We pressed against each other reassuringly.
  • “I’m glad we’re dead,” she whispered. “I’m glad we’re dead. I was tired
  • of it, dear. I was so tired of it, dear, and so entangled.”
  • She stopped abruptly.
  • We splashed through a string of puddles. I began to remember things I
  • had meant to say.
  • “Look here!” I cried. “I want to help you beyond measure. You are
  • entangled. What is the trouble? I asked you to marry me. You said you
  • would. But there’s something.”
  • My thoughts sounded clumsy as I said them.
  • “Is it something about my position?... Or is it
  • something--perhaps--about some other man?”
  • There was an immense assenting silence.
  • “You’ve puzzled me so. At first--I mean quite early--I thought you meant
  • to make me marry you.”
  • “I did.”
  • “And then?”
  • “To-night,” she said after a long pause, “I can’t explain. No! I can’t
  • explain. I love you! But--explanations! To-night my dear, here we are in
  • the world alone--and the world doesn’t matter. Nothing matters. Here I
  • am in the cold with you and my bed away there deserted. I’d tell you--I
  • will tell you when things enable me to tell you, and soon enough they
  • will. But to-night--I won’t--I won’t.”
  • She left my side and went in front of me.
  • She turned upon me. “Look here,” she said, “I insist upon your being
  • dead. Do you understand? I’m not joking. To-night you and I are out
  • of life. It’s our time together. There may be other times, but this we
  • won’t spoil. We’re--in Hades if you like. Where there’s nothing to
  • hide and nothing to tell. No bodies even. No bothers. We loved each
  • other--down there--and were kept apart, but now it doesn’t matter. It’s
  • over.... If you won’t agree to that--I will go home.”
  • “I wanted,” I began.
  • “I know. Oh! my dear, if you’d only understand I understand. If you’d
  • only not care--and love me to-night.”
  • “I do love you,” I said.
  • “Then LOVE me,” she answered, “and leave all the things that bother you.
  • Love me! Here I am!”
  • “But!--”
  • “No!” she said.
  • “Well, have your way.”
  • So she carried her point, and we wandered into the night together and
  • Beatrice talked to me of love....
  • I’d never heard a woman before in all my life who could talk of love,
  • who could lay bare and develop and touch with imagination all that mass
  • of fine emotion every woman, it may be, hides. She had read of love,
  • she had thought of love, a thousand sweet lyrics had sounded through her
  • brain and left fine fragments in her memory; she poured it out, all
  • of it, shamelessly, skilfully, for me. I cannot give any sense of that
  • talk, I cannot even tell how much of the delight of it was the magic of
  • her voice, the glow of her near presence. And always we walked swathed
  • warmly through a chilly air, along dim, interminable greasy roads--with
  • never a soul abroad it seemed to us, never a beast in the fields.
  • “Why do people love each other?” I said.
  • “Why not?”
  • “But why do I love you? Why is your voice better than any voice, your
  • face sweeter than any face?”
  • “And why do I love you?” she asked; “not only what is fine in you,
  • but what isn’t? Why do I love your dullness, your arrogance? For I do.
  • To--night I love the very raindrops on the fur of your coat!”...
  • So we talked; and at last very wet, still glowing but a little tired,
  • we parted at the garden door. We had been wandering for two hours in our
  • strange irrational community of happiness, and all the world about us,
  • and particularly Lady Osprey and her household, had been asleep--and
  • dreaming of anything rather than Beatrice in the night and rain.
  • She stood in the doorway, a muffled figure with eyes that glowed.
  • “Come back,” she whispered. “I shall wait for you.”
  • She hesitated.
  • She touched the lapel of my coat. “I love you NOW,” she said, and lifted
  • her face to mine.
  • I held her to me and was atremble from top to toe. “O God!” I cried.
  • “And I must go!”
  • She slipped from my arms and paused, regarding me. For an instant the
  • world seemed full of fantastic possibilities.
  • “Yes, GO!” she said, and vanished and slammed the door upon me, leaving
  • me alone like a man new fallen from fairyland in the black darkness of
  • the night.
  • III
  • That expedition to Mordet Island stands apart from all the rest of my
  • life, detached, a piece by itself with an atmosphere of its own. It
  • would, I suppose, make a book by itself--it has made a fairly voluminous
  • official report--but so far as this novel of mine goes it is merely an
  • episode, a contributory experience, and I mean to keep it at that.
  • Vile weather, an impatient fretting against unbearable slowness
  • and delay, sea--sickness, general discomfort and humiliating
  • self--revelation are the master values of these memories.
  • I was sick all through the journey out. I don’t know why. It was the
  • only time I was ever sea-sick, and I have seen some pretty bad weather
  • since I became a boat-builder. But that phantom smell of potatoes was
  • peculiarly vile to me. Coming back on the brig we were all ill, every
  • one of us, so soon as we got to sea, poisoned, I firmly believe, by
  • quap. On the way out most of the others recovered in a few days, but the
  • stuffiness below, the coarse food, the cramped dirty accommodation kept
  • me, if not actually sea-sick, in a state of acute physical wretchedness
  • the whole time. The ship abounded in cockroaches and more intimate
  • vermin. I was cold all the time until after we passed Cape Verde, then
  • I became steamily hot; I had been too preoccupied with Beatrice and my
  • keen desire to get the Maud Mary under way at once, to consider a proper
  • wardrobe for myself, and in particular I lacked a coat. Heavens! how I
  • lacked that coat! And, moreover, I was cooped up with two of the worst
  • bores in Christendom, Pollack and the captain. Pollack, after conducting
  • his illness in a style better adapted to the capacity of an opera house
  • than a small compartment, suddenly got insupportably well and breezy,
  • and produced a manly pipe in which he smoked a tobacco as blond as
  • himself, and divided his time almost equally between smoking it and
  • trying to clean it. “There’s only three things you can clean a pipe
  • with,” he used to remark with a twist of paper in hand. “The best’s a
  • feather, the second’s a straw, and the third’s a girl’s hairpin. I never
  • see such a ship. You can’t find any of ‘em. Last time I came this way
  • I did find hairpins anyway, and found ‘em on the floor of the captain’s
  • cabin. Regular deposit. Eh?... Feelin’ better?”
  • At which I usually swore.
  • “Oh, you’ll be all right soon. Don’t mind my puffin’ a bit? Eh?”
  • He never tired of asking me to “have a hand at Nap. Good game. Makes you
  • forget it, and that’s half the battle.”
  • He would sit swaying with the rolling of the ship and suck at his pipe
  • of blond tobacco and look with an inexpressibly sage but somnolent blue
  • eye at the captain by the hour together. “Captain’s a Card,” he would
  • say over and over again as the outcome of these meditations. “He’d like
  • to know what we’re up to. He’d like to know--no end.”
  • That did seem to be the captain’s ruling idea. But he also wanted to
  • impress me with the notion that he was a gentleman of good family and to
  • air a number of views adverse to the English, to English literature, to
  • the English constitution, and the like.
  • He had learnt the sea in the Roumanian navy, and English out of a book;
  • he would still at times pronounce the e’s at the end of “there”
  • and “here”; he was a naturalised Englishman, and he drove me into a
  • reluctant and uncongenial patriotism by his everlasting carping at
  • things English. Pollack would set himself to “draw him out.” Heaven
  • alone can tell how near I came to murder.
  • Fifty-three days I had outward, cooped up with these two and a shy and
  • profoundly depressed mate who read the Bible on Sundays and spent the
  • rest of his leisure in lethargy, three and fifty days of life cooped up
  • in a perpetual smell, in a persistent sick hunger that turned from the
  • sight of food, in darkness, cold and wet, in a lightly ballasted ship
  • that rolled and pitched and swayed. And all the time the sands in the
  • hour-glass of my uncle’s fortunes were streaming out. Misery! Amidst it
  • all I remember only one thing brightly, one morning of sunshine in the
  • Bay of Biscay and a vision of frothing waves, sapphire green, a bird
  • following our wake and our masts rolling about the sky. Then wind and
  • rain close in on us again.
  • You must not imagine they were ordinary days, days, I mean, of an
  • average length; they were not so much days as long damp slabs of time
  • that stretched each one to the horizon, and much of that length was
  • night. One paraded the staggering deck in a borrowed sou’-wester hour
  • after hour in the chilly, windy, splashing and spitting darkness, or
  • sat in the cabin, bored and ill, and looked at the faces of those
  • inseparable companions by the help of a lamp that gave smell rather than
  • light. Then one would see going up, up, up, and then sinking down, down,
  • down, Pollack, extinct pipe in mouth, humorously observant, bringing his
  • mind slowly to the seventy-seventh decision that the captain was a Card,
  • while the words flowed from the latter in a nimble incessant good.
  • “Dis England eet is not a country aristocratic, no! Eet is a glorified
  • bourgeoisie! Eet is plutocratic. In England dere is no aristocracy since
  • de Wars of Roses. In the rest of Europe east of the Latins, yes; in
  • England, no.
  • “Eet is all middle-class, youra England. Everything you look at,
  • middle-class. Respectable! Everything good--eet is, you say, shocking.
  • Madame Grundy! Eet is all limited and computing and self-seeking. Dat is
  • why your art is so limited, youra fiction, your philosophin, why you
  • are all so inartistic. You want nothing but profit! What will pay! What
  • would you?”...
  • He had all those violent adjuncts to speech we Western Europeans have
  • abandoned, shruggings of the shoulders, waving of the arms, thrusting
  • out of the face, wonderful grimaces and twiddlings of the hands under
  • your nose until you wanted to hit them away. Day after day it went on,
  • and I had to keep any anger to myself, to reserve myself for the time
  • ahead when it would be necessary to see the quap was got aboard and
  • stowed--knee deep in this man’s astonishment. I knew he would make a
  • thousand objections to all we had before us. He talked like a drugged
  • man. It ran glibly over his tongue. And all the time one could see his
  • seamanship fretting him, he was gnawed by responsibility, perpetually
  • uneasy about the ship’s position, perpetually imagining dangers. If a
  • sea hit us exceptionally hard he’d be out of the cabin in an instant
  • making an outcry of inquiries, and he was pursued by a dread of the
  • hold, of ballast shifting, of insidious wicked leaks. As we drew near
  • the African coast his fear of rocks and shoals became infectious.
  • “I do not know dis coast,” he used to say. “I cama hera because
  • Gordon-Nasmyth was coming too. Den he does not come!”
  • “Fortunes of war,” I said, and tried to think in vain if any motive but
  • sheer haphazard could have guided Gordon-Nasmyth in the choice of these
  • two men. I think perhaps Gordon-Nasmyth had the artistic temperament and
  • wanted contrasts, and also that the captain helped him to express his
  • own malignant Anti-Britishism.
  • He was indeed an exceptionally inefficient captain. On the whole I was
  • glad I had come even at the eleventh hour to see to things.
  • (The captain, by-the-by, did at last, out of sheer nervousness, get
  • aground at the end of Mordet’s Island, but we got off in an hour or so
  • with a swell and a little hard work in the boat.)
  • I suspected the mate of his opinion of the captain long before he
  • expressed it. He was, I say, a taciturn man, but one day speech broke
  • through him. He had been sitting at the table with his arms folded on
  • it, musing drearily, pipe in mouth, and the voice of the captain drifted
  • down from above.
  • The mate lifted his heavy eyes to me and regarded me for a moment.
  • Then he began to heave with the beginnings of speech. He disembarrassed
  • himself of his pipe. I cowered with expectation. Speech was coming at
  • last. Before he spoke he nodded reassuringly once or twice.
  • “E--”
  • He moved his head strangely and mysteriously, but a child might have
  • known he spoke of the captain.
  • “E’s a foreigner.”
  • He regarded me doubtfully for a time, and at last decided for the sake
  • of lucidity to clench the matter.
  • “That’s what E is--a DAGO!”
  • He nodded like a man who gives a last tap to a nail, and I could see
  • he considered his remark well and truly laid. His face, though still
  • resolute, became as tranquil and uneventful as a huge hall after a
  • public meeting has dispersed out of it, and finally he closed and locked
  • it with his pipe.
  • “Roumanian Jew, isn’t he?” I said.
  • He nodded darkly and almost forbiddingly.
  • More would have been too much. The thing was said. But from that time
  • forth I knew I could depend upon him and that he and I were friends. It
  • happens I never did have to depend upon him, but that does not affect
  • our relationship.
  • Forward the crew lived lives very much after the fashion of ours, more
  • crowded, more cramped and dirty, wetter, steamier, more verminous. The
  • coarse food they had was still not so coarse but that they did not think
  • they were living “like fighting cocks.” So far as I could make out
  • they were all nearly destitute men; hardly any of them had a proper
  • sea outfit, and what small possessions they had were a source of mutual
  • distrust. And as we pitched and floundered southward they gambled and
  • fought, were brutal to one another, argued and wrangled loudly, until we
  • protested at the uproar.
  • There’s no romance about the sea in a small sailing ship as I saw it.
  • The romance is in the mind of the landsman dreamer. These brigs and
  • schooners and brigantines that still stand out from every little port
  • are relics from an age of petty trade, as rotten and obsolescent as
  • a Georgian house that has sunken into a slum. They are indeed just
  • floating fragments of slum, much as icebergs are floating fragments of
  • glacier. The civilised man who has learnt to wash, who has developed
  • a sense of physical honour, of cleanly temperate feeding, of time, can
  • endure them no more. They pass, and the clanking coal-wasting steamers
  • will follow them, giving place to cleaner, finer things....
  • But so it was I made my voyage to Africa, and came at last into a world
  • of steamy fogs and a hot smell of vegetable decay, and into sound and
  • sight of surf and distant intermittent glimpses of the coast. I lived
  • a strange concentrated life through all that time, such a life as a
  • creature must do that has fallen in a well. All my former ways ceased,
  • all my old vistas became memories.
  • The situation I was saving was very small and distant now; I felt its
  • urgency no more. Beatrice and Lady Grove, my uncle and the Hardingham,
  • my soaring in the air and my habitual wide vision of swift effectual
  • things, became as remote as if they were in some world I had left for
  • ever....
  • IV
  • All these African memories stand by themselves. It was for me an
  • expedition into the realms of undisciplined nature out of the world that
  • is ruled by men, my first bout with that hot side of our mother that
  • gives you the jungle--that cold side that gives you the air-eddy I was
  • beginning to know passing well. They are memories woven upon a fabric
  • of sunshine and heat and a constant warm smell of decay. They end
  • in rain--such rain as I had never seen before, a vehement, a frantic
  • downpouring of water, but our first slow passage through the channels
  • behind Mordet’s Island was in incandescent sunshine.
  • There we go in my memory still, a blistered dirty ship with patched
  • sails and a battered mermaid to present Maud Mary, sounding and taking
  • thought between high ranks of forest whose trees come out knee-deep
  • at last in the water. There we go with a little breeze on our quarter,
  • Mordet Island rounded and the quap, it might be within a day of us.
  • Here and there strange blossoms woke the dank intensities of green with
  • a trumpet call of colour. Things crept among the jungle and peeped and
  • dashed back rustling into stillness. Always in the sluggishly drifting,
  • opaque water were eddyings and stirrings; little rushes of bubbles came
  • chuckling up light-heartedly from this or that submerged conflict and
  • tragedy; now and again were crocodiles like a stranded fleet of logs
  • basking in the sun. Still it was by day, a dreary stillness broken only
  • by insect sounds and the creaking and flapping of our progress, by the
  • calling of the soundings and the captain’s confused shouts; but in
  • the night as we lay moored to a clump of trees the darkness brought a
  • thousand swampy things to life and out of the forest came screaming and
  • howlings, screaming and yells that made us glad to be afloat. And once
  • we saw between the tree stems long blazing fires. We passed two or three
  • villages landward, and brown-black women and children came and stared at
  • us and gesticulated, and once a man came out in a boat from a creek and
  • hailed us in an unknown tongue; and so at last we came to a great open
  • place, a broad lake rimmed with a desolation of mud and bleached refuse
  • and dead trees, free from crocodiles or water birds or sight or sound
  • of any living thing, and saw far off, even as Nasmyth had described, the
  • ruins of the deserted station, and hard by two little heaps of buff-hued
  • rubbish under a great rib of rock, the quap! The forest receded. The
  • land to the right of us fell away and became barren, and far on across
  • notch in its backbone was surf and the sea.
  • We took the ship in towards those heaps and the ruined jetty slowly and
  • carefully. The captain came and talked.
  • “This is eet?” he said.
  • “Yes,” said I.
  • “Is eet for trade we have come?”
  • This was ironical.
  • “No,” said I.
  • “Gordon-Nasmyth would haf told me long ago what it ees for we haf come.”
  • “I’ll tell you now,” I said. “We are going to lay in as close as we can
  • to those two heaps of stuff--you see them?--under the rock. Then we are
  • going to chuck all our ballast overboard and take those in. Then we’re
  • going home.”
  • “May I presume to ask--is eet gold?”
  • “No,” I said incivilly, “it isn’t.”
  • “Then what is it?”
  • “It’s stuff--of some commercial value.”
  • “We can’t do eet,” he said.
  • “We can,” I answered reassuringly.
  • “We can’t,” he said as confidently. “I don’t mean what you mean. You
  • know so liddle--But--dis is forbidden country.”
  • I turned on him suddenly angry and met bright excited eyes. For a minute
  • we scrutinised one another. Then I said, “That’s our risk. Trade is
  • forbidden. But this isn’t trade.... This thing’s got to be done.”
  • His eyes glittered and he shook his head....
  • The brig stood in slowly through the twilight toward this strange
  • scorched and blistered stretch of beach, and the man at the wheel
  • strained his ears to listening the low-voiced angry argument that began
  • between myself and the captain, that was presently joined by Pollack. We
  • moored at last within a hundred yards of our goal, and all through our
  • dinner and far into the night we argued intermittently and fiercely with
  • the captain about our right to load just what we pleased. “I will haf
  • nothing to do with eet,” he persisted. “I wash my hands.” It seemed that
  • night as though we argued in vain. “If it is not trade,” he said, “it
  • is prospecting and mining. That is worse. Any one who knows
  • anything--outside England--knows that is worse.”
  • We argued and I lost my temper and swore at him. Pollack kept cooler and
  • chewed his pipe watchfully with that blue eye of his upon the captain’s
  • gestures. Finally I went on deck to cool. The sky was overcast I
  • discovered all the men were in a knot forward, staring at the faint
  • quivering luminosity that had spread over the heaps of quap, a
  • phosphorescence such as one sees at times on rotting wood. And about
  • the beach east and west there were patches and streaks of something like
  • diluted moonshine....
  • In the small hours I was still awake and turning over scheme after
  • scheme in my mind whereby I might circumvent the captain’s opposition. I
  • meant to get that quap aboard if I had to kill some one to do it. Never
  • in my life had I been so thwarted! After this intolerable voyage! There
  • came a rap at my cabin door and then it opened and I made out a bearded
  • face. “Come in,” I said, and a black voluble figure I could just see
  • obscurely came in to talk in my private ear and fill my cabin with its
  • whisperings and gestures. It was the captain. He, too, had been awake
  • and thinking things over. He had come to explain--enormously. I lay
  • there hating him and wondering if I and Pollack could lock him in
  • his cabin and run the ship without him. “I do not want to spoil dis
  • expedition,” emerged from a cloud of protestations, and then I was able
  • to disentangle “a commission--shush a small commission--for special
  • risks!” “Special risks” became frequent. I let him explain himself out.
  • It appeared he was also demanding an apology for something I had said.
  • No doubt I had insulted him generously. At last came definite offers. I
  • broke my silence and bargained.
  • “Pollack!” I cried and hammered the partition.
  • “What’s up?” asked Pollack.
  • I stated the case concisely.
  • There came a silence.
  • “He’s a Card,” said Pollack. “Let’s give him his commission. I don’t
  • mind.”
  • “Eh?” I cried.
  • “I said he was a Card, that’s all,” said Pollack. “I’m coming.”
  • He appeared in my doorway a faint white figure joined our vehement
  • whisperings.
  • We had to buy the captain off; we had to promise him ten per cent. of
  • our problematical profits. We were to give him ten per cent. on what we
  • sold the cargo for over and above his legitimate pay, and I found in my
  • out-bargained and disordered state small consolation in the thought that
  • I, as the Gordon-Nasmyth expedition, was to sell the stuff to myself as
  • Business Organisations. And he further exasperated me by insisting on
  • having our bargain in writing. “In the form of a letter,” he insisted.
  • “All right,” I acquiesced, “in the form of a letter. Here goes! Get a
  • light!”
  • “And the apology,” he said, folding up the letter.
  • “All right,” I said; “Apology.”
  • My hand shook with anger as I wrote, and afterwards I could not sleep
  • for hate of him. At last I got up. I suffered, I found, from an unusual
  • clumsiness. I struck my toe against my cabin door, and cut myself as I
  • shaved. I found myself at last pacing the deck under the dawn in a
  • mood of extreme exasperation. The sun rose abruptly and splashed light
  • blindingly into my eyes and I swore at the sun. I found myself imagining
  • fresh obstacles with the men and talking aloud in anticipatory rehearsal
  • of the consequent row.
  • The malaria of the quap was already in my blood.
  • V
  • Sooner or later the ridiculous embargo that now lies upon all the coast
  • eastward of Mordet Island will be lifted and the reality of the deposits
  • of quap ascertained. I am sure that we were merely taking the outcrop
  • of a stratum of nodulated deposits that dip steeply seaward. Those heaps
  • were merely the crumbled out contents of two irregular cavities in the
  • rock; they are as natural as any talus or heap of that kind, and the
  • mud along the edge of the water for miles is mixed with quap, and is
  • radio-active and lifeless and faintly phosphorescent at night. But the
  • reader will find the full particulars of my impression of all this in
  • the Geological Magazine for October, 1905, and to that I must refer him.
  • There, too, he will find my unconfirmed theories of its nature. If I am
  • right it is something far more significant from the scientific point
  • of view than those incidental constituents of various rare metals,
  • pitchblende, rutile, and the like, upon which the revolutionary
  • discoveries of the last decade are based. Those are just little
  • molecular centres of disintegration, of that mysterious decay and
  • rotting of those elements, elements once regarded as the most stable
  • things in nature. But there is something--the only word that comes near
  • it is CANCEROUS--and that is not very near, about the whole of quap,
  • something that creeps and lives as a disease lives by destroying; an
  • elemental stirring and disarrangement, incalculably maleficent and
  • strange.
  • This is no imaginative comparison of mine. To my mind radio-activity
  • is a real disease of matter. Moreover, it is a contagious disease. It
  • spreads. You bring those debased and crumbling atoms near others and
  • those too presently catch the trick of swinging themselves out of
  • coherent existence. It is in matter exactly what the decay of our old
  • culture is in society, a loss of traditions and distinctions and assured
  • reactions. When I think of these inexplicable dissolvent centres that
  • have come into being in our globe--these quap heaps are surely by far
  • the largest that have yet been found in the world; the rest as yet mere
  • specks in grains and crystals--I am haunted by a grotesque fancy of the
  • ultimate eating away and dry-rotting and dispersal of all our world. So
  • that while man still struggles and dreams his very substance will change
  • and crumble from beneath him. I mention this here as a queer persistent
  • fancy. Suppose, indeed, that is to be the end of our planet; no splendid
  • climax and finale, no towering accumulation of achievements, but
  • just--atomic decay! I add that to the ideas of the suffocating comet,
  • the dark body out of space, the burning out of the sun, the distorted
  • orbit, as a new and far more possible end--as Science can see ends--to
  • this strange by-play of matter that we call human life. I do not believe
  • this can be the end; no human soul can believe in such an end and go on
  • living, but to it science points as a possible thing, science and reason
  • alike. If single human beings--if one single ricketty infant--can be
  • born as it were by accident and die futile, why not the whole race?
  • These are questions I have never answered, that now I never attempt to
  • answer, but the thought of quap and its mysteries brings them back to
  • me.
  • I can witness that the beach and mud for two miles or more either way
  • was a lifeless beach--lifeless as I could have imagined no tropical mud
  • could ever be, and all the dead branches and leaves and rotting dead
  • fish and so forth that drifted ashore became presently shrivelled and
  • white. Sometimes crocodiles would come up out of the water and bask, and
  • now and then water birds would explore the mud and rocky ribs that rose
  • out of it, in a mood of transitory speculation. That was its utmost
  • admiration. And the air felt at once hot and austere, dry and
  • blistering, and altogether different the warm moist embrace that had met
  • us at our first African landfall and to which we had grown accustomed.
  • I believe that the primary influence of the quap upon us was to increase
  • the conductivity of our nerves, but that is a mere unjustifiable
  • speculation on my part. At any rate it gave a sort of east wind effect
  • to life. We all became irritable, clumsy, languid and disposed to
  • be impatient with our languor. We moored the brig to the rocks with
  • difficulty, and got aground on mud and decided to stick there and tow
  • off when we had done--the bottom was as greasy as butter. Our efforts
  • to fix up planks and sleepers in order to wheel the quap aboard were as
  • ill-conceived as that sort of work can be--and that sort of work can at
  • times be very ill-conceived. The captain had a superstitious fear of his
  • hold: he became wildly gesticulatory and expository and incompetent at
  • the bare thought of it. His shouts still echo in my memory, becoming as
  • each crisis approached less and less like any known tongue.
  • But I cannot now write the history of those days of blundering and toil:
  • of how Milton, one of the boys, fell from a plank to the beach, thirty
  • feet perhaps, with his barrow and broke his arm and I believe a rib,
  • of how I and Pollack set the limb and nursed him through the fever that
  • followed, of how one man after another succumbed to a feverish malaria,
  • and how I--by virtue of my scientific reputation--was obliged to play
  • the part of doctor and dose them with quinine, and then finding that
  • worse than nothing, with rum and small doses of Easton’s Syrup, of which
  • there chanced to be a case of bottles aboard--Heaven and Gordon-Nasmyth
  • know why. For three long days we lay in misery and never shipped a
  • barrow-load. Then, when they resumed, the men’s hands broke out into
  • sores. There were no gloves available; and I tried to get them, while
  • they shovelled and wheeled, to cover their hands with stockings
  • or greased rags. They would not do this on account of the heat and
  • discomfort. This attempt of mine did, however, direct their attention to
  • the quap as the source of their illness and precipitated what in the
  • end finished our lading, an informal strike. “We’ve had enough of this,”
  • they said, and they meant it. They came aft to say as much. They cowed
  • the captain.
  • Through all these days the weather was variously vile, first a furnace
  • heat under a sky of a scowling intensity of blue, then a hot fog that
  • stuck in one’s throat like wool and turned the men on the planks into
  • colourless figures of giants, then a wild burst of thunderstorms,
  • mad elemental uproar and rain. Through it all, against illness, heat,
  • confusion of mind, one master impetus prevailed with me, to keep the
  • shipping going, to maintain one motif at least, whatever else arose
  • or ceased, the chuff of the spades, the squeaking and shriek of the
  • barrows, the pluppa, pluppa, pluppa, as the men came trotting along the
  • swinging high planks, and then at last, the dollop, dollop, as the stuff
  • shot into the hold. “Another barrow-load, thank God! Another
  • fifteen hundred, or it may be two thousand pounds, for the saving of
  • Ponderevo!...”
  • I found out many things about myself and humanity in those weeks of
  • effort behind Mordet Island. I understand now the heart of the sweater,
  • of the harsh employer, of the nigger-driver. I had brought these
  • men into a danger they didn’t understand, I was fiercely resolved to
  • overcome their opposition and bend and use them for my purpose, and I
  • hated the men. But I hated all humanity during the time that the quap
  • was near me.
  • And my mind was pervaded, too, by a sense of urgency and by the fear
  • that we should be discovered and our proceedings stopped. I wanted to
  • get out to sea again--to be beating up northward with our plunder. I was
  • afraid our masts showed to seaward and might betray us to some curious
  • passer on the high sea. And one evening near the end I saw a canoe
  • with three natives far off down the lake; I got field-glasses from the
  • captain and scrutinised them, and I could see them staring at us. One
  • man might have been a half-breed and was dressed in white. They watched
  • us for some time very quietly and then paddled off into some channel in
  • the forest shadows.
  • And for three nights running, so that it took a painful grip upon my
  • inflamed imagination, I dreamt of my uncle’s face, only that it was
  • ghastly white like a clown’s, and the throat was cut from ear to ear--a
  • long ochreous cut. “Too late,” he said; “Too late!...”
  • VI
  • A day or so after we had got to work upon the quap I found myself so
  • sleepless and miserable that the ship became unendurable. Just before
  • the rush of sunrise I borrowed Pollack’s gun, walked down the planks,
  • clambered over the quap heaps and prowled along the beach. I went
  • perhaps a mile and a half that day and some distance beyond the ruins
  • of the old station. I became interested in the desolation about me, and
  • found when I returned that I was able to sleep for nearly an hour. It
  • was delightful to have been alone for so long,--no captain, no Pollack,
  • no one. Accordingly I repeated this expedition the next morning and the
  • next until it became a custom with me. There was little for me to do
  • once the digging and wheeling was organised, and so these prowlings of
  • mine grew longer and longer, and presently I began to take food with me.
  • I pushed these walks far beyond the area desolated by the quap. On the
  • edges of that was first a zone of stunted vegetation, then a sort of
  • swampy jungle that was difficult to penetrate, and then the beginnings
  • of the forest, a scene of huge tree stems and tangled creeper ropes
  • and roots mingled with oozy mud. Here I used to loaf in a state between
  • botanising and reverie--always very anxious to know what was up above in
  • the sunlight--and here it was I murdered a man.
  • It was the most unmeaning and purposeless murder imaginable. Even as I
  • write down its well-remembered particulars there comes again the sense
  • of its strangeness, its pointlessness, its incompatibility with any of
  • the neat and definite theories people hold about life and the meaning of
  • the world. I did this thing and I want to tell of my doing it, but why I
  • did it and particularly why I should be held responsible for it I cannot
  • explain.
  • That morning I had come upon a track in the forest, and it had occurred
  • to me as a disagreeable idea that this was a human pathway. I didn’t
  • want to come upon any human beings. The less our expedition saw of the
  • African population the better for its prospects. Thus far we had been
  • singularly free from native pestering. So I turned back and was making
  • my way over mud and roots and dead fronds and petals scattered from the
  • green world above when abruptly I saw my victim.
  • I became aware of him perhaps forty feet off standing quite still and
  • regarding me.
  • He wasn’t by any means a pretty figure. He was very black and naked
  • except for a dirty loin-cloth, his legs were ill-shaped and his toes
  • spread wide and the upper edge of his cloth and a girdle of string cut
  • his clumsy abdomen into folds. His forehead was low, his nose very
  • flat and his lower lip swollen and purplish-red. His hair was short and
  • fuzzy, and about his neck was a string and a little purse of skin. He
  • carried a musket, and a powder-flask was stuck in his girdle. It was a
  • curious confrontation. There opposed to him stood I, a little soiled,
  • perhaps, but still a rather elaborately civilised human being, born,
  • bred and trained in a vague tradition. In my hand was an unaccustomed
  • gun. And each of us was essentially a teeming, vivid brain, tensely
  • excited by the encounter, quite unaware of the other’s mental content or
  • what to do with him.
  • He stepped back a pace or so, stumbled and turned to run.
  • “Stop,” I cried; “stop, you fool!” and started to run after him,
  • shouting such things in English. But I was no match for him over the
  • roots and mud.
  • I had a preposterous idea. “He mustn’t get away and tell them!”
  • And with that instantly I brought both feet together, raised my gun,
  • aimed quite coolly, drew the trigger carefully and shot him neatly in
  • the back.
  • I saw, and saw with a leap of pure exaltation, the smash of my bullet
  • between his shoulder blades. “Got him,” said I, dropping my gun and down
  • he flopped and died without a groan. “By Jove!” I cried with note of
  • surprise, “I’ve killed him!” I looked about me and then went forward
  • cautiously, in a mood between curiosity and astonishment, to look at
  • this man whose soul I had flung so unceremoniously out of our common
  • world. I went to him, not as one goes to something one has made or done,
  • but as one approaches something found.
  • He was frightfully smashed out in front; he must have died in the
  • instant. I stooped and raised him by his shoulder and realised that. I
  • dropped him, and stood about and peered about me through the trees. “My
  • word!” I said. He was the second dead human being--apart, I mean, from
  • surgical properties and mummies and common shows of that sort--that I
  • have ever seen. I stood over him wondering, wondering beyond measure.
  • A practical idea came into that confusion. Had any one heard the gun?
  • I reloaded.
  • After a time I felt securer, and gave my mind again to the dead I had
  • killed. What must I do?
  • It occurred to me that perhaps I ought to bury him. At any rate, I ought
  • to hide him. I reflected coolly, and then put my gun within easy reach
  • and dragged him by the arm towards a place where the mud seemed soft,
  • and thrust him in. His powder-flask slipped from his loin-cloth, and I
  • went back to get it. Then I pressed him down with the butt of my rifle.
  • Afterwards this all seemed to me most horrible, but at the time it was
  • entirely a matter-of-fact transaction. I looked round for any other
  • visible evidence of his fate, looked round as one does when one packs
  • one’s portmanteau in an hotel bedroom.
  • When I got my bearings, and carefully returned towards the ship. I had
  • the mood of grave concentration of a boy who has lapsed into poaching.
  • And the business only began to assume proper proportions for me as I
  • got near the ship, to seem any other kind of thing than the killing of a
  • bird or rabbit.
  • In the night, however, it took on enormous and portentous forms. “By
  • God!” I cried suddenly, starting wide awake; “but it was murder!”
  • I lay after that wide awake, staring at my memories. In some odd way
  • these visions mixed up with my dream of in my uncle in his despair.
  • The black body which saw now damaged and partly buried, but which,
  • nevertheless, I no longer felt was dead but acutely alive and
  • perceiving, I mixed up with the ochreous slash under my uncle’s face. I
  • tried to dismiss this horrible obsession from my mind, but it prevailed
  • over all my efforts.
  • The next day was utterly black with my sense of that ugly creature’s
  • body. I am the least superstitious of men, but it drew me. It drew me
  • back into those thickets to the very place where I had hidden him.
  • Some evil and detestable beast had been at him, and he lay disinterred.
  • Methodically I buried his swollen and mangled carcass again, and
  • returned to the ship for another night of dreams. Next day for all the
  • morning I resisted the impulse to go to him, and played nap with Pollack
  • with my secret gnawing at me, and in the evening started to go and was
  • near benighted. I never told a soul of them of this thing I had done.
  • Next day I went early, and he had gone, and there were human footmarks
  • and ugly stains round the muddy hole from which he had been dragged.
  • I returned to the ship, disconcerted and perplexed. That day it was the
  • men came aft, with blistered hands and faces, and sullen eyes. When they
  • proclaimed, through Edwards, their spokesman, “We’ve had enough of this,
  • and we mean it,” I answered very readily, “So have I. Let’s go.”
  • VII
  • We were none too soon. People had been reconnoitring us, the telegraph
  • had been at work, and we were not four hours at sea before we ran
  • against the gunboat that had been sent down the coast to look for us and
  • that would have caught us behind the island like a beast in a trap. It
  • was a night of driving cloud that gave intermittent gleams of moonlight;
  • the wind and sea were strong and we were rolling along through a drift
  • of rails and mist. Suddenly the world was white with moonshine. The
  • gunboat came out as a long dark shape wallowing on the water to the
  • east.
  • She sighted the Maud Mary at once, and fired some sort of popgun to
  • arrest us.
  • The mate turned to me.
  • “Shall I tell the captain?”
  • “The captain be damned” said I, and we let him sleep through two hours
  • of chase till a rainstorm swallowed us up. Then we changed our course
  • and sailed right across them, and by morning only her smoke was showing.
  • We were clear of Africa--and with the booty aboard I did not see what
  • stood between us and home.
  • For the first time since I had fallen sick in the Thames my spirits
  • rose. I was sea-sick and physically disgusted, of course, but I felt
  • kindly in spite of my qualms. So far as I could calculate then the
  • situation was saved. I saw myself returning triumphantly into the
  • Thames, and nothing on earth to prevent old Capern’s Perfect Filament
  • going on the market in fortnight. I had the monopoly of electric lamps
  • beneath my feet.
  • I was released from the spell of that bloodstained black body all mixed
  • up with grey-black mud. I was going back to baths and decent food and
  • aeronautics and Beatrice. I was going back to Beatrice and my real life
  • again--out of this well into which I had fallen. It would have needed
  • something more than sea-sickness and quap fever to prevent my spirits
  • rising.
  • I told the captain that I agreed with him that the British were the scum
  • of Europe, the westward drift of all the people, a disgusting rabble,
  • and I lost three pounds by attenuated retail to Pollack at ha’penny nap
  • and euchre.
  • And then you know, as we got out into the Atlantic this side of Cape
  • Verde, the ship began to go to pieces. I don’t pretend for one moment to
  • understand what happened. But I think Greiffenhagen’s recent work on
  • the effects of radium upon ligneous tissue does rather carry out my idea
  • that emanations from quap have rapid rotting effect upon woody fibre.
  • From the first there had been a different feel about the ship, and as
  • the big winds and waves began to strain her she commenced leaking. Soon
  • she was leaking--not at any particular point, but everywhere. She did
  • not spring a leak, I mean, but water came in first of all near the
  • decaying edges of her planks, and then through them.
  • I firmly believe the water came through the wood. First it began to
  • ooze, then to trickle. It was like trying to carry moist sugar in a thin
  • paper bag. Soon we were taking in water as though we had opened a door
  • in her bottom.
  • Once it began, the thing went ahead beyond all fighting. For a day or
  • so we did our best, and I can still remember in my limbs and back the
  • pumping--the fatigue in my arms and the memory of a clear little dribble
  • of water that jerked as one pumped, and of knocking off and the being
  • awakened to go on again, and of fatigue piling up upon fatigue. At
  • last we ceased to think of anything but pumping; one became a thing of
  • torment enchanted, doomed to pump for ever. I still remember it as pure
  • relief when at last Pollack came to me pipe in mouth.
  • “The captain says the damned thing’s going down right now;” he remarked,
  • chewing his mouthpiece. “Eh?”
  • “Good idea!” I said. “One can’t go on pumping for ever.”
  • And without hurry or alacrity, sullenly and wearily we got into the
  • boats and pulled away from the Maud Mary until we were clear of her,
  • and then we stayed resting on our oars, motionless upon a glassy sea,
  • waiting for her to sink. We were all silent, even the captain was silent
  • until she went down. And then he spoke quite mildly in an undertone.
  • “Dat is the first ship I haf ever lost.... And it was not a fair game!
  • It wass not a cargo any man should take. No!”
  • I stared at the slow eddies that circled above the departed Maud Mary,
  • and the last chance of Business Organisations. I felt weary beyond
  • emotion. I thought of my heroics to Beatrice and my uncle, of my prompt
  • “I’LL go,” and of all the ineffectual months I had spent after this
  • headlong decision. I was moved to laughter at myself and fate.
  • But the captain and the men did not laugh. The men scowled at me and
  • rubbed their sore and blistered hands, and set themselves to row....
  • As all the world knows we were picked up by the Union Castle liner,
  • Portland Castle.
  • The hairdresser aboard was a wonderful man, and he even improvised me a
  • dress suit, and produced a clean shirt and warm underclothing. I had a
  • hot bath, and dressed and dined and drank a bottle of Burgundy.
  • “Now,” I said, “are there any newspapers? I want to know what’s been
  • happening in the world.”
  • My steward gave me what he had, but I landed at Plymouth still largely
  • ignorant of the course of events. I shook off Pollack, and left the
  • captain and mate in an hotel, and the men in a Sailor’s Home until I
  • could send to pay them off, and I made my way to the station.
  • The newspapers I bought, the placards I saw, all England indeed
  • resounded to my uncle’s bankruptcy.
  • BOOK THE FOURTH
  • THE AFTERMATH OF TONO-BUNGAY
  • CHAPTER THE FIRST
  • THE STICK OF THE ROCKET
  • I
  • That evening I talked with my uncle in the Hardingham for the last time.
  • The atmosphere of the place had altered quite shockingly. Instead of the
  • crowd of importunate courtiers there were just half a dozen uninviting
  • men, journalists waiting for an interview. Ropper the big commissionaire
  • was still there, but now indeed he was defending my uncle from something
  • more than time-wasting intrusions. I found the little man alone in the
  • inner office pretending to work, but really brooding. He was looking
  • yellow and deflated.
  • “Lord!” he said at the sight of me. “You’re lean, George. It makes that
  • scar of yours show up.”
  • We regarded each other gravely for a time.
  • “Quap,” I said, “is at the bottom of the Atlantic. There’s some
  • bills--We’ve got to pay the men.”
  • “Seen the papers?”
  • “Read ‘em all in the train.”
  • “At bay,” he said. “I been at bay for a week.... Yelping round me....
  • And me facing the music. I’m feelin’ a bit tired.”
  • He blew and wiped his glasses.
  • “My stomack isn’t what it was,” he explained. “One finds it--these
  • times. How did it all happen, George? Your Marconigram--it took me in
  • the wind a bit.”
  • I told him concisely. He nodded to the paragraphs of my narrative and at
  • the end he poured something from a medicine bottle into a sticky little
  • wineglass and drank it. I became aware of the presence of drugs, of
  • three or four small bottles before him among his disorder of papers, of
  • a faint elusively familiar odour in the room.
  • “Yes,” he said, wiping his lips and recorking the bottle. “You’ve done
  • your best, George. The luck’s been against us.”
  • He reflected, bottle in hand. “Sometimes the luck goes with you and
  • sometimes it doesn’t. Sometimes it doesn’t. And then where are you?
  • Grass in the oven! Fight or no fight.”
  • He asked a few questions and then his thoughts came back to his own
  • urgent affairs. I tried to get some comprehensive account of the
  • situation from him, but he would not give it.
  • “Oh, I wish I’d had you. I wish I’d had you, George. I’ve had a lot on
  • my hands. You’re clear headed at times.”
  • “What has happened?”
  • “Oh! Boom!--infernal things.”
  • “Yes, but--how? I’m just off the sea, remember.”
  • “It’d worry me too much to tell you now. It’s tied up in a skein.”
  • He muttered something to himself and mused darkly, and roused himself to
  • say--
  • “Besides--you’d better keep out of it. It’s getting tight. Get ‘em
  • talking. Go down to Crest Hill and fly. That’s YOUR affair.”
  • For a time his manner set free queer anxieties in my brain again.
  • I will confess that that Mordet Island nightmare of mine returned,
  • and as I looked at him his hand went out for the drug again. “Stomach,
  • George,” he said.
  • “I been fightin’ on that. Every man fights on some thing--gives way
  • somewheres--head, heart, liver--something. Zzzz. Gives way somewhere.
  • Napoleon did at last. All through the Waterloo campaign, his stomach--it
  • wasn’t a stomach! Worse than mine, no end.”
  • The mood of depression passed as the drug worked within him. His eyes
  • brightened. He began to talk big. He began to dress up the situation for
  • my eyes, to recover what he had admitted to me. He put it as a retreat
  • from Russia. There were still the chances of Leipzig.
  • “It’s a battle, George--a big fight. We’re fighting for millions.
  • I’ve still chances. There’s still a card or so. I can’t tell all my
  • plans--like speaking on the stroke.”
  • “You might,” I began.
  • “I can’t, George. It’s like asking to look at some embryo. You got to
  • wait. I know. In a sort of way, I know. But to tell it--No! You been
  • away so long. And everything’s got complicated.”
  • My perception of disastrous entanglements deepened with the rise of his
  • spirits. It was evident that I could only help to tie him up in whatever
  • net was weaving round his mind by forcing questions and explanations
  • upon him. My thoughts flew off at another angle. “How’s Aunt Susan?”
  • said I.
  • I had to repeat the question. His busy whispering lips stopped for a
  • moment, and he answered in the note of one who repeats a formula.
  • “She’d like to be in the battle with me. She’d like to be here in
  • London. But there’s corners I got to turn alone.” His eye rested for a
  • moment on the little bottle beside him. “And things have happened.
  • “You might go down now and talk to her,” he said, in a directer voice.
  • “I shall be down to-morrow night, I think.”
  • He looked up as though he hoped that would end our talk.
  • “For the week-end?” I asked.
  • “For the week-end. Thank God for week-ends, George!”
  • II
  • My return home to Lady Grove was a very different thing from what I had
  • anticipated when I had got out to sea with my load of quap and fancied
  • the Perfect-Filament was safe within my grasp. As I walked through the
  • evening light along the downs, the summer stillness seemed like the
  • stillness of something newly dead. There were no lurking workmen any
  • more, no cyclists on the high road.
  • Cessation was manifest everywhere. There had been, I learnt from my
  • aunt, a touching and quite voluntary demonstration when the Crest Hill
  • work had come to an end and the men had drawn their last pay; they had
  • cheered my uncle and hooted the contractors and Lord Boom.
  • I cannot now recall the manner in which my aunt and I greeted one
  • another. I must have been very tired there, but whatever impression was
  • made has gone out of my memory. But I recall very clearly how we sat at
  • the little round table near the big window that gave on the terrace, and
  • dined and talked. I remember her talking of my uncle.
  • She asked after him, and whether he seemed well. “I wish I could help,”
  • she said. “But I’ve never helped him much, never. His way of doing
  • things was never mine. And since--since--. Since he began to get so
  • rich, he’s kept things from me. In the old days--it was different....
  • “There he is--I don’t know what he’s doing. He won’t have me near
  • him....
  • “More’s kept from me than anyone. The very servants won’t let me know.
  • They try and stop the worst of the papers--Boom’s things--from coming
  • upstairs.... I suppose they’ve got him in a corner, George. Poor old
  • Teddy! Poor old Adam and Eve we are! Ficial Receivers with flaming
  • swords to drive us out of our garden! I’d hoped we’d never have another
  • Trek. Well--anyway, it won’t be Crest Hill.... But it’s hard on Teddy.
  • He must be in such a mess up there. Poor old chap. I suppose we
  • can’t help him. I suppose we’d only worry him. Have some more soup
  • George--while there is some?...”
  • The next day was one of those days of strong perception that stand out
  • clear in one’s memory when the common course of days is blurred. I can
  • recall now the awakening in the large familiar room that was always kept
  • for me, and how I lay staring at its chintz-covered chairs, its spaced
  • fine furniture, its glimpse of the cedars without, and thought that all
  • this had to end.
  • I have never been greedy for money, I have never wanted to be rich,
  • but I felt now an immense sense of impending deprivation. I read the
  • newspapers after breakfast--I and my aunt together--and then I walked
  • up to see what Cothope had done in the matter of Lord Roberts B. Never
  • before had I appreciated so acutely the ample brightness of the Lady
  • Grove gardens, the dignity and wide peace of all about me. It was one
  • of those warm mornings in late May that have won all the glory of summer
  • without losing the gay delicacy of spring. The shrubbery was bright with
  • laburnum and lilac, the beds swarmed with daffodils and narcissi and
  • with lilies of the valley in the shade.
  • I went along the well-kept paths among the rhododendra and through the
  • private gate into the woods where the bluebells and common orchid were
  • in profusion. Never before had I tasted so completely the fine sense
  • of privilege and ownership. And all this has to end, I told myself, all
  • this has to end.
  • Neither my uncle nor I had made any provision for disaster; all we had
  • was in the game, and I had little doubt now of the completeness of our
  • ruin. For the first time in my life since he had sent me that
  • wonderful telegram of his I had to consider that common anxiety of
  • mankind,--Employment. I had to come off my magic carpet and walk once
  • more in the world.
  • And suddenly I found myself at the cross drives where I had seen
  • Beatrice for the first time after so many years. It is strange, but so
  • far as I can recollect I had not thought of her once since I had landed
  • at Plymouth. No doubt she had filled the background of my mind, but I do
  • not remember one definite, clear thought. I had been intent on my uncle
  • and the financial collapse.
  • It came like a blow in the face now; all that, too, had to end!
  • Suddenly I was filled with the thought of her and a great longing for
  • her. What would she do when she realised our immense disaster? What
  • would she do? How would she take it? It filled me with astonishment to
  • realise how little I could tell....
  • Should I perhaps presently happen upon her?
  • I went on through the plantations and out upon the downs, and thence I
  • saw Cothope with a new glider of his own design soaring down wind to
  • my old familiar “grounding” place. To judge by its long rhythm it was a
  • very good glider. “Like Cothope’s cheek,” thought I, “to go on with the
  • research. I wonder if he’s keeping notes.... But all this will have to
  • stop.”
  • He was sincerely glad to see me. “It’s been a rum go,” he said.
  • He had been there without wages for a month, a man forgotten in the rush
  • of events.
  • “I just stuck on and did what I could with the stuff. I got a bit of
  • money of my own--and I said to myself, ‘Well, here you are with the gear
  • and no one to look after you. You won’t get such a chance again, my boy,
  • not in all your born days. Why not make what you can with it? ’”
  • “How’s Lord Roberts B?”
  • Cothope lifted his eyebrows. “I’ve had to refrain,” he said. “But he’s
  • looking very handsome.”
  • “Gods!” I said, “I’d like to get him up just once before we smash. You
  • read the papers? You know we’re going to smash?”
  • “Oh! I read the papers. It’s scandalous, sir, such work as ours should
  • depend on things like that. You and I ought to be under the State, sir,
  • if you’ll excuse me.”
  • “Nothing to excuse,” I said. “I’ve always been a Socialist--of a
  • sort--in theory. Let’s go and have a look at him. How is he? Deflated?”
  • “Just about quarter full. That last oil glaze of yours holds the gas
  • something beautiful. He’s not lost a cubic metre a week.”...
  • Cothope returned to Socialism as we went toward the sheds.
  • “Glad to think you’re a Socialist, sir,” he said, “it’s the only
  • civilised state. I been a Socialist some years--off the Clarion. It’s a
  • rotten scramble, this world. It takes the things we make and invent and
  • it plays the silly fool with ‘em. We scientific people, we’ll have to
  • take things over and stop all this financing and advertisement and that.
  • It’s too silly. It’s a noosance. Look at us!”
  • Lord Roberts B, even in his partially deflated condition in his shed,
  • was a fine thing to stare up at. I stood side by side with Cothope
  • regarding him, and it was borne in upon me more acutely than ever that
  • all this had to end. I had a feeling just like the feeling of a boy who
  • wants to do wrong, that I would use up the stuff while I had it before
  • the creditors descended. I had a queer fancy, too, I remember, that if I
  • could get into the air it would advertise my return to Beatrice.
  • “We’ll fill her,” I said concisely.
  • “It’s all ready,” said Cothope, and added as an afterthought, “unless
  • they cut off the gas.”...
  • I worked and interested myself with Cothope all the morning and for a
  • time forgot my other troubles. But the thought of Beatrice flooded me
  • slowly and steadily. It became an unintelligent sick longing to see her.
  • I felt that I could not wait for the filling of Lord Roberts B, that I
  • must hunt her up and see her soon. I got everything forward and lunched
  • with Cothope, and then with the feeblest excuses left him in order to
  • prowl down through the woods towards Bedley Corner. I became a prey to
  • wretched hesitations and diffidence. Ought I to go near her now? I asked
  • myself, reviewing all the social abasements of my early years. At
  • last, about five, I called at the Dower House. I was greeted by their
  • Charlotte--with a forbidding eye and a cold astonishment.
  • Both Beatrice and Lady Osprey were out.
  • There came into my head some prowling dream of meeting her. I went along
  • the lane towards Woking, the lane down which we had walked five months
  • ago in the wind and rain.
  • I mooned for a time in our former footsteps, then swore and turned back
  • across the fields, and then conceived a distaste for Cothope and went
  • Downward. At last I found myself looking down on the huge abandoned
  • masses of the Crest Hill house.
  • That gave my mind a twist into a new channel. My uncle came uppermost
  • again. What a strange, melancholy emptiness of intention that stricken
  • enterprise seemed in the even evening sunlight, what vulgar magnificence
  • and crudity and utter absurdity! It was as idiotic as the pyramids. I
  • sat down on the stile, staring at it as though I had never seen that
  • forest of scaffold poles, that waste of walls and bricks and plaster and
  • shaped stones, that wilderness of broken soil and wheeling tracks and
  • dumps before. It struck me suddenly as the compactest image and sample
  • of all that passes for Progress, of all the advertisement-inflated
  • spending, the aimless building up and pulling down, the enterprise and
  • promise of my age. This was our fruit, this was what he had done, I and
  • my uncle, in the fashion of our time. We were its leaders and exponents,
  • we were the thing it most flourishingly produced. For this futility in
  • its end, for an epoch of such futility, the solemn scroll of history had
  • unfolded....
  • “Great God!” I cried, “but is this Life?”
  • For this the armies drilled, for this the Law was administered and the
  • prisons did their duty, for this the millions toiled and perished in
  • suffering, in order that a few of us should build palaces we never
  • finished, make billiard-rooms under ponds, run imbecile walls round
  • irrational estates, scorch about the world in motor-cars, devise
  • flying-machines, play golf and a dozen such foolish games of ball, crowd
  • into chattering dinner parties, gamble and make our lives one vast,
  • dismal spectacle of witless waste! So it struck me then, and for a time
  • I could think of no other interpretation. This was Life! It came to me
  • like a revelation, a revelation at once incredible and indisputable of
  • the abysmal folly of our being.
  • III
  • I was roused from such thoughts by the sound of footsteps behind me.
  • I turned half hopeful--so foolish is a lover’s imagination, and stopped
  • amazed. It was my uncle. His face was white--white as I had seen it in
  • my dream.
  • “Hullo!” I said, and stared. “Why aren’t you in London?”
  • “It’s all up,” he said....
  • “Adjudicated?”
  • “No!”
  • I stared at him for a moment, and then got off the stile.
  • We stood swaying and then came forward with a weak motion of his arms
  • like a man who cannot see distinctly, and caught at and leant upon the
  • stile. For a moment we were absolutely still. He made a clumsy gesture
  • towards the great futility below and choked. I discovered that his face
  • was wet with tears, that his wet glasses blinded him. He put up his
  • little fat hand and clawed them off clumsily, felt inefficiently for his
  • pocket-handkerchief, and then, to my horror, as he clung to me, he
  • began to weep aloud, this little, old worldworn swindler. It wasn’t just
  • sobbing or shedding tears, it was crying as a child cries. It was oh!
  • terrible!
  • “It’s cruel,” he blubbered at last. “They asked me questions. They KEP’
  • asking me questions, George.”
  • He sought for utterance, and spluttered.
  • “The Bloody bullies!” he shouted. “The Bloody Bullies.”
  • He ceased to weep. He became suddenly rapid and explanatory.
  • “It’s not a fair game, George. They tire you out. And I’m not well. My
  • stomach’s all wrong. And I been and got a cold. I always been li’ble to
  • cold, and this one’s on my chest. And then they tell you to speak up.
  • They bait you--and bait you, and bait you. It’s torture. The strain
  • of it. You can’t remember what you said. You’re bound to contradict
  • yourself. It’s like Russia, George.... It isn’t fair play.... Prominent
  • man. I’ve been next at dinners with that chap, Neal; I’ve told him
  • stories--and he’s bitter! Sets out to ruin me. Don’t ask a civil
  • question--bellows.” He broke down again. “I’ve been bellowed at, I been
  • bullied, I been treated like a dog. Dirty cads they are! Dirty cads!
  • I’d rather be a Three-Card Sharper than a barrister; I’d rather sell
  • cat’s-meat in the streets.
  • “They sprung things on me this morning, things I didn’t expect. They
  • rushed me! I’d got it all in my hands and then I was jumped. By Neal!
  • Neal I’ve given city tips to! Neal! I’ve helped Neal....
  • “I couldn’t swallow a mouthful--not in the lunch hour. I couldn’t face
  • it. It’s true, George--I couldn’t face it. I said I’d get a bit of air
  • and slipped out and down to the Embankment, and there I took a boat to
  • Richmond. Some idee. I took a rowing boat when I got there and I rowed
  • about on the river for a bit. A lot of chaps and girls there was on the
  • bank laughed at my shirt-sleeves and top hat. Dessay they thought it was
  • a pleasure trip. Fat lot of pleasure! I rowed round for a bit and came
  • in. Then I came on here. Windsor way. And there they are in London doing
  • what they like with me.... I don’t care!”
  • “But” I said, looking down at him, perplexed.
  • “It’s abscondin’. They’ll have a warrant.”
  • “I don’t understand,” I said.
  • “It’s all up, George--all up and over.
  • “And I thought I’d live in that place, George and die a lord! It’s a
  • great place, reely, an imperial--if anyone has the sense to buy it and
  • finish it. That terrace--”
  • I stood thinking him over.
  • “Look here!” I said. “What’s that about--a warrant? Are you sure they’ll
  • get a warrant? I’m sorry uncle; but what have you done?”
  • “Haven’t I told you?”
  • “Yes, but they won’t do very much to you for that. They’ll only bring
  • you up for the rest of your examination.”
  • He remained silent for a time. At last he spoke--speaking with
  • difficulty.
  • “It’s worse than that. I’ve done something. They’re bound to get it out.
  • Practically they HAVE got it out.”
  • “What?”
  • “Writin’ things down--I done something.”
  • For the first time in his life, I believe, he felt and looked ashamed.
  • It filled me with remorse to see him suffer so.
  • “We’ve all done things,” I said. “It’s part of the game the world makes
  • us play. If they want to arrest you--and you’ve got no cards in your
  • hand--! They mustn’t arrest you.”
  • “No. That’s partly why I went to Richmond. But I never thought--”
  • His little bloodshot eyes stared at Crest Hill.
  • “That chap Wittaker Wright,” he said, “he had his stuff ready. I
  • haven’t. Now you got it, George. That’s the sort of hole I’m in.”
  • IV
  • That memory of my uncle at the gate is very clear and full. I am able
  • to recall even the undertow of my thoughts while he was speaking.
  • I remember my pity and affection for him in his misery growing and
  • stirring within me, my realisation that at any risk I must help him.
  • But then comes indistinctness again. I was beginning to act. I know I
  • persuaded him to put himself in my hands, and began at once to plan and
  • do. I think that when we act most we remember least, that just in the
  • measure that the impulse of our impressions translates itself into
  • schemes and movements, it ceases to record itself in memories. I know
  • I resolved to get him away at once, and to use the Lord Roberts B in
  • effecting that. It was clear he was soon to be a hunted man, and it
  • seemed to me already unsafe for him to try the ordinary Continental
  • routes in his flight. I had to evolve some scheme, and evolve it
  • rapidly, how we might drop most inconspicuously into the world across
  • the water. My resolve to have one flight at least in my airship fitted
  • with this like hand to glove. It seemed to me we might be able to cross
  • over the water in the night, set our airship adrift, and turn up as
  • pedestrian tourists in Normandy or Brittany, and so get away. That, at
  • any rate, was my ruling idea.
  • I sent off Cothope with a dummy note to Woking, because I did not want
  • to implicate him, and took my uncle to the pavilion. I went down to my
  • aunt, and made a clean breast of the situation. She became admirably
  • competent. We went into his dressing-room and ruthlessly broke his
  • locks. I got a pair of brown boots, a tweed suit and a cap of his,
  • and indeed a plausible walking outfit, and a little game bag for his
  • pedestrian gear; and, in addition, a big motoring overcoat and a supply
  • of rugs to add to those I had at the pavilion. I also got a flask
  • of brandy, and she made sandwiches. I don’t remember any servants
  • appearing, and I forget where she got those sandwiches. Meanwhile we
  • talked. Afterwards I thought with what a sure confidence we talked to
  • each other.
  • “What’s he done?” she said.
  • “D’you mind knowing?”
  • “No conscience left, thank God!”
  • “I think--forgery!”
  • There was just a little pause. “Can you carry this bundle?” she asked.
  • I lifted it.
  • “No woman ever has respected the law--ever,” she said. “It’s too
  • silly.... The things it lets you do! And then pulls you up--like a mad
  • nurse minding a child.”
  • She carried some rugs for me through the shrubbery in the darkling.
  • “They’ll think we’re going mooning,” she said, jerking her head at the
  • household. “I wonder what they make of us--criminals.” ... An immense
  • droning note came as if in answer to that. It startled us both for a
  • moment. “The dears!” she said. “It’s the gong for dinner!... But I wish
  • I could help little Teddy, George. It’s awful to think of him there with
  • hot eyes, red and dry. And I know--the sight of me makes him feel sore.
  • Things I said, George. If I could have seen, I’d have let him have an
  • omnibusful of Scrymgeours. I cut him up. He’d never thought I meant it
  • before.... I’ll help all I can, anyhow.”
  • I turned at something in her voice, and got a moon light gleam of tears
  • upon her face.
  • “Could SHE have helped?” she asked abruptly.
  • “SHE?”
  • “That woman.”
  • “My God!” I cried, “HELPED! Those--things don’t help!”
  • “Tell me again what I ought to do,” she said after a silence.
  • I went over the plans I had made for communicating, and the things I
  • thought she might do. I had given her the address of a solicitor she
  • might put some trust in.
  • “But you must act for yourself,” I insisted.
  • “Roughly,” I said, “it’s a scramble. You must get what you can for us,
  • and follow as you can.”
  • She nodded.
  • She came right up to the pavilion and hovered for a time shyly, and then
  • went away.
  • I found my uncle in my sitting-room in an arm-chair, with his feet upon
  • the fender of the gas stove, which he had lit, and now he was feebly
  • drunken with my whisky, and very weary in body and spirit, and inclined
  • to be cowardly.
  • “I lef’ my drops,” he said.
  • He changed his clothes slowly and unwillingly. I had to bully him, I had
  • almost to shove him to the airship and tuck him up upon its wicker flat.
  • Single-handed I made but a clumsy start; we scraped along the roof
  • of the shed and bent a van of the propeller, and for a time I hung
  • underneath without his offering a hand to help me to clamber up. If it
  • hadn’t been for a sort of anchoring trolley device of Cothope’s, a sort
  • of slip anchor running on a rail, we should never have got clear at all.
  • V
  • The incidents of our flight in Lord Roberts B do not arrange themselves
  • in any consecutive order. To think of that adventure is like dipping
  • haphazard into an album of views. One is reminded first of this and then
  • of that. We were both lying down on a horizontal plate of basketwork;
  • for Lord Roberts B had none of the elegant accommodation of a balloon. I
  • lay forward, and my uncle behind me in such a position that he could
  • see hardly anything of our flight. We were protected from rolling over
  • simply by netting between the steel stays. It was impossible for us to
  • stand up at all; we had either to lie or crawl on all fours over
  • the basket work. Amidships were lockers made of Watson’s Aulite
  • material,--and between these it was that I had put my uncle, wrapped in
  • rugs. I wore sealskin motoring boots and gloves, and a motoring fur coat
  • over my tweeds, and I controlled the engine by Bowden wires and levers
  • forward.
  • The early part of that night’s experience was made up of warmth, of
  • moonlit Surrey and Sussex landscape, and of a rapid and successful
  • flight, ascending and swooping, and then ascending again southward. I
  • could not watch the clouds because the airship overhung me; I could not
  • see the stars nor gauge the meteorological happening, but it was
  • fairly clear to me that a wind shifting between north and northeast
  • was gathering strength, and after I had satisfied myself by a series
  • of entirely successful expansions and contractions of the real
  • air-worthiness of Lord Roberts B, I stopped the engine to save my
  • petrol, and let the monster drift, checking its progress by the dim
  • landscape below. My uncle lay quite still behind me, saying little
  • and staring in front of him, and I was left to my own thoughts and
  • sensations.
  • My thoughts, whatever they were, have long since faded out of memory,
  • and my sensations have merged into one continuous memory of an
  • countryside lying, as it seemed, under snow, with square patches of
  • dimness, white phantoms of roads, rents and pools of velvety blackness,
  • and lamp-jewelled houses. I remember a train boring its way like a
  • hastening caterpillar of fire across the landscape, and how distinctly I
  • heard its clatter. Every town and street was buttoned with street lamps.
  • I came quite close to the South Downs near Lewes, and all the lights
  • were out in the houses, and the people gone to bed. We left the land a
  • little to the east of Brighton, and by that time Brighton was well abed.
  • and the brightly lit sea-front deserted. Then I let out the gas chamber
  • to its fullest extent and rose. I like to be high above water.
  • I do not clearly know what happened in the night. I think I must have
  • dozed, and probably my uncle slept. I remember that once or twice
  • I heard him talking in an eager, muffled voice to himself, or to an
  • imaginary court. But there can be no doubt the wind changed right round
  • into the east, and that we were carried far down the Channel without any
  • suspicion of the immense leeway we were making. I remember the kind of
  • stupid perplexity with which I saw the dawn breaking over a grey waste
  • of water, below, and realised that something was wrong. I was so stupid
  • that it was only after the sunrise I really noticed the trend of the
  • foam caps below, and perceived we were in a severe easterly gale. Even
  • then, instead of heading southeasterly, I set the engine going, headed
  • south, and so continued a course that must needs have either just hit
  • Ushant, or carry us over the Bay of Biscay. I thought I was east of
  • Cherbourg, when I was far to the west and stopped my engine in that
  • belief, and then set it going again. I did actually sight the coast of
  • Brittany to the southeast in the late afternoon, and that it was woke
  • me up to the gravity of our position. I discovered it by accident in the
  • southeast, when I was looking for it in the southwest. I turned about
  • east and faced the wind for some time, and finding I had no chance in
  • its teeth, went high, where it seemed less violent, and tried to make a
  • course southeast. It was only then that I realised what a gale I was in.
  • I had been going westward, and perhaps even in gusts north of west, at a
  • pace of fifty or sixty miles an hour.
  • Then I began what I suppose would be called a Fight against the east
  • wind. One calls it a Fight, but it was really almost as unlike a fight
  • as plain sewing. The wind tried to drive me westwardly, and I tried to
  • get as much as I could eastwardly, with the wind beating and rocking us
  • irregularly, but by no means unbearably, for about twelve hours. My
  • hope lay in the wind abating, and our keeping in the air and eastward of
  • Finisterre until it did, and the chief danger was the exhaustion of our
  • petrol. It was a long and anxious and almost meditative time; we were
  • fairly warm, and only slowly getting hungry, and except that my uncle
  • grumbled a little and produced some philosophical reflections, and began
  • to fuss about having a temperature, we talked very little. I was tired
  • and sulky, and chiefly worried about the engine. I had to resist
  • a tendency to crawl back and look at it. I did not care to risk
  • contracting our gas chamber for fear of losing gas. Nothing was less
  • like a fight. I know that in popular magazines, and so forth, all such
  • occasions as this are depicted in terms of hysteria. Captains save their
  • ships engineers complete their bridges, generals conduct their battles,
  • in a state of dancing excitement, foaming recondite technicalities at
  • the lips. I suppose that sort of thing works up the reader, but so far
  • as it professes to represent reality, I am convinced it is all childish
  • nonsense, schoolboys of fifteen, girls of eighteen, and literary men
  • all their lives, may have these squealing fits, but my own experience
  • is that most exciting scenes are not exciting, and most of the urgent
  • moments in life are met by steady-headed men.
  • Neither I nor my uncle spent the night in ejaculations, nor in humorous
  • allusions, nor any of these things. We remained lumpish.
  • My uncle stuck in his place and grumbled about his stomach, and
  • occasionally rambled off into expositions of his financial position and
  • denunciations of Neal--he certainly struck out one or two good phrases
  • for Neal--and I crawled about at rare intervals in a vague sort of way
  • and grunted, and our basketwork creaked continually, and the wind on our
  • quarter made a sort of ruffled flapping in the wall of the gas chamber.
  • For all our wraps we got frightfully cold as the night wore on.
  • I must have dozed, and it was still dark when I realised with a
  • start that we were nearly due south of, and a long way from, a
  • regularly-flashing lighthouse, standing out before the glow of some
  • great town, and then that the thing that had awakened me was the
  • cessation of our engine, and that we were driving back to the west.
  • Then, indeed, for a time I felt the grim thrill of life. I crawled
  • forward to the cords of the release valves, made my uncle crawl forward
  • too, and let out the gas until we were falling down through the air like
  • a clumsy glider towards the vague greyness that was land.
  • Something must have intervened here that I have forgotten.
  • I saw the lights of Bordeaux when it was quite dark, a nebulous haze
  • against black; of that I am reasonably sure. But certainly our fall
  • took place in the cold, uncertain light of early dawn. I am, at least,
  • equally sure of that. And Mimizan, near where we dropped, is fifty miles
  • from Bordeaux, whose harbour lights I must have seen.
  • I remember coming down at last with a curious indifference, and actually
  • rousing myself to steer. But the actual coming to earth was exciting
  • enough. I remember our prolonged dragging landfall, and the difficulty
  • I had to get clear, and how a gust of wind caught Lord Roberts B as my
  • uncle stumbled away from the ropes and litter, and dropped me heavily,
  • and threw me on to my knees. Then came the realisation that the monster
  • was almost consciously disentangling itself for escape, and then the
  • light leap of its rebound. The rope slipped out of reach of my hand.
  • I remember running knee-deep in a salt pool in hopeless pursuit of the
  • airship.
  • As it dragged and rose seaward, and how only after it had escaped my
  • uttermost effort to recapture it, did I realise that this was quite the
  • best thing that could have happened. It drove swiftly over the sandy
  • dunes, lifting and falling, and was hidden by a clump of windbitten
  • trees. Then it reappeared much further off, and still receding. It
  • soared for a time, and sank slowly, and after that I saw it no more. I
  • suppose it fell into the sea and got wetted with salt water and heavy,
  • and so became deflated and sank.
  • It was never found, and there was never a report of anyone seeing it
  • after it escaped from me.
  • VI
  • But if I find it hard to tell the story of our long flight through the
  • air overseas, at least that dawn in France stands cold and clear and
  • full. I see again almost as if I saw once more with my bodily eyes
  • the ridges of sand rising behind ridges of sand, grey and cold and
  • black-browed, with an insufficient grass. I feel again the clear, cold
  • chill of dawn, and hear the distant barking of a dog. I find myself
  • asking again, “What shall we do now?” and trying to scheme with brain
  • tired beyond measure.
  • At first my uncle occupied my attention. He was shivering a good
  • deal, and it was all I could do to resist my desire to get him into a
  • comfortable bed at once. But I wanted to appear plausibly in this part
  • of the world. I felt it would not do to turn up anywhere at dawn and
  • rest, it would be altogether too conspicuous; we must rest until the day
  • was well advanced, and then appear as road-stained pedestrians seeking
  • a meal. I gave him most of what was left of the biscuits, emptied our
  • flasks, and advised him to sleep, but at first it was too cold, albeit I
  • wrapped the big fur rug around him.
  • I was struck now by the flushed weariness of his face, and the look of
  • age the grey stubble on his unshaved chin gave him. He sat crumpled up,
  • shivering and coughing, munching reluctantly, but drinking eagerly, and
  • whimpering a little, a dreadfully pitiful figure to me. But we had to go
  • through with it; there was no way out for us.
  • Presently the sun rose over the pines, and the sand grew rapidly warm.
  • My uncle had done eating, and sat with his wrists resting on his knees,
  • the most hopeless looking of lost souls.
  • “I’m ill,” he said, “I’m damnably ill! I can feel it in my skin!”
  • Then--it was horrible to me--he cried, “I ought to be in bed; I ought to
  • be in bed... instead of flying about,” and suddenly he burst into tears.
  • I stood up. “Go to sleep, man!” I said, and took the rug from him, and
  • spread it out and rolled him up in it.
  • “It’s all very well,” he protested; “I’m not young enough--”
  • “Lift up your head,” I interrupted, and put his knapsack under it.
  • “They’ll catch us here, just as much as in an inn,” he grumbled and then
  • lay still.
  • Presently, after a long time, I perceived he was asleep. His breath came
  • with peculiar wheezings, and every now and again he would cough. I was
  • very stiff and tired myself, and perhaps I dozed. I don’t remember. I
  • remember only sitting, as it seemed, nigh interminably, beside him, too
  • weary even to think in that sandy desolation.
  • No one came near us; no creature, not even a dog. I roused myself at
  • last, feeling that it was vain to seek to seem other than abnormal,
  • and with an effort that was like lifting a sky of lead, we made our way
  • through the wearisome sand to a farmhouse. There I feigned even a more
  • insufficient French than I possess naturally, and let it appear that we
  • were pedestrians from Biarritz who had lost our way along the shore and
  • got benighted.
  • This explained us pretty well, I thought, and we got most heartening
  • coffee and a cart to a little roadside station. My uncle grew more
  • and more manifestly ill with every stage of our journey. I got him to
  • Bayonne, where he refused at first to eat, and was afterwards very sick,
  • and then took him shivering and collapsed up a little branch line to a
  • frontier place called Luzon Gare.
  • We found one homely inn with two small bedrooms, kept by a kindly Basque
  • woman. I got him to bed, and that night shared his room, and after an
  • hour or so of sleep he woke up in a raging fever and with a wandering
  • mind, cursing Neal and repeating long, inaccurate lists of figures. He
  • was manifestly a case for a doctor, and in the morning we got one in.
  • He was a young man from Montpelier, just beginning to practise, and very
  • mysterious and technical and modern and unhelpful. He spoke of cold
  • and exposure, and la grippe and pneumonia. He gave many explicit and
  • difficult directions.... I perceived it devolved upon me to organise
  • nursing and a sick-room. I installed a religieuse in the second bedroom
  • of the inn, and took a room for myself in the inn of Port de Luzon, a
  • quarter of a mile away.
  • VII
  • And now my story converges on what, in that queer corner of refuge
  • out of the world, was destined to be my uncle’s deathbed. There is a
  • background of the Pyrenees, of blue hills and sunlit houses, of the old
  • castle of Luzon and a noisy cascading river, and for a foreground the
  • dim, stuffy room whose windows both the religieuse and hostess
  • conspired to shut, with its waxed floor, its four-poster bed, its
  • characteristically French chairs and fireplace, its champagne bottles
  • and dirty basins and used towels and packets of Somatose on the table.
  • And in the sickly air of the confined space in behind the curtains
  • of the bed lay my little uncle, with an effect of being enthroned and
  • secluded, or sat up, or writhed and tossed in his last dealings of life.
  • One went and drew back the edge of the curtains if one wanted to speak
  • to him or look at him.
  • Usually he was propped up against pillows, because so he breathed more
  • easily. He slept hardly at all.
  • I have a confused memory of vigils and mornings and afternoons spent by
  • that bedside, and how the religieuse hovered about me, and how meek and
  • good and inefficient she was, and how horribly black were her nails.
  • Other figures come and go, and particularly the doctor, a young man
  • plumply rococo, in bicycling dress, with fine waxen features, a little
  • pointed beard, and the long black frizzy hair and huge tie of a minor
  • poet. Bright and clear-cut and irrelevant are memories of the Basque
  • hostess of my uncle’s inn and of the family of Spanish people who
  • entertained me and prepared the most amazingly elaborate meals for me,
  • with soup and salad and chicken and remarkable sweets. They were all
  • very kind and sympathetic people, systematically so. And constantly,
  • without attracting attention, I was trying to get newspapers from home.
  • My uncle is central to all these impressions.
  • I have tried to make you picture him, time after time, as the young man
  • of the Wimblehurst chemist’s shop, as the shabby assistant in Tottenham
  • Court Road, as the adventurer of the early days of Tono-Bungay, as
  • the confident, preposterous plutocrat. And now I have to tell of him
  • strangely changed under the shadow of oncoming death, with his skin lax
  • and yellow and glistening with sweat, his eyes large and glassy, his
  • countenance unfamiliar through the growth of a beard, his nose pinched
  • and thin. Never had he looked so small as now. And he talked to me in
  • a whispering, strained voice of great issues, of why his life had been,
  • and whither he was going. Poor little man! that last phase is, as it
  • were, disconnected from all the other phases. It was as if he crawled
  • out from the ruins of his career, and looked about him before he died.
  • For he had quite clear-minded states in the intervals of his delirium.
  • He knew he was almost certainly dying. In a way that took the burthen of
  • his cares off his mind. There was no more Neal to face, no more flights
  • or evasions, no punishments.
  • “It has been a great career, George,” he said, “but I shall be glad to
  • rest. Glad to rest!... Glad to rest.”
  • His mind ran rather upon his career, and usually, I am glad to recall,
  • with a note of satisfaction and approval. In his delirious phases he
  • would most often exaggerate this self-satisfaction, and talk of his
  • splendours. He would pluck at the sheet and stare before him, and
  • whisper half-audible fragments of sentences.
  • “What is this great place, these cloud-capped towers, these any
  • pinnacles?... Ilion. Sky-pointing.... Ilion House, the residence of one
  • of our great merchant princes.... Terrace above terrace. Reaching to the
  • heavens.... Kingdoms Caesar never knew.... A great poet, George. Zzzz.
  • Kingdoms Caesar never knew.... Under entirely new management.
  • “Greatness....Millions... Universities.... He stands on the terrace--on
  • the upper terrace--directing--directing--by the globe--directing--the
  • trade.”
  • It was hard at times to tell when his sane talk ceased and his delirium
  • began. The secret springs of his life, the vain imaginations were
  • revealed. I sometimes think that all the life of man sprawls abed,
  • careless and unkempt, until it must needs clothe and wash itself
  • and come forth seemly in act and speech for the encounter with one’s
  • fellow-men. I suspect that all things unspoken in our souls partake
  • somewhat of the laxity of delirium and dementia. Certainly from those
  • slimy, tormented lips above the bristling grey beard came nothing but
  • dreams and disconnected fancies....
  • Sometimes he raved about Neal, threatened Neal. “What has he got
  • invested?” he said. “Does he think he can escape me?... If I followed
  • him up.... Ruin. Ruin.... One would think _I_ had taken his money.”
  • And sometimes he reverted to our airship flight. “It’s too long, George,
  • too long and too cold. I’m too old a man--too old--for this sort of
  • thing.... You know you’re not saving--you’re killing me.”
  • Towards the end it became evident our identity was discovered. I found
  • the press, and especially Boom’s section of it, had made a sort of hue
  • and cry for us, sent special commissioners to hunt for us, and though
  • none of these emissaries reached us until my uncle was dead, one felt
  • the forewash of that storm of energy. The thing got into the popular
  • French press. People became curious in their manner towards us, and a
  • number of fresh faces appeared about the weak little struggle that went
  • on in the closeness behind the curtains of the bed. The young doctor
  • insisted on consultations, and a motor-car came up from Biarritz,
  • and suddenly odd people with questioning eyes began to poke in with
  • inquiries and help. Though nothing was said, I could feel that we were
  • no longer regarded as simple middle-class tourists; about me, as I went,
  • I perceived almost as though it trailed visibly, the prestige of Finance
  • and a criminal notoriety. Local personages of a plump and prosperous
  • quality appeared in the inn making inquiries, the Luzon priest became
  • helpful, people watched our window, and stared at me as I went to and
  • fro; and then we had a raid from a little English clergyman and his
  • amiable, capable wife in severely Anglican blacks, who swooped down
  • upon us like virtuous but resolute vultures from the adjacent village of
  • Saint Jean de Pollack.
  • The clergyman was one of those odd types that oscillate between remote
  • country towns in England and the conduct of English Church services
  • on mutual terms in enterprising hotels abroad, a tremulous, obstinate
  • little being with sporadic hairs upon his face, spectacles, a red button
  • nose, and aged black raiment. He was evidently enormously impressed by
  • my uncle’s monetary greatness, and by his own inkling of our identity,
  • and he shone and brimmed over with tact and fussy helpfulness. He
  • was eager to share the watching of the bedside with me, he proffered
  • services with both hands, and as I was now getting into touch with
  • affairs in London again, and trying to disentangle the gigantic details
  • of the smash from the papers I had succeeded in getting from Biarritz,
  • I accepted his offers pretty generously, and began the studies in modern
  • finance that lay before me. I had got so out of touch with the old
  • traditions of religion that I overlooked the manifest possibility of
  • his attacking my poor, sinking vestiges of an uncle with theological
  • solicitudes. My attention was called to that, however, very speedily by
  • a polite but urgent quarrel between himself and the Basque landlady as
  • to the necessity of her hanging a cheap crucifix in the shadow over the
  • bed, where it might catch my uncle’s eye, where, indeed, I found it had
  • caught his eye.
  • “Good Lord!” I cried; “is THAT still going on!”
  • That night the little clergyman watched, and in the small hours he
  • raised a false alarm that my uncle was dying, and made an extraordinary
  • fuss. He raised the house. I shall never forget that scene, I think,
  • which began with a tapping at my bedroom door just after I had fallen
  • asleep, and his voice--
  • “If you want to see your uncle before he goes, you must come now.”
  • The stuffy little room was crowded when I reached it, and lit by three
  • flickering candles. I felt I was back in the eighteenth century. There
  • lay my poor uncle amidst indescribably tumbled bedclothes, weary of life
  • beyond measure, weary and rambling, and the little clergyman trying to
  • hold his hand and his attention, and repeating over and over again:
  • “Mr. Ponderevo, Mr. Ponderevo, it is all right. It is all right.
  • “Only Believe! ‘Believe on me, and ye shall be saved’!”
  • Close at hand was the doctor with one of those cruel and idiotic
  • injection needles modern science puts in the hands of these
  • half-educated young men, keeping my uncle flickeringly alive for no
  • reason whatever. The religieuse hovered sleepily in the background with
  • an overdue and neglected dose. In addition, the landlady had not only
  • got up herself, but roused an aged crone of a mother and a partially
  • imbecile husband, and there was also a fattish, stolid man in grey
  • alpaca, with an air of importance--who he was and how he got there, I
  • don’t know. I rather fancy the doctor explained him to me in French I
  • did not understand. And they were all there, wearily nocturnal, hastily
  • and carelessly dressed, intent upon the life that flickered and sank,
  • making a public and curious show of its going, queer shapes of human
  • beings lit by three uncertain candles, and every soul of them keenly and
  • avidly resolved to be in at the death. The doctor stood, the others were
  • all sitting on chairs the landlady had brought in and arranged for them.
  • And my uncle spoilt the climax, and did not die.
  • I replaced the little clergyman on the chair by the bedside, and he
  • hovered about the room.
  • “I think,” he whispered to me mysteriously, as he gave place to me, “I
  • believe--it is well with him.”
  • I heard him trying to render the stock phrases of Low Church piety into
  • French for the benefit of the stolid man in grey alpaca. Then he knocked
  • a glass off the table, and scrabbled for the fragments. From the first
  • I doubted the theory of an immediate death. I consulted the doctor in
  • urgent whispers. I turned round to get champagne, and nearly fell over
  • the clergyman’s legs. He was on his knees at the additional chair the
  • Basque landlady had got on my arrival, and he was praying aloud, “Oh,
  • Heavenly Father, have mercy on this thy Child....” I hustled him up
  • and out of the way, and in another minute he was down at another chair
  • praying again, and barring the path of the religieuse, who had found me
  • the corkscrew. Something put into my head that tremendous blasphemy of
  • Carlyle’s about “the last mew of a drowning kitten.” He found a third
  • chair vacant presently; it was as if he was playing a game.
  • “Good Heavens!” I said, “we must clear these people out,” and with a
  • certain urgency I did.
  • I had a temporary lapse of memory, and forgot all my French. I drove
  • them out mainly by gesture, and opened the window, to the universal
  • horror. I intimated the death scene was postponed, and, as a matter of
  • fact, my uncle did not die until the next night.
  • I did not let the little clergyman come near him again, and I was
  • watchful for any sign that his mind had been troubled. But he made none.
  • He talked once about “that parson chap.”
  • “Didn’t bother you?” I asked.
  • “Wanted something,” he said.
  • I kept silence, listening keenly to his mutterings. I understood him to
  • say, “They wanted too much.” His face puckered like a child’s going to
  • cry. “You can’t get a safe six per cent.,” he said. I had for a moment
  • a wild suspicion that those urgent talks had not been altogether
  • spiritual, but that, I think, was a quite unworthy and unjust suspicion.
  • The little clergyman was as simple and honest as the day. My uncle was
  • simply generalising about his class.
  • But it may have been these talks that set loose some long dormant string
  • of ideas in my uncle’s brain, ideas the things of this world had long
  • suppressed and hidden altogether. Near the end he suddenly became
  • clearminded and lucid, albeit very weak, and his voice was little, but
  • clear.
  • “George,” he said.
  • “I’m here,” I said, “close beside you.”
  • “George. You have always been responsible for the science. George. You
  • know better than I do. Is--Is it proved?”
  • “What proved?”
  • “Either way?”
  • “I don’t understand.”
  • “Death ends all. After so much--Such splendid beginnin’s. Somewhere.
  • Something.”
  • I stared at him amazed. His sunken eyes were very grave.
  • “What do you expect?” I said in wonder.
  • He would not answer. “Aspirations,” he whispered. He fell into a broken
  • monologue, regardless of me. “Trailing clouds of glory,” he said, and
  • “first-rate poet, first-rate....George was always hard. Always.”
  • For a long time there was silence.
  • Then he made a gesture that he wished to speak.
  • “Seems to me, George”
  • I bent my head down, and he tried to lift his hand to my shoulder. I
  • raised him a little on his pillows, and listened.
  • “It seems to me, George, always--there must be something in me--that
  • won’t die.”
  • He looked at me as though the decision rested with me.
  • “I think,” he said; “--something.”
  • Then, for a moment, his mind wandered. “Just a little link,” he
  • whispered almost pleadingly, and lay quite still, but presently he was
  • uneasy again.
  • “Some other world”
  • “Perhaps,” I said. “Who knows?”
  • “Some other world.”
  • “Not the same scope for enterprise,” I said.
  • “No.”
  • He became silent. I sat leaning down to him, and following out my own
  • thoughts, and presently the religieuse resumed her periodic conflict
  • with the window fastening. For a time he struggled for breath.... It
  • seemed such nonsense that he should have to suffer so--poor silly little
  • man!
  • “George,” he whispered, and his weak little hand came out. “PERHAPS--”
  • He said no more, but I perceived from the expression of his eyes that he
  • thought the question had been put.
  • “Yes, I think so;” I said stoutly.
  • “Aren’t you sure?”
  • “Oh--practically sure,” said I, and I think he tried to squeeze my hand.
  • And there I sat, holding his hand tight, and trying to think what seeds
  • of immortality could be found in all his being, what sort of ghost there
  • was in him to wander out into the bleak immensities. Queer fancies came
  • to me.... He lay still for a long time, save for a brief struggle or so
  • for breath and ever and again I wiped his mouth and lips.
  • I fell into a pit of thought. I did not remark at first the change that
  • was creeping over his face. He lay back on his pillow, made a
  • faint zzzing sound that ceased, and presently and quite quietly he
  • died--greatly comforted by my assurance. I do not know when he died. His
  • hand relaxed insensibly. Suddenly, with a start, with a shock, I found
  • that his mouth had fallen open, and that he was dead....
  • VIII
  • It was dark night when I left his deathbed and went back to my own inn
  • down the straggling street of Luzon.
  • That return to my inn sticks in my memory also as a thing apart, as an
  • experience apart. Within was a subdued bustle of women, a flitting of
  • lights, and the doing of petty offices to that queer, exhausted thing
  • that had once been my active and urgent little uncle. For me those
  • offices were irksome and impertinent. I slammed the door, and went out
  • into the warm, foggy drizzle of the village street lit by blurred specks
  • of light in great voids of darkness, and never a soul abroad. That warm
  • veil of fog produced an effect of vast seclusion. The very houses by the
  • roadside peered through it as if from another world. The stillness of
  • the night was marked by an occasional remote baying of dogs; all these
  • people kept dogs because of the near neighbourhood of the frontier.
  • Death!
  • It was one of those rare seasons of relief, when for a little time one
  • walks a little outside of and beside life. I felt as I sometimes feel
  • after the end of a play. I saw the whole business of my uncle’s life as
  • something familiar and completed. It was done, like a play one leaves,
  • like a book one closes. I thought of the push and the promotions, the
  • noise of London, the crowded, various company of people through which
  • our lives had gone, the public meetings, the excitements, the dinners
  • and disputations, and suddenly it appeared to me that none of these
  • things existed.
  • It came to me like a discovery that none of these things existed.
  • Before and after I have thought and called life a phantasmagoria, but
  • never have I felt its truth as I did that night.... We had parted; we
  • two who had kept company so long had parted. But there was, I knew, no
  • end to him or me. He had died a dream death, and ended a dream; his pain
  • dream was over. It seemed to me almost as though I had died, too. What
  • did it matter, since it was unreality, all of it, the pain and desire,
  • the beginning and the end? There was no reality except this solitary
  • road, this quite solitary road, along which one went rather puzzled,
  • rather tired....
  • Part of the fog became a big mastiff that came towards me and stopped
  • and slunk round me, growling, barked gruffly, and shortly and presently
  • became fog again.
  • My mind swayed back to the ancient beliefs and fears of our race.
  • My doubts and disbeliefs slipped from me like a loosely fitting garment.
  • I wondered quite simply what dogs bayed about the path of that other
  • walker in the darkness, what shapes, what lights, it might be, loomed
  • about him as he went his way from our last encounter on earth--along the
  • paths that are real, and the way that endures for ever?
  • IX
  • Last belated figure in that grouping round my uncle’s deathbed is my
  • aunt. When it was beyond all hope that my uncle could live I threw aside
  • whatever concealment remained to us and telegraphed directly to her.
  • But she came too late to see him living. She saw him calm and still,
  • strangely unlike his habitual garrulous animation, an unfamiliar
  • inflexibility.
  • “It isn’t like him,” she whispered, awed by this alien dignity.
  • I remember her chiefly as she talked and wept upon the bridge below the
  • old castle. We had got rid of some amateurish reporters from Biarritz,
  • and had walked together in the hot morning sunshine down through Port
  • Luzon. There, for a time, we stood leaning on the parapet of the bridge
  • and surveying the distant peeks, the rich blue masses of the Pyrenees.
  • For a long time we said nothing, and then she began talking.
  • “Life’s a rum Go, George!” she began. “Who would have thought, when I
  • used to darn your stockings at old Wimblehurst, that this would be the
  • end of the story? It seems far away now--that little shop, his and my
  • first home. The glow of the bottles, the big coloured bottles! Do you
  • remember how the light shone on the mahogany drawers? The little
  • gilt letters! Ol Amjig, and Snap! I can remember it all--bright and
  • shining--like a Dutch picture. Real! And yesterday. And here we are in
  • a dream. You a man--and me an old woman, George. And poor little Teddy,
  • who used to rush about and talk--making that noise he did--Oh!”
  • She choked, and the tears flowed unrestrained. She wept, and I was glad
  • to see her weeping.
  • She stood leaning over the bridge; her tear-wet handkerchief gripped in
  • her clenched hand.
  • “Just an hour in the old shop again--and him talking. Before things got
  • done. Before they got hold of him. And fooled him.
  • “Men oughtn’t to be so tempted with business and things....
  • “They didn’t hurt him, George?” she asked suddenly.
  • For a moment I was puzzled.
  • “Here, I mean,” she said.
  • “No,” I lied stoutly, suppressing the memory of that foolish injection
  • needle I had caught the young doctor using.
  • “I wonder, George, if they’ll let him talk in Heaven....”
  • She faced me. “Oh! George, dear, my heart aches, and I don’t know what
  • I say and do. Give me your arm to lean on--it’s good to have you,
  • dear, and lean upon you.... Yes, I know you care for me. That’s why I’m
  • talking. We’ve always loved one another, and never said anything about
  • it, and you understand, and I understand. But my heart’s torn to pieces
  • by this, torn to rags, and things drop out I’ve kept in it. It’s true he
  • wasn’t a husband much for me at the last. But he was my child, George,
  • he was my child and all my children, my silly child, and life has
  • knocked him about for me, and I’ve never had a say in the matter; never
  • a say; it’s puffed him up and smashed him--like an old bag--under my
  • eyes. I was clever enough to see it, and not clever enough to prevent
  • it, and all I could do was to jeer. I’ve had to make what I could of
  • it. Like most people. Like most of us.... But it wasn’t fair, George.
  • It wasn’t fair. Life and Death--great serious things--why couldn’t they
  • leave him alone, and his lies and ways? If WE could see the lightness of
  • it--
  • “Why couldn’t they leave him alone?” she repeated in a whisper as we
  • went towards the inn.
  • CHAPTER THE SECOND
  • LOVE AMONG THE WRECKAGE
  • I
  • When I came back I found that my share in the escape and death of my
  • uncle had made me for a time a notorious and even popular character.
  • For two weeks I was kept in London “facing the music,” as he would have
  • said, and making things easy for my aunt, and I still marvel at the
  • consideration with which the world treated me. For now it was open and
  • manifest that I and my uncle were no more than specimens of a modern
  • species of brigand, wasting the savings of the public out of the sheer
  • wantonness of enterprise. I think that in a way, his death produced
  • a reaction in my favour and my flight, of which some particulars now
  • appeared stuck in the popular imagination. It seemed a more daring and
  • difficult feat than it was, and I couldn’t very well write to the papers
  • to sustain my private estimate. There can be little doubt that men
  • infinitely prefer the appearance of dash and enterprise to simple
  • honesty. No one believed I was not an arch plotter in his financing. Yet
  • they favoured me. I even got permission from the trustee to occupy
  • my chalet for a fortnight while I cleared up the mass of papers,
  • calculations, notes of work, drawings and the like, that I left in
  • disorder when I started on that impulsive raid upon the Mordet quap
  • heaps.
  • I was there alone. I got work for Cothope with the Ilchesters, for whom
  • I now build these destroyers. They wanted him at once, and he was short
  • of money, so I let him go and managed very philosophically by myself.
  • But I found it hard to fix my attention on aeronautics, I had been away
  • from the work for a full half-year and more, a half-year crowded with
  • intense disconcerting things. For a time my brain refused these fine
  • problems of balance and adjustment altogether; it wanted to think about
  • my uncle’s dropping jaw, my aunt’s reluctant tears, about dead negroes
  • and pestilential swamps, about the evident realities of cruelty and
  • pain, about life and death. Moreover, it was weary with the frightful
  • pile of figures and documents at the Hardingham, a task to which this
  • raid to Lady Grove was simply an interlude. And there was Beatrice.
  • On the second morning, as I sat out upon the veranda recalling memories
  • and striving in vain to attend to some too succinct pencil notes of
  • Cothope’s, Beatrice rode up suddenly from behind the pavilion, and
  • pulled rein and became still; Beatrice, a little flushed from riding and
  • sitting on a big black horse.
  • I did not instantly rise. I stared at her. “YOU!” I said.
  • She looked at me steadily. “Me,” she said
  • I did not trouble about any civilities. I stood up and asked point blank
  • a question that came into my head.
  • “Whose horse is that?” I said.
  • She looked me in the eyes. “Carnaby’s,” she answered.
  • “How did you get here--this way?”
  • “The wall’s down.”
  • “Down? Already?”
  • “A great bit of it between the plantations.”
  • “And you rode through, and got here by chance?”
  • “I saw you yesterday. And I rode over to see you.” I had now come close
  • to her, and stood looking up into her face.
  • “I’m a mere vestige,” I said.
  • She made no answer, but remained regarding me steadfastly with a curious
  • air of proprietorship.
  • “You know I’m the living survivor now of the great smash. I’m rolling
  • and dropping down through all the scaffolding of the social system....
  • It’s all a chance whether I roll out free at the bottom, or go down a
  • crack into the darkness out of sight for a year or two.”
  • “The sun,” she remarked irrelevantly, “has burnt you.... I’m getting
  • down.”
  • She swung herself down into my arms, and stood beside me face to face.
  • “Where’s Cothope?” she asked.
  • “Gone.”
  • Her eyes flitted to the pavilion and back to me. We stood close
  • together, extraordinarily intimate, and extraordinarily apart.
  • “I’ve never seen this cottage of yours,” she said, “and I want to.”
  • She flung the bridle of her horse round the veranda post, and I helped
  • her tie it.
  • “Did you get what you went for to Africa?” she asked.
  • “No,” I said, “I lost my ship.”
  • “And that lost everything?”
  • “Everything.”
  • She walked before me into the living-room of the chalet, and I saw that
  • she gripped her riding-whip very tightly in her hand. She looked about
  • her for a moment,--and then at me.
  • “It’s comfortable,” she remarked.
  • Our eyes met in a conversation very different from the one upon our
  • lips. A sombre glow surrounded us, drew us together; an unwonted shyness
  • kept us apart. She roused herself, after an instant’s pause, to examine
  • my furniture.
  • “You have chintz curtains. I thought men were too feckless to have
  • curtains without a woman. But, of course, your aunt did that! And a
  • couch and a brass fender, and--is that a pianola? That is your desk.
  • I thought men’s desks were always untidy, and covered with dust and
  • tobacco ash.”
  • She flitted to my colour prints and my little case of books. Then she
  • went to the pianola. I watched her intently.
  • “Does this thing play?” she said.
  • “What?” I asked.
  • “Does this thing play?”
  • I roused myself from my preoccupation.
  • “Like a musical gorilla with fingers all of one length. And a sort of
  • soul.... It’s all the world of music to me.”
  • “What do you play?”
  • “Beethoven, when I want to clear up my head while I’m working. He
  • is--how one would always like to work. Sometimes Chopin and those
  • others, but Beethoven. Beethoven mainly. Yes.”
  • Silence again between us. She spoke with an effort.
  • “Play me something.” She turned from me and explored the rack of
  • music rolls, became interested and took a piece, the first part of the
  • Kreutzer Sonata, hesitated. “No,” she said, “that!”
  • She gave me Brahms’ Second Concerto, Op. 58, and curled up on the sofa
  • watching me as I set myself slowly to play....
  • “I say,” he said when I had done, “that’s fine. I didn’t know those
  • things could play like that. I’m all astir...”
  • She came and stood over me, looking at me. “I’m going to have a
  • concert,” she said abruptly, and laughed uneasily and hovered at the
  • pigeon-holes. “Now--now what shall I have?” She chose more of Brahms.
  • Then we came to the Kreutzer Sonata. It is queer how Tolstoy has loaded
  • that with suggestions, debauched it, made it a scandalous and intimate
  • symbol. When I had played the first part of that, she came up to the
  • pianola and hesitated over me. I sat stiffly--waiting.
  • Suddenly she seized my downcast head and kissed my hair. She caught at
  • my face between her hands and kissed my lips. I put my arms about her
  • and we kissed together. I sprang to my feet and clasped her.
  • “Beatrice!” I said. “Beatrice!”
  • “My dear,” she whispered, nearly breathless, with her arms about me.
  • “Oh! my dear!”
  • II
  • Love, like everything else in this immense process of social
  • disorganisation in which we live, is a thing adrift, a fruitless thing
  • broken away from its connexions. I tell of this love affair here because
  • of its irrelevance, because it is so remarkable that it should mean
  • nothing, and be nothing except itself. It glows in my memory like some
  • bright casual flower starting up amidst the debris of a catastrophe.
  • For nearly a fortnight we two met and made love together. Once more this
  • mighty passion, that our aimless civilisation has fettered and maimed
  • and sterilised and debased, gripped me and filled me with passionate
  • delights and solemn joys--that were all, you know, futile and
  • purposeless. Once more I had the persuasion “This matters. Nothing
  • else matters so much as this.” We were both infinitely grave in such
  • happiness as we had. I do not remember any laughter at all between us.
  • Twelve days it lasted from that encounter in my chalet until our
  • parting.
  • Except at the end, they were days of supreme summer, and there was a
  • waxing moon. We met recklessly day by day. We were so intent upon each
  • other at first so intent upon expressing ourselves to each other, and
  • getting at each other, that we troubled very little about the appearance
  • of our relationship. We met almost openly.... We talked of ten thousand
  • things, and of ourselves. We loved. We made love. There is no prose
  • of mine that can tell of hours transfigured. The facts are nothing.
  • Everything we touched, the meanest things, became glorious. How can I
  • render bare tenderness and delight and mutual possession? I sit here at
  • my desk thinking of untellable things.
  • I have come to know so much of love that I know now what love might be.
  • We loved, scarred and stained; we parted--basely and inevitably, but at
  • least I met love.
  • I remember as we sat in a Canadian canoe, in a reedy, bush-masked
  • shallow we had discovered operating out of that pine-shaded Woking
  • canal, how she fell talking of the things that happened to her before
  • she met me again....
  • She told me things, and they so joined and welded together other things
  • that lay disconnected in my memory, that it seemed to me I had always
  • known what she told me. And yet indeed I had not known nor suspected it,
  • save perhaps for a luminous, transitory suspicion ever and again.
  • She made me see how life had shaped her. She told me of her girlhood
  • after I had known her. “We were poor and pretending and managing. We
  • hacked about on visits and things. I ought to have married. The chances
  • I had weren’t particularly good chances. I didn’t like ‘em.”
  • She paused. “Then Carnaby came along.”
  • I remained quite still. She spoke now with downcast eyes, and one finger
  • just touching the water.
  • “One gets bored, bored beyond redemption. One does about to these huge
  • expensive houses I suppose--the scale’s immense. One makes one’s
  • self useful to the other women, and agreeable to the men. One has to
  • dress.... One has food and exercise and leisure, It’s the leisure, and
  • the space, and the blank opportunity it seems a sin not to fill. Carnaby
  • isn’t like the other men. He’s bigger.... They go about making love.
  • Everybody’s making love. I did.... And I don’t do things by halves.”
  • She stopped.
  • “You knew?”--she asked, looking up, quite steadily. I nodded.
  • “Since when?”
  • “Those last days.... It hasn’t seemed to matter really. I was a little
  • surprised.”
  • She looked at me quietly. “Cothope knew,” she said. “By instinct. I
  • could feel it.”
  • “I suppose,” I began, “once, this would have mattered immensely. Now--”
  • “Nothing matters,” she said, completing me. “I felt I had to tell you. I
  • wanted you to understand why I didn’t marry you--with both hands. I have
  • loved you”--she paused--“have loved you ever since the day I kissed you
  • in the bracken. Only--I forgot.”
  • And suddenly she dropped her face upon her hands, and sobbed
  • passionately--
  • “I forgot--I forgot,” she cried, and became still....
  • I dabbled my paddle in the water. “Look here!” I said; “forget again!
  • Here am I--a ruined man. Marry me.”
  • She shook her head without looking up.
  • We were still for a long time. “Marry me!” I whispered.
  • She looked up, twined back a whisp of hair, and answered
  • dispassionately--
  • “I wish I could. Anyhow, we have had this time. It has been a fine
  • time--has it been--for you also? I haven’t nudged you all I had to give.
  • It’s a poor gift--except for what it means and might have been. But we
  • are near the end of it now.”
  • “Why?” I asked. “Marry me! Why should we two--”
  • “You think,” she said, “I could take courage and come to you and be your
  • everyday wife--while you work and are poor?”
  • “Why not?” said I.
  • She looked at me gravely, with extended finger. “Do you really think
  • that--of me? Haven’t you seen me--all?”
  • I hesitated.
  • “Never once have I really meant marrying you,” she insisted. “Never
  • once. I fell in love with you from the first. But when you seemed a
  • successful man, I told myself I wouldn’t. I was love-sick for you,
  • and you were so stupid, I came near it then. But I knew I wasn’t good
  • enough. What could I have been to you? A woman with bad habits and bad
  • associations, a woman smirched. And what could I do for you or be to
  • you? If I wasn’t good enough to be a rich man’s wife, I’m certainly not
  • good enough to be a poor one’s. Forgive me for talking sense to you now,
  • but I wanted to tell you this somehow.”
  • She stopped at my gesture. I sat up, and the canoe rocked with my
  • movement.
  • “I don’t care,” I said. “I want to marry you and make you my wife!”
  • “No,” she said, “don’t spoil things. That is impossible!”
  • “Impossible!”
  • “Think! I can’t do my own hair! Do you mean you will get me a maid?”
  • “Good God!” I cried, disconcerted beyond measure, “won’t you learn to do
  • your own hair for me? Do you mean to say you can love a man--”
  • She flung out her hands at me. “Don’t spoil it,” she cried. “I have
  • given you all I have, I have given you all I can. If I could do it, if
  • I was good enough to do it, I would. But I am a woman spoilt and
  • ruined, dear, and you are a ruined man. When we are making love we’re
  • lovers--but think of the gulf between us in habits and ways of thought,
  • in will and training, when we are not making love. Think of it--and
  • don’t think of it! Don’t think of it yet. We have snatched some hours.
  • We still may have some hours!”
  • She suddenly knelt forward toward me, with a glowing darkness in her
  • eyes. “Who cares if it upsets?” she cried. “If you say another word I
  • will kiss you. And go to the bottom clutching you.
  • “I’m not afraid of that. I’m not a bit afraid of that. I’ll die with you.
  • Choose a death, and I’ll die with you--readily. Do listen to me! I love
  • you. I shall always love you. It’s because I love you that I won’t go
  • down to become a dirty familiar thing with you amidst the grime. I’ve
  • given all I can. I’ve had all I can.... Tell me,” and she crept nearer,
  • “have I been like the dusk to you, like the warm dusk? Is there magic
  • still? Listen to the ripple of water from your paddle. Look at the warm
  • evening light in the sky. Who cares if the canoe upsets? Come nearer to
  • me. Oh, my love! come near! So.”
  • She drew me to her and our lips met.
  • III
  • I asked her to marry me once again.
  • It was our last morning together, and we had met very early, about
  • sunrise, knowing that we were to part. No sun shone that day. The sky
  • was overcast, the morning chilly and lit by a clear, cold, spiritless
  • light. A heavy dampness in the air verged close on rain. When I think of
  • that morning, it has always the quality of greying ashes wet with rain.
  • Beatrice too had changed. The spring had gone out of her movement; it
  • came to me, for the first time, that some day she might grow old. She
  • had become one flesh with the rest of common humanity; the softness
  • had gone from her voice and manner, the dusky magic of her presence had
  • gone. I saw these things with perfect clearness, and they made me sorry
  • for them and for her. But they altered my love not a whit, abated it
  • nothing. And when we had talked awkwardly for half a dozen sentences, I
  • came dully to my point.
  • “And now,” I cried, “will you marry me?”
  • “No,” she said, “I shall keep to my life here.”
  • I asked her to marry me in a year’s time. She shook her head.
  • “This world is a soft world,” I said, “in spite of my present disasters.
  • I know now how to do things. If I had you to work for--in a year I could
  • be a prosperous man.”
  • “No,” she said, “I will put it brutally, I shall go back to Carnaby.”
  • “But--!” I did not feel angry. I had no sort of jealousy, no wounded
  • pride, no sense of injury. I had only a sense of grey desolation, of
  • hopeless cross-purposes.
  • “Look here,” she said. “I have been awake all night and every night. I
  • have been thinking of this--every moment when we have not been together.
  • I’m not answering you on an impulse. I love you. I love you. I’ll say
  • that over ten thousand times. But here we are--”
  • “The rest of life together,” I said.
  • “It wouldn’t be together. Now we are together. Now we have been
  • together. We are full of memories I do not feel I can ever forget a
  • single one.”
  • “Nor I.”
  • “And I want to close it and leave it at that. You see, dear, what else
  • is there to do?”
  • She turned her white face to me. “All I know of love, all I have ever
  • dreamt or learnt of love I have packed into these days for you. You
  • think we might live together and go on loving. No! For you I will have
  • no vain repetitions. You have had the best and all of me. Would you have
  • us, after this, meet again in London or Paris or somewhere, scuffle to
  • some wretched dressmaker’s, meet in a cabinet particulier?”
  • “No,” I said. “I want you to marry me. I want you to play the game of
  • life with me as an honest woman should. Come and live with me. Be my
  • wife and squaw. Bear me children.”
  • I looked at her white, drawn face, and it seemed to me I might carry her
  • yet. I spluttered for words.
  • “My God! Beatrice!” I cried; “but this is cowardice and folly! Are you
  • afraid of life? You of all people! What does it matter what has been or
  • what we were? Here we are with the world before us! Start clean and new
  • with me. We’ll fight it through! I’m not such a simple lover that I’ll
  • not tell you plainly when you go wrong, and fight our difference out
  • with you. It’s the one thing I want, the one thing I need--to have you,
  • and more of you and more! This love-making--it’s love-making. It’s just
  • a part of us, an incident--”
  • She shook her head and stopped me abruptly. “It’s all,” she said.
  • “All!” I protested.
  • “I’m wiser than you. Wiser beyond words.” She turned her eyes to me and
  • they shone with tears.
  • “I wouldn’t have you say anything--but what you’re saying,” she said.
  • “But it’s nonsense, dear. You know it’s nonsense as you say it.”
  • I tried to keep up the heroic note, but she would not listen to it.
  • “It’s no good,” she cried almost petulantly. “This little world has made
  • us what we are. Don’t you see--don’t you see what I am? I can make love.
  • I can make love and be loved, prettily. Dear, don’t blame me. I have
  • given you all I have. If I had anything more--I have gone through it
  • all over and over again--thought it out. This morning my head aches, my
  • eyes ache.
  • “The light has gone out of me and I am a sick and tired woman. But I’m
  • talking wisdom--bitter wisdom. I couldn’t be any sort of helper to you,
  • any sort of wife, any sort of mother. I’m spoilt.
  • “I’m spoilt by this rich idle way of living, until every habit is wrong,
  • every taste wrong. The world is wrong. People can be ruined by wealth
  • just as much as by poverty. Do you think I wouldn’t face life with you
  • if I could, if I wasn’t absolutely certain I should be down and dragging
  • in the first half-mile of the journey? Here I am--damned! Damned! But
  • I won’t damn you. You know what I am! You know. You are too clear and
  • simple not to know the truth. You try to romance and hector, but you
  • know the truth. I am a little cad--sold and done. I’m--. My dear, you
  • think I’ve been misbehaving, but all these days I’ve been on my best
  • behaviour.... You don’t understand, because you’re a man.
  • “A woman, when she’s spoilt, is SPOILT. She’s dirty in grain. She’s
  • done.”
  • She walked on weeping.
  • “You’re a fool to want me,” she said. “You’re a fool to want me--for
  • my sake just as much as yours. We’ve done all we can. It’s just
  • romancing--”
  • She dashed the tears from her eyes and turned upon me. “Don’t you
  • understand?” she challenged. “Don’t you know?”
  • We faced one another in silence for a moment.
  • “Yes,” I said, “I know.”
  • For a long time we spoke never a word, but walked on together, slowly
  • and sorrowfully, reluctant to turn about towards our parting. When at
  • last we did, she broke silence again.
  • “I’ve had you,” she said.
  • “Heaven and hell,” I said, “can’t alter that.”
  • “I’ve wanted--” she went on. “I’ve talked to you in the nights and made
  • up speeches. Now when I want to make them I’m tongue-tied. But to me
  • it’s just as if the moments we have had lasted for ever. Moods and
  • states come and go. To-day my light is out...”
  • To this day I cannot determine whether she said or whether I imagined
  • she said “chloral.” Perhaps a half-conscious diagnosis flashed it on
  • my brain. Perhaps I am the victim of some perverse imaginative freak
  • of memory, some hinted possibility that scratched and seared. There the
  • word stands in my memory, as if it were written in fire.
  • We came to the door of Lady Osprey’s garden at last, and it was
  • beginning to drizzle.
  • She held out her hands and I took them.
  • “Yours,” she said, in a weary unimpassioned voice; “all that I had--such
  • as it was. Will you forget?”
  • “Never,” I answered.
  • “Never a touch or a word of it?”
  • “No.”
  • “You will,” she said.
  • We looked at one another in silence, and her face full of fatigue and
  • misery.
  • What could I do? What was there to do?
  • “I wish--” I said, and stopped.
  • “Good-bye.”
  • IV
  • That should have been the last I saw of her, but, indeed, I was destined
  • to see her once again. Two days after I was at Lady Grove, I forget
  • altogether upon what errand, and as I walked back to the station
  • believing her to be gone away she came upon me, and she was riding with
  • Carnaby, just as I had seen them first. The encounter jumped upon us
  • unprepared. She rode by, her eyes dark in her white face, and scarcely
  • noticed me. She winced and grew stiff at the sight of me and bowed her
  • head. But Carnaby, because he thought I was a broken and discomfited
  • man, saluted me with an easy friendliness, and shouted some genial
  • commonplace to me.
  • They passed out of sight and left me by the roadside....
  • And then, indeed, I tasted the ultimate bitterness of life. For the
  • first time I felt utter futility, and was wrung by emotion that begot no
  • action, by shame and pity beyond words. I had parted from her dully and
  • I had seen my uncle break and die with dry eyes and a steady mind, but
  • this chance sight of my lost Beatrice brought me to tears. My face was
  • wrung, and tears came pouring down my cheeks. All the magic she had for
  • me had changed to wild sorrow. “Oh God!” I cried, “this is too much,”
  • and turned my face after her and made appealing gestures to the beech
  • trees and cursed at fate. I wanted to do preposterous things, to pursue
  • her, to save her, to turn life back so that she might begin again.
  • I wonder what would have happened had I overtaken them in pursuit,
  • breathless with running, uttering incoherent words, weeping,
  • expostulatory. I came near to doing that.
  • There was nothing in earth or heaven to respect my curses or weeping. In
  • the midst of it a man who had been trimming the opposite hedge appeared
  • and stared at me.
  • Abruptly, ridiculously, I dissembled before him and went on and caught
  • my train....
  • But the pain I felt then I have felt a hundred times; it is with me as
  • I write. It haunts this book, I see, that is what haunts this book, from
  • end to end.
  • CHAPTER THE THIRD
  • NIGHT AND THE OPEN SEA
  • I
  • I have tried throughout all this story to tell things as they happened
  • to me. In the beginning--the sheets are still here on the table, grimy
  • and dogs-eared and old-looking--I said I wanted to tell MYSELF and the
  • world in which I found myself, and I have done my best. But whether I
  • have succeeded I cannot imagine. All this writing is grey now and dead
  • and trite and unmeaning to me; some of it I know by heart. I am the last
  • person to judge it.
  • As I turn over the big pile of manuscript before me certain things
  • become clearer to me, and particularly the immense inconsequences of my
  • experiences. It is, I see now that I have it all before me, a story of
  • activity and urgency and sterility. I have called it Tono-Bungay, but I
  • had far better have called it Waste. I have told of childless Marion, of
  • my childless aunt, of Beatrice wasted and wasteful and futile. What hope
  • is there for a people whose women become fruitless? I think of all the
  • energy I have given to vain things. I think of my industrious scheming
  • with my uncle, of Crest Hill’s vast cessation, of his resonant strenuous
  • career. Ten thousand men have envied him and wished to live as he lived.
  • It is all one spectacle of forces running to waste, of people who use
  • and do not replace, the story of a country hectic with a wasting aimless
  • fever of trade and money-making and pleasure-seeking. And now I build
  • destroyers!
  • Other people may see this country in other terms; this is how I have
  • seen it. In some early chapter in this heap I compared all our present
  • colour and abundance to October foliage before the frosts nip down the
  • leaves. That I still feel was a good image. Perhaps I see wrongly. It
  • may be I see decay all about me because I am, in a sense, decay. To
  • others it may be a scene of achievement and construction radiant with
  • hope. I, too, have a sort of hope, but it is a remote hope, a hope that
  • finds no promise in this Empire or in any of the great things of our
  • time.
  • How they will look in history I do not know, how time and chance will
  • prove them I cannot guess; that is how they have mirrored themselves on
  • one contemporary mind.
  • II
  • Concurrently with writing the last chapter of this book I have been much
  • engaged by the affairs of a new destroyer we have completed. It has been
  • an oddly complementary alternation of occupations. Three weeks or so ago
  • this novel had to be put aside in order that I might give all my time
  • day and night to the fitting and finishing of the engines. Last Thursday
  • X 2, for so we call her, was done and I took her down the Thames and
  • went out nearly to Texel for a trial of speed.
  • It is curious how at times one’s impressions will all fuse and run
  • together into a sort of unity and become continuous with things that
  • have hitherto been utterly alien and remote. That rush down the river
  • became mysteriously connected with this book.
  • As I passed down the Thames I seemed in a new and parallel manner to be
  • passing all England in review. I saw it then as I had wanted my readers
  • to see it. The thought came to me slowly as I picked my way through the
  • Pool; it stood out clear as I went dreaming into the night out upon the
  • wide North Sea.
  • It wasn’t so much thinking at the time as a sort of photographic thought
  • that came and grew clear. X2 went ripping through the dirty oily water
  • as scissors rip through canvas, and the front of my mind was all intent
  • with getting her through under the bridges and in and out among the
  • steam-boats and barges and rowing-boats and piers. I lived with my
  • hands and eyes hard ahead. I thought nothing then of any appearances but
  • obstacles, but for all that the back of my mind took the photographic
  • memory of it complete and vivid....
  • “This,” it came to me, “is England. That is what I wanted to give in my
  • book. This!”
  • We started in the late afternoon. We throbbed out of our yard above
  • Hammersmith Bridge, fussed about for a moment, and headed down stream.
  • We came at an easy rush down Craven Reach, past Fulham and Hurlingham,
  • past the long stretches of muddy meadow And muddy suburb to Battersea
  • and Chelsea, round the cape of tidy frontage that is Grosvenor Road and
  • under Vauxhall Bridge, and Westminster opened before us. We cleared
  • a string of coal barges and there on the left in the October sunshine
  • stood the Parliament houses, and the flag was flying and Parliament was
  • sitting.
  • I saw it at the time unseeingly; afterwards it came into my mind as the
  • centre of the whole broad panoramic effect of that afternoon. The stiff
  • square lace of Victorian Gothic with its Dutch clock of a tower came
  • upon me suddenly and stared and whirled past in a slow half pirouette
  • and became still, I know, behind me as if watching me recede. “Aren’t
  • you going to respect me, then?” it seemed to say.
  • Not I! There in that great pile of Victorian architecture the landlords
  • and the lawyers, the bishops, the railway men and the magnates of
  • commerce go to and fro--in their incurable tradition of commercialised
  • Bladesovery, of meretricious gentry and nobility sold for riches. I have
  • been near enough to know. The Irish and the Labour-men run about among
  • their feet, making a fuss, effecting little, they’ve got no better plans
  • that I can see. Respect it indeed! There’s a certain paraphernalia of
  • dignity, but whom does it deceive? The King comes down in a gilt coach
  • to open the show and wears long robes and a crown; and there’s a display
  • of stout and slender legs in white stockings and stout and slender legs
  • in black stockings and artful old gentlemen in ermine. I was reminded
  • of one congested afternoon I had spent with my aunt amidst a cluster of
  • agitated women’s hats in the Royal Gallery of the House of Lords and
  • how I saw the King going to open Parliament, and the Duke of Devonshire
  • looking like a gorgeous pedlar and terribly bored with the cap of
  • maintenance on a tray before him hung by slings from his shoulder. A
  • wonderful spectacle!
  • It is quaint, no doubt, this England--it is even dignified in
  • places--and full of mellow associations. That does not alter the quality
  • of the realities these robes conceal. The realities are greedy trade,
  • base profit--seeking, bold advertisement; and kingship and chivalry,
  • spite of this wearing of treasured robes, are as dead among it all
  • as that crusader my uncle championed against the nettles outside the
  • Duffield church.
  • I have thought much of that bright afternoon’s panorama.
  • To run down the Thames so is to run one’s hand over the pages in the
  • book of England from end to end. One begins in Craven Reach and it is as
  • if one were in the heart of old England. Behind us are Kew and Hampton
  • Court with their memories of Kings and Cardinals, and one runs at first
  • between Fulham’s episcopal garden parties and Hurlingham’s playground
  • for the sporting instinct of our race. The whole effect is English.
  • There is space, there are old trees and all the best qualities of
  • the home-land in that upper reach. Putney, too, looks Anglican on a
  • dwindling scale. And then for a stretch the newer developments slop
  • over, one misses Bladesover and there come first squalid stretches of
  • mean homes right and left and then the dingy industrialism of the
  • south side, and on the north bank the polite long front of nice houses,
  • artistic, literary, administrative people’s residences, that stretches
  • from Cheyne Walk nearly to Westminster and hides a wilderness of slums.
  • What a long slow crescendo that is, mile after mile, with the houses
  • crowding closelier, the multiplying succession of church towers, the
  • architectural moments, the successive bridges, until you come out into
  • the second movement of the piece with Lambeth’s old palace under your
  • quarter and the houses of Parliament on your bow! Westminster Bridge
  • is ahead of you then, and through it you flash, and in a moment the
  • round-faced clock tower cranes up to peer at you again and New
  • Scotland Yard squares at you, a fat beef-eater of a policeman disguised
  • miraculously as a Bastille.
  • For a stretch you have the essential London; you have Charing Cross
  • railway station, heart of the world, and the Embankment on the north
  • side with its new hotels overshadowing its Georgian and Victorian
  • architecture, and mud and great warehouses and factories, chimneys, shot
  • towers, advertisements on the south. The northward skyline grows more
  • intricate and pleasing, and more and more does one thank God for Wren.
  • Somerset House is as picturesque as the civil war, one is reminded again
  • of the original England, one feels in the fretted sky the quality of
  • Restoration Lace.
  • And then comes Astor’s strong box and the lawyers’ Inns.
  • (I had a passing memory of myself there, how once I had trudged along
  • the Embankment westward, weighing my uncle’s offer of three hundred
  • pounds a year....)
  • Through that central essential London reach I drove, and X2 bored
  • her nose under the foam regardless of it all like a black hound going
  • through reeds--on what trail even I who made her cannot tell.
  • And in this reach, too, one first meets the seagulls and is reminded of
  • the sea. Blackfriars one takes--just under these two bridges and just
  • between them is the finest bridge moment in the world--and behold,
  • soaring up, hanging in the sky over a rude tumult of warehouses, over a
  • jostling competition of traders, irrelevantly beautiful and altogether
  • remote, Saint Paul’s! “Of course!” one says, “Saint Paul’s!” It is the
  • very figure of whatever fineness the old Anglican culture achieved,
  • detached, a more dignified and chastened Saint Peter’s, colder, greyer,
  • but still ornate; it has never been over thrown, never disavowed, only
  • the tall warehouses and all the roar of traffic have forgotten it,
  • every one has forgotten it; the steamships, the barges, go heedlessly by
  • regardless of it, intricacies of telephone wires and poles cut blackly
  • into its thin mysteries, and presently, when in a moment the traffic
  • permits you and you look round for it, it has dissolved like a cloud
  • into the grey blues of the London sky.
  • And then the traditional and ostensible England falls from you
  • altogether. The third movement begins, the last great movement in the
  • London symphony, in which the trim scheme of the old order is altogether
  • dwarfed and swallowed up. Comes London Bridge, and the great warehouses
  • tower up about you, waving stupendous cranes, the gulls circle and
  • scream in your ears, large ships lie among their lighters, and one is
  • in the port of the world. Again and again in this book I have written
  • of England as a feudal scheme overtaken by fatty degeneration and
  • stupendous accidents of hypertrophy.
  • For the last time I must strike that note as the memory of the dear
  • neat little sunlit ancient Tower of London lying away in a gap among the
  • warehouses comes back to me, that little accumulation of buildings so
  • provincially pleasant and dignified, overshadowed by the vulgarest,
  • most typical exploit of modern England, the sham Gothic casings to the
  • ironwork of the Tower Bridge. That Tower Bridge is the very balance and
  • confirmation of Westminster’s dull pinnacles and tower. That sham Gothic
  • bridge; in the very gates of our mother of change, the Sea!
  • But after that one is in a world of accident and nature. For the third
  • part of the panorama of London is beyond all law, order, and precedence;
  • it is the seaport and the sea. One goes down the widening reaches
  • through a monstrous variety of shipping, great steamers, great
  • sailing-ships, trailing the flags of all the world, a monstrous
  • confusion of lighters, witches’ conferences of brown-sailed barges,
  • wallowing tugs, a tumultuous crowding and jostling of cranes and spars,
  • and wharves and stores, and assertive inscriptions. Huge vistas of dock
  • open right and left of one, and here and there beyond and amidst it all
  • are church towers, little patches of indescribably old-fashioned and
  • worn-out houses, riverside pubs and the like, vestiges of townships that
  • were long since torn to fragments and submerged in these new growths.
  • And amidst it all no plan appears, no intention, no comprehensive
  • desire. That is the very key of it all. Each day one feels that the
  • pressure of commerce and traffic grew, grew insensibly monstrous, and
  • first this man made a wharf and that erected a crane, and then this
  • company set to work and then that, and so they jostled together to make
  • this unassimilable enormity of traffic. Through it we dodged and drove
  • eager for the high seas.
  • I remember how I laughed aloud at the glimpse of the name of a London
  • County Council steamboat that ran across me. Caxton it was called, and
  • another was Pepys, and another was Shakespeare. They seemed so wildly
  • out of place, splashing about in that confusion. One wanted to take them
  • out and wipe them and put them back in some English gentleman’s library.
  • Everything was alive about them, flash ing, splashing, and passing,
  • ships moving, tugs panting, hawsers taut, barges going down with men
  • toiling at the sweeps, the water all a-swirl with the wash of shipping,
  • scaling into millions of little wavelets, curling and frothing under the
  • whip of the unceasing wind. Past it all we drove. And at Greenwich to
  • the south, you know, there stands a fine stone frontage where all the
  • victories are recorded in a Painted Hall, and beside it is the “Ship”
  • where once upon a time those gentlemen of Westminster used to have
  • an annual dinner--before the port of London got too much for them
  • altogether. The old facade of the Hospital was just warming to the
  • sunset as we went by, and after that, right and left, the river opened,
  • the sense of the sea increased and prevailed, reach after reach from
  • Northfleet to the Nore.
  • And out you come at last with the sun behind you into the eastern
  • sea. You speed up and tear the oily water louder and faster, siroo,
  • siroo-swish-siroo, and the hills of Kent--over which I once fled from
  • the Christian teachings of Nicodemus Frapp--fall away on the right hand
  • and Essex on the left. They fall away and vanish into blue haze, and
  • the tall slow ships behind the tugs, scarce moving ships and wallowing
  • sturdy tugs, are all wrought of wet gold as one goes frothing by. They
  • stand out, bound on strange missions of life and death, to the killing
  • of men in unfamiliar lands. And now behind us is blue mystery and the
  • phantom flash of unseen lights, and presently even these are gone, and
  • I and my destroyer tear out to the unknown across a great grey space.
  • We tear into the great spaces of the future and the turbines fall to
  • talking in unfamiliar tongues. Out to the open we go, to windy freedom
  • and trackless ways. Light after light goes down. England and the
  • Kingdom, Britain and the Empire, the old prides and the old devotions,
  • glide abeam, astern, sink down upon the horizon, pass--pass. The river
  • passes--London passes, England passes...
  • III
  • This is the note I have tried to emphasise, the note that sounds clear
  • in my mind when I think of anything beyond the purely personal aspects
  • of my story.
  • It is a note of crumbling and confusion, of change and seemingly aimless
  • swelling, of a bubbling up and medley of futile loves and sorrows.
  • But through the confusion sounds another note. Through the confusion
  • something drives, something that is at once human achievement and the
  • most inhuman of all existing things. Something comes out of it....
  • How can I express the values of a thing at once so essential and so
  • immaterial. It is something that calls upon such men as I with an
  • irresistible appeal.
  • I have figured it in my last section by the symbol of my destroyer,
  • stark and swift, irrelevant to most human interests. Sometimes I call
  • this reality Science, sometimes I call it Truth. But it is something we
  • draw by pain and effort ont of the heart of life, that we disentangle
  • and make clear. Other men serve it, I know, in art, in literature, in
  • social invention, and see it in a thousand different figures, under a
  • hundred names. I see it always as austerity, as beauty. This thing we
  • make clear is the heart of life. It is the one enduring thing. Men and
  • nations, epochs and civilisation pass each making its contribution I do
  • not know what it is, this something, except that it is supreme. It is,
  • a something, a quality, an element, one may find now in colours, now in
  • norms, now in sounds, now in thoughts. It emerges from life with each
  • year one lives and feels, and generation by generation and age by age,
  • but the how and why of it are all beyond the compass of my mind....
  • Yet the full sense of it was with me all that night as I drove, lonely
  • above the rush and murmur of my engines, out upon the weltering circle
  • of the sea.
  • Far out to the northeast there came the flicker of a squadron of
  • warships waving white swords of light about the sky. I kept them
  • hull-down, and presently they were mere summer lightning over the watery
  • edge of the globe.... I fell into thought that was nearly formless, into
  • doubts and dreams that have no words, and it seemed good to me to drive
  • ahead and on and or through the windy starlight, over the long black
  • waves.
  • IV
  • It was morning and day before I returned with the four sick and starving
  • journalists who had got permission to come with me, up the shining
  • river, and past the old grey Tower....
  • I recall the back views of those journalists very distinctly, going with
  • a certain damp weariness of movement, along a side street away from the
  • river. They were good men and bore me no malice, and they served me up
  • to the public in turgid degenerate Kiplingese, as a modest button on the
  • complacent stomach of the Empire. Though as a matter of fact, X2 isn’t
  • intended for the empire, or indeed for the hands of any European power.
  • We offered it to our own people first, but they would have nothing to
  • do with me, and I have long since ceased to trouble much about such
  • questions. I have come to see myself from the outside, my country from
  • the outside--without illusions. We make and pass.
  • We are all things that make and pass striving upon a hidden mission, out
  • to the open sea.
  • End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of Tono Bungay, by H. G. Wells
  • *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK TONO BUNGAY ***
  • ***** This file should be named 718-0.txt or 718-0.zip *****
  • This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org/7/1/718/
  • Produced by John Bean; Diane Bean and David Widger
  • Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
  • will be renamed.
  • Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
  • one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
  • (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
  • permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
  • set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
  • copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
  • protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
  • Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
  • charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
  • do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
  • rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
  • such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
  • research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
  • practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
  • subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
  • redistribution.
  • *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
  • THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
  • PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
  • To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
  • distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
  • (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg”), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
  • http://gutenberg.org/license).
  • Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic works
  • 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
  • and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
  • (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
  • the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
  • all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
  • If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
  • terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
  • entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
  • 1.B. “Project Gutenberg” is a registered trademark. It may only be
  • used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
  • agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
  • things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
  • even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
  • paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
  • and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works. See paragraph 1.E below.
  • 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (“the Foundation”
  • or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
  • collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
  • individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
  • located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
  • copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
  • works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
  • are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
  • freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
  • this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
  • the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
  • keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
  • 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
  • what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
  • a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
  • the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
  • before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
  • creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
  • Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
  • the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
  • States.
  • 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
  • 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
  • access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
  • whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
  • phrase “Project Gutenberg” appears, or with which the phrase “Project
  • Gutenberg” is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
  • copied or distributed:
  • This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
  • almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
  • re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
  • with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
  • 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
  • from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
  • posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
  • and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
  • or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
  • with the phrase “Project Gutenberg” associated with or appearing on the
  • work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
  • through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
  • Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
  • 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
  • with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
  • must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
  • terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
  • to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
  • permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
  • 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
  • work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
  • 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
  • electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
  • prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
  • active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm License.
  • 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
  • compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
  • word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
  • distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
  • “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other format used in the official version
  • posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
  • you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
  • copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
  • request, of the work in its original “Plain Vanilla ASCII” or other
  • form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
  • 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
  • performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
  • unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
  • 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
  • access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
  • that
  • - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
  • the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
  • you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
  • owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
  • has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
  • Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
  • must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
  • prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
  • returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
  • sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
  • address specified in Section 4, “Information about donations to
  • the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation.”
  • - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
  • you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
  • does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
  • License. You must require such a user to return or
  • destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
  • and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
  • Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
  • money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
  • electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
  • of receipt of the work.
  • - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
  • distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
  • 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
  • electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
  • forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
  • both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
  • Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
  • Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
  • 1.F.
  • 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
  • effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
  • public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
  • “Defects,” such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
  • corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
  • property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
  • computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
  • your equipment.
  • 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the “Right
  • of Replacement or Refund” described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
  • Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
  • Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
  • liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
  • fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
  • LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
  • PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
  • TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
  • LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
  • INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
  • DAMAGE.
  • 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
  • defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
  • receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
  • written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
  • received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
  • your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
  • the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
  • refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
  • providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
  • receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
  • is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
  • opportunities to fix the problem.
  • 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
  • in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you ‘AS-IS’ WITH NO OTHER
  • WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
  • WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
  • 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
  • warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
  • If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
  • law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
  • interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
  • the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
  • provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
  • 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
  • trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
  • providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
  • with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
  • promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
  • harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
  • that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
  • or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
  • work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
  • Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
  • Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
  • Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
  • electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
  • including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
  • because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
  • people in all walks of life.
  • Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
  • assistance they need, is critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm’s
  • goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
  • remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
  • Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
  • and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
  • To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
  • and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
  • and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
  • Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
  • Foundation
  • The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
  • 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
  • state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
  • Revenue Service. The Foundation’s EIN or federal tax identification
  • number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
  • http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
  • permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state’s laws.
  • The Foundation’s principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
  • Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
  • throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
  • 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
  • business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
  • information can be found at the Foundation’s web site and official
  • page at http://pglaf.org
  • For additional contact information:
  • Dr. Gregory B. Newby
  • Chief Executive and Director
  • gbnewby@pglaf.org
  • Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
  • Literary Archive Foundation
  • Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
  • spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
  • increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
  • freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
  • array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
  • ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
  • status with the IRS.
  • The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
  • charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
  • States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
  • considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
  • with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
  • where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
  • SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
  • particular state visit http://pglaf.org
  • While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
  • have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
  • against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
  • approach us with offers to donate.
  • International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
  • any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
  • outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
  • Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
  • methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
  • ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
  • To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
  • Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
  • works.
  • Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
  • concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
  • with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
  • Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
  • Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
  • editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
  • unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
  • keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
  • Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
  • http://www.gutenberg.org
  • This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
  • including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
  • Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
  • subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.